Location via proxy:   [ UP ]  
[Report a bug]   [Manage cookies]                

Iran Under The Safavids: Roger Savory

Download as pdf or txt
Download as pdf or txt
You are on page 1of 286

IRAN U N D E R THE SAFAVIDS

R O G ER SA V O R Y
Professor, Department of Middle East and Islamic Studies
Trinity College, University of Toronto

CAMBRIDGE UNIVERSITY PRESS


Cambridge
London New York New Rochelle
Melbourne Sydney

This material is presented solely for non-commercial educational/research purposes.


Published by the Press Syndicate of the University of Cambridge
The Pitt Building, Trumpington Street, Cambridge C B 2 irp
32 East 57th Street, New York, ny 10022, USA
296 Beaconsfield Parade, Middle Park, Melbourne 3206, Australia

© Cambridge University Press 1980

First published 1980

Printed in Great Britain at the


University Press, Cambridge

Library of Congress Cataloguing in Publication Data


Savory, Roger.
Iran under the Safavids.
Includes bibliographical references and index.
i. Iran —History —16th—18th centuries.
2. Safavids. I. Title.
D S 2 9 2 .S 2 6 9 5 5 '. 0 3 7 8 -7 3 8 1 7

IS B N O 5 2 1 2 2 4 8 3 7

To my w ife I<Zcithleen
C o n ten ts

List of illustrations page vi


Map viii
Acknowledgements x
1 The Lords of Ardabïl I

2 Theocratic state: the reign of Shäh Ismâ‘ïl I 27


(1501-1524)
3 Internal dissensions and external foes: the Safavid _ 50
state from 1524 to 1588
4 The Safavid empire at the height of its power 76
under Shäh ‘Abbas the Great (1588—1629)
5 Relations with the West during the Safavid period 104
^6 The flowering of the arts under the Safavids 128
7 “Isfahan is half the world” —Shah ‘Abbas’s / 154
Isfahan
8 The social and economic structure of theSafavid 177
state
9 Intellectual life under the Safavids 203
10 Decline and fall of the Safavids 226
Notes 255
Index 268

v
Illustrations

Map: The Safavid empire in the sixteenth and seventeenth


centuries. (From an original plan by Teresa Savory.) PaS e
1 The dervish Nasr ibn Sukharâ’ï. Brush drawing ca 1625.
(Courtesy of the Royal Ontario Museum, Toronto.
Acquisition no. 967.315.2.) 7
2 Court usher (yasavul), a qizilbäsh officer.
(From Cornelius de Bruyn, Travels into Muscovy, Persia and
Part of the East Indies, 1737.) 19
3 Shah Ismâ‘ÏÏ I. Woodcut. (Reproduced by courtesy of the
Trustees of the British Museum.) 28
4 Ozbeg ambassador sent by Nazar Mahmüd to Shah Sultan
Husayn in 1700. (Photo: Bibliothèque Nationale, Paris.) 97
5 Royal travel, 1671. (From J. Struys, Voyages en Muscovie,
1681.) 98
6 Shäh ‘Abbas I. Portrait by Bishn Das. (Reproduced by
courtesy of the Trustees of the British Museum.) 102
7 House and garden; the East India Co. director’s residence.
(From de Bruyn, Travels.) 114
8 Muhammad Rizâ Beg, ambassador to Louis XIV. (From
M. Herbette, Une Ambassade persane, 1907.) 123
9 Bird, and scene of lovers served with wine by an attendant.
Painting by Rizâ ‘Abbâsï, ca 1610-20. (Seattle Art Museum,
Washington; gift of the late Mrs Donald E. Frederick.) 132
10 Rizâ ‘Abbâsï. Portrait by Mu‘m Musavvir. (Princeton
University Library.) 134
11 Length of woven polychrome velvet, early 17th century.
(Courtesy of the Royal Ontario Museum, Toronto.
Acquisition no. 962.60.1; gift of Mrs John David Eaton.) 140
12 View of the city of Kâshân. (From Sir John Chardin, Travels
in Persia, 1686.) 142
13 Blue-and-white porcelain plate, Iran,16th century. (Courtesy
of the Royal Ontario Museum, Toronto. Acquisition no.
909.25.4.) 146
14 City gate of Shiraz. (From de Bruyn, Travels.) 147

vi
List of illustrations
15 Cylindrical candlestick, cast and engraved in bronze, late 16th
century. (Courtesy of the Royal Ontario Museum, Toronto.
Acquisition no. 924.76.r.) 150
16 Helmet of Shäh ‘Abbas I, 1625/6. (Reproduced by courtesy of
the Trustees of the British Museum.) 152
17 Isfahan - plan of the Royal Square. (Line drawing by Michael
D. Willis, reproduced from Anthony Welch, Shäh ‘Abbas and
the Arts of Isfahan, The Asia Society, New York, 1973.) 157
18 Isfahan - the Maydän. (From de Bruyn, Travels.) 158
19A Isfahan - the Royal Mosque (begun 1611 ; completed after
1629), main courtyard looking north. (Photo: J. Powell,
Rome.) 160
19B Isfahan —the Royal Mosque, minarets and dome. (Photo:
J. Powell, Rome.) 161
20 Isfahan - the Shaykh Lutf Allah Mosque (begun 1603 ;
completed 1618). (Photo: J. Powell, Rome.) 164
21 Isfahan —the Chihil Sutün palace. (From Mme Dieulafoy, La
Perse, 1887.) 167
22 Isfahan - the Madrasa-yi Madar-i Shah (built 1706-14).
(Photo: J. Powell, Rome.) 168
23 Isfahan - the Chahär Bägh, (From de Bruyn, Travels.) 169
24 Isfahan - the Marnän, Allähverdl Khan and Hasanäbäd
(Khvljü) bridges. (From E. Kaempfer, Amoenitatum
Exoticarum, 1712.) r7i
25 Isfahan - the Hasanäbäd bridge. (From de Bruyn,Travels.) 172
26 Dress of the natives of Isfahän. (From Kaempfer, Amoenitatum
Exoticarum.) 178
27A Court dress, male. (From de Bruyn, Travels.) 180
27B Court dress, female. (From de Bruyn, Travels.) 181
28 Octagonal caravanserai at Amlnäbäd. (From Flandin and
Coste, Voyage en Perse pendant les années 1840 et 1842,
reproduced from Mazaheri, Les Trésors de ITran, Editions
d’Art Albert Skira, Geneva, 1970.) 190
29 Käshän —the great inn. (From Chardin, Travels inPersia.) 192
30 The poet laureate ShifaT (Reproduced by courtesy of the
Trustees of the British Museum.) 212
31 Brass astrolabe, engraved with the name of Shäh Sultän
Husayn, 1712. (Reproduced by courtesy of the Trustees of the
British Museum.) 223
32 Shäh Safi. (From A. Olearius, Relation du voyage, 1727-) 227
33 Shäh ‘Abbäs II. (Victoria and Albert Museum. Crown
copyright.) 230
34 Shäh Sulaymän. Miniature in the Chester Beatty Collection.
(Photo : Pieterse Davison International.) 240
35 Shäh Sultän Husayn. (From de Bruyn, Travels.) 242

vii
vin
IX
A c k n o w le d g e m e n ts

I acknowledge with thanks receipt of a grant from the Canada


Council which enabled me to go to Iran in 1974 to carry out field
research for this book, I would like also to record my debt of
gratitude to Shojaeddin Shafa for the way in which he facilitated
my work in Iran.
My special thanks are due to my wife, who did much of the
work of selecting and obtaining prints of the illustrations; to my
daughter-in-law Teresa, who drew the plan for the map; to my
colleague Lisa V. Golombek, who selected a number of items
from the Royal Ontario Museum collection for inclusion among
the illustrations; to my colleague Glyn M. Meredith-Owens; and
to Renata Holod, Judith Lerner, The Revd D. G. Montanari,
Michael Rogers, Yvette Sauvan, Norah Titley, Betty Tyers,
Anthony Welch, Stuart Cary Welch and Donald Wilber, for their
efforts to track down portraits of elusive shahs and other
illustrations. In addition, I wish to thank Anthony Welch for
sending me a copy of his excellent work, Shäh ‘Abbas and the Arts
of Isfahan, and R. W. Ferrier and Bert Fragner for making some
of their unpublished work available to me; unfortunately Dr
Fragner’s material arrived too late to be incorporated in my
chapter on the Safavid economy.
Finally, my sincere thanks are due to Robert Seal, who first
encouraged me to write this book; to the staff of Cambridge
University Press, especially Andrew Brown for his unfailing help
and valuable advice at all stages of the book’s production; and to
Roloff Beny, for graciously allowing me to use his outstanding
photograph of the Chihil Sutün fresco for the book jacket.
The title of Chapter 1 was suggested by a phrase in Vladimir
Minorsky’s translation of Tadhkirat al-Mulük.

Trinity College R.S.


University of Toronto
x
I

The Lords o f ArdabU

The town of Ardabïl, situated in eastern Äzarbäyjän in north­


western Iran, lies at an altitude of some 1,524 metres on a plateau
surrounded by mountains; the highest of these, Mt Savalän (4,810
metres), an extinct volcano from which snow rarely departs
completely, even in summer, rears its massive bulk 20 miles west
of the town.
For a short time during the tenth century, Ardabïl had been
the chief city of the province of Äzarbäyjän, but it had soon been
superseded by the city of Tabriz, 130 miles to the west. Tabriz
rapidly established itself as an important station on one of the
world’s great trade routes from the Far East and Central Asia, and
as the hub of a network of highroads leading to Mesopotamia
and the Mediterranean ports, to Anatolia and Constantinople,
and north through the Caucasus to the Ukraine, the Crimea and
eastern Europe. The supremacy of Tabriz was assured when
ArdabU was sacked and left in ruins by the Mongols in 1220, while
Tabriz escaped a similar fate the following year by payment of
a large indemnity to its conquerors. At the beginning of the
fourteenth century, Ardabïl was no more than a small provincial
town, lying slightly off the beaten track, as it still does today.
At first sight, therefore, Ardabïl seemed an unlikely choice as
the nerve-centre of a revolutionary movement. Yet its relative
remoteness and unimportance constituted advantages for the
leaders of this movement, who wanted as little as possible to
attract the curiosity and almost certain hostility of the authorities
at Tabriz. At the back of ArdabU, too, lay the impenetrable
mountains, forests and swamps of Gïlân, and the proximity of this
refuge was to save the movement from extinction at the end of
the fifteenth century.
Such considerations, however, were presumably far from the

i
2 Iran under the Safavids
mind of the first member of the Safavid family of whom we have
historical knowledge, a certain Fïrüzshâh “ of the golden hat”
(zarrïnkulâh), whom we find established as a wealthy landowner
in the Ardabll region sometime during the eleventh century. The
origins of the Safavid family are still enveloped in obscurity. Hinz
has talked about an alleged migration of Fïrüzshâh to Äzarbäyjän
from the Yemen, and has taken this to be an indication of the Arab
origin of the family. Ayalon has claimed that the Safavids were
Turks. Kasravï, after a careful examination of the evidence, came
to the conclusion that the Safavids were indigenous inhabitants
of Iran, and of pure Aryan (i.e., Iranian) stock; yet they spoke
Âzarï, the form of Turkish which was the native language of
Äzarbäyjän. The only point at issue for Kasravï was whether the
Safavid family had been for long resident in Äzarbäyjän, or had
migrated from Kurdistän. More recently, Togan re-examined the
evidence, and suggested that the ancestors of the Safavids may
have accompanied the Kurdish Ravadid prince Mamlän b. Vah-
südän when the latter conquered the regions of Ardabïl, Arrän,
Muqän and Där-Büm in 1025.
Why is there such confusion about the origins of this important
dynasty, which reasserted Iranian identity and established an
independent Iranian state after eight and a half centuries of rule
by foreign dynasties? The reason is that the Safavids, having been
brought to power by the dynamic force of a certain ideology,
deliberately set out to obliterate any evidence of their own origins
which would weaken the thrust of this ideology and call in
question the premises on which it was based. In order to
understand how and why the Safavids falsified the evidence of
their origins, one must first be clear about the nature of the Safavid
dctva (propaganda, or ideological appeal), and about the bases on
which the power of the Safavid shahs rested.
The power of the Safavid shahs had three distinct bases: first,
the theory of the divine right of the Persian kings, based on the
possession by the king of the “ kingly glory ” (hvarnah; khvarenah ;
farr). This ancient, pre-Islamic theory was reinvested with all its
former splendour and reappeared in the Islamic garb of the
concept of the ruler as the “ Shadow of God upon earth ” (.zill alläh
fi'l-arzi)\ second, the claim of the Safavid shahs to be the
representatives on earth of the Mahdï, the 12th and last Imäm of
the Ithnä ‘Ashari ShTïs, who went into occultation in a.d. 873/4
The Lords of Ardabïl 3
and whose return to earth will herald the Day of Judgement;
third, the position of the Safavid shahs as the murshid-i kämil or
perfect spiritual director, of the Süfî Order known as the
Safaviyya.
Before these points are discussed in detail, reference should be
made to what may be called the “ official” version of the early
history of the Safavid family. The earliest extant genealogy of the
Safavid house (düdmän) is that contained in the Safvat al-SaJa of
Ibn Bazzäz, written about 1357/8, less than twenty-five years after
the death of Shaykh Safi al-DIn Abu’l-Fath Ishâq Ardabïlï
(1252—1334), who founded the Safaviyya Order and set the
Safavid house on the path to future greatness. The Safvat al-SaJd
is primarily hagiography, and must therefore be used with
caution, but is of vital importance both because of its early date
and because its account, as subsequently amended, became the
“ official” version followed by all later histories up to and
including the genealogical work entitled Silsilat al-Nasab-i Safa­
viyya; the latter was a late Safavid work written during the reign
of Shäh Sulaymän (1666-94) by a descendant of Shaykh Safi
al-DTn’s spiritual director Shaykh Zâhid-i Gïlânî.
The purpose of the “ official” Safavid genealogy was to
establish the descent of the Safavid house from the 7th ShT‘TImam,
Müsä al-Käzim, and through him to 'AIT himself, the ist Shï'ï
Imam; but even in the “ official” Safavid genealogy, there are
inconsistencies and variations in the number of links in the
genealogical chain. There is little dispute about the five links in
immediate descent from the Imäm Müsä al-Käzim, and only
minor inconsistencies in the chain between FTrüzshäh Zarrinku-
läh and Shaykh Safi al-DTn. It is the middle portion of the
genealogy, consisting of eight links in the “ official version”, on
which the greatest doubt has been cast ; of these eight persons, four
are unspecified Muhammads.
Following the “ official” version of early Safavid history, it
appears that FTrüzshäh was appointed Governor of the province
of Ardabïl and its dependencies by a son of Ibrâhîm b. Adham;
this son is described as “ King of Iran” . Ibrâhîm b. Adham was
an eighth-century ascetic whose life has been much embellished
by legend. There is no historical basis for the belief that he was
a prince of Balkh who renounced worldly pomp in favour of a
life of abstinence. We are further told that FTrüzshäh converted
4 Iran under the Safavids
to Islam the inhabitants of Äzarbäyjän and Muqän, who were
infidels (kafir). Both of these statements are patently false. Ibrâhîm
b. Adham died in a.d. 777, so no son of his could possibly have
been alive in the eleventh century, and the inhabitants of Muqän
and Arrän had embraced Islam during the seventh and eighth
centuries. Fïrüzshâh was a man of wealth and authority, and
owned much property and livestock; indeed, his animals were so
numerous that he selected for his residence a place called Rängln,
on the edge of the forests of Gllän, where the pasturage was
excellent. Fïrüzshâh became noted for the nobility of his character,
the excellence of his manners, the felicity of his conversation and
the generosity of his behaviour. He was said to be a sayyid
(descendant of the Prophet), and, as a result of his abundant piety
and zealous religious observance, the people of the region became
his disciples (murid). After his death, his son ‘Ivaz moved to
Isfaranjän, a village in the Ardabïl district. On the other hand, a
“ non-establishment” source states that Fïrüzshâh was the first
member of the Safavid house to come to Ardabïl; this statement
is not necessarily incompatible with the “ official” account, for
“ Ardabïl” may mean “ the Ardabïl district”.
The son o f ‘Ivaz, Muhammad Häfiz, disappeared at the age of
seven, and the customary rites of mourning were performed for
him. After seven years had elapsed, Muhammad suddenly
reappeared, wearing a jujube (reddish-brown) coloured robe, and
with a white turban wound around the ordinary hat of the period.
Round his neck was hung a copy of the Qur’än. In answer to
questions about his absence, he replied that he had been carried
off by jinn, who had taught him the Qur’än and instructed him
in the obligatory sciences, such as the precepts and laws of God.
From then onwards, Muhammad Häfiz lived a life of perfect piety
and scrupulous religious observance. Two new, predictive
elements have been introduced into the “ official” account at this
point: the supernatural element (the abduction by jinn); and the
repetition of the socio-religiously significant number “ 7 ”.
Muhammad’s son, Saläh al-Dïn Rashid, lived an uneventful life
as a small landowner (dihqän) and agriculturalist at the village of
Kalkhvurän near Ardabïl. According to the Silsilat al-Nasab,
Saläh al-Dïn’s son, Qutb al-Dïn Abu’l-Bâqï Ahmad, was living
at Kalkhvurän at the time of the Georgian invasion of Iran and
capture of Ardabïl in 1203/4. During the sack of Ardabïl, Qutb
The Lords of ArdabU 5
al-DTn took refuge with his infant son Amin al-DTn Jibrä’H1 in
a cellar, with one of his followers on guard above. The guard,
attacked by a marauding Georgian, succeeded in overcoming
him, but the sound of the struggle brought further Georgians to
the spot. Before they arrived, the guard pulled a large grain-bin
over the entrance to the cellar. The Georgians killed the guard
and left. The cellar was too cramped for the number of people,
mainly women and children, concealed in it, and Qutb al-DTn was
forced to seek another hiding-place. Before he found one, he was
caught by the Georgians, and left for dead with a severe wound
in his neck. He was later recovered from a pile of corpses of other
victims by a band of ruffians out for loot, and taken back to the
cellar to be nursed by his relatives. Qutb al-DTn was still alive in
1252/3, when Shaykh SafT al-DTn was born. Shaykh Safi al-DTn,
recounting the story of these events in later days, used to say that,
when Qutb al-DTn lifted him up on his shoulder, he could put
four fingers into the gash left by the sword wound.
Amïn al-DTn Jibrä’Tl, like his forefathers, combined the success­
ful practice of agriculture with the holy life. He did not mix at
all with the common people, but was always silent and at his
devotions. He chose as his spiritual director MawlanI Imam
al-RabbänT Khväja Kamäl al-DTn ‘Arabshäh. He married Daw-
latT, the daughter of ‘Umar Bârüqï, who bore him Shaykh Safi
al-DTn in 1252/3; six years later, Amïn al-DTn Jibrâ’ïl died.
With the birth of Shaykh SafT al-DTn, the history of the Safavid
family enters a new and decisive phase. According to the tradi­
tional hagiographical accounts, signs of future greatness were
stamped upon his brow from infancy. He did not mix with other
boys, but spent his time in prayer and fasting until God removed
the veil from his heart. He experienced visions, seeing angels in
the form of birds which in turn assumed human shape and
conversed with him. Sometimes the awtäd and abdâl2 would
approach him and comfort him with the assurance that he would
reach the state of gnosis and become the focus for the hopes of
the world.
When he was about twenty years of age, Shaykh SafT al-DTn
sought a spiritual director among the recluses of Ardabïl, but none
could meet his needs. A certain Shaykh NajTb al-DTn Buzghüsh
at Shîrâz was recommended to him, and SafT al-DTn journeyed
to that city only to find that Shaykh NajTb al-DTn had died before
6 Iran under the Safavids
his arrival. Safi" al-DIn remained at Shiraz for some time. Many
dervishes gathered round him and conversed with him, and he
continued to ask advice from the local shaykhs regarding a
possible spiritual director. Eventually, he was advised that no one
in the world could analyse his mystical state and interpret his
visions except Shaykh Zâhid-i Gïlânî. After a protracted search,
during which he experienced visions in which Shaykh Zähid was
present, and after suffering illness and hardship, Safi al-DIn
succeeded in finding the latter at a village on the shores of the
Caspian Sea. He reached Shaykh Zähid’s residence during Ram­
azan and, although it was Shaykh Zahid’s custom not to receive
visitors during the month of fast, Safi al-DIn was at once
summoned into his presence. Unlike other spiritual directors
whom he had visited, Shaykh Zähid did not turn away his face,
but gazed steadily upon him, and Safi al-DIn knew that he had
reached the goal of his aspirations. At once, he made the formal
act termed tawba, that is, repentance of his sins and renunciation
of the worldly life. Safi al-DIn remained in Shaykh Zähid’s
private quarters until the end of Ramazan. He was granted yet
another audience with the Shaykh during Ramazan, because Safi
al-DIn was in doubt as to whether his mystical states and visions
were inspired by God or by Satan. Shaykh Zähid resolved his
doubts and answered his questions, and affirmed his exalted
spiritual status; there was but one veil between Safi al-DIn and
God, he declared, and that veil had now been removed.
When Safi al-DIn reached Gnän in 1276/7, he was twenty-five
years of age, and Shaykh Zähid was sixty. He followed Shaykh
Zähid’s spiritual guidance for twenty-five years, until the death
of the latter in 1301. As Shaykh Zähid grew older, he became
more and more dependent on Safi al-DIn who, when the Shaykh’s
eyesight failed him, used to sit at his side, describe visitors to him
and conduct interviews for him. At some point during this period,
the close bonds between the two men were further cemented by
a reciprocal marriage alliance : Safi al-DIn married Shaykh Zähid’s
daughter, Bibi Fätima, and gave his own daughter in marriage
to Shaykh Zähid’s son, Häjjl Shams al-DIn Muhammad. Safi
al-DIn had three sons by Bibi Fätima: Muhyl al-DIn, who died
in 1323/4, Sadr al-Milla va’l-DIn Müsä and Abü Sa‘Id.

i. The dervish Nasr ihn SukharäT


8 Iran under the Safavids
Some of Shaykh Zähid’s disciples grew jealous of Safï al-Dïn’s
favoured position and of his influence with the Shaykh, who
expressed his affection and esteem for Safi al-DIn in the most
forthright terms: “ Safi’s hand,” he said, “ is my hand; whoever
is a convert of his is mine also; whoever is a convert of mine but
not of his, is wanted neither by me nor by him. I am Safi and
Safi is I.” The Ardabïlïs present flung themselves into a joyful
dance3at these words, and shouted ecstatically. Zähid nodded and
said, “ You are indeed right to rejoice, because today is your
day.”4
Equally unequivocal was Shaykh Zähid’s designation of Safi
al-Dïn to succeed him as head of the Zähidiyya Order. When
Shaykh Zähid saw that Safï al-Dïn was competent to give spiritual
guidance, he granted him a prayer-mat and authority to teach.
Safï al-Dïn protested his inadequacy for the task; his only goal,
he said, was the threshold of Zähid. Zähid replied:
Safï, God has shown you to the people, and His command is that you
obey His call... I have broken the polo-stick of all your adversaries, and
cast the ball before you. Strike it where you will; the field is yours. I
have been able to live the life of a recluse, but you cannot. Wherever
you are bidden, you must go, to make converts and give instruction.
It is God who has given you this task.5
Although this passage may have been written with the advantage
of hindsight, nevertheless it is a fact that, with the assumption by
Shaykh Safi of the leadership of the Zähidiyya Order, henceforth
named the Safaviyya Order after him, there commenced the
period of active proselytism which transformed what had been
a Süfï Order of purely local significance into a religious movement
whose influence was felt throughout Iran, Syria and Asia Minor.
Shaykh Safî al-Dïn’s succession was resented by some members
of Shaykh Zähid’s family. One of Safi’s principal opponents was
Jamäl al-Dïn ‘Alï, Shaykh Zähid’s son by his first wife, who had
assumed that he would succeed his father. Designation by the
incumbent shaykh, and not a father—son relationship, was the
important criterion in determining the succession, and so the
supporters of Shaykh Safï were on firm ground. Ironically, after
Safi became leader of the Order, the father-son relationship not
only assumed paramount importance in deciding who the next
leader should be, but was tacitly assumed to be the only possible
basis for selecting him. Safï al-Dïn’s determination to keep the
The Lords of Ardabïl 9
leadership of the Safaviyya Order in his family makes it clear that,
from an early stage, he intended to use the Order as a stepping-stone
to political power.
Every year, Shaykh Safi visited the tomb of his spiritual
director, Shaykh Zähid, and took costly gifts for his children and
the attendants of the shrine. Hâjjï Shams al-Dïn Muhammad,
Zähid’s son and Safi’s son-in-law, was the object of Safi’s especial
favour. At the time of his marriage to Safi’s daughter, Safi had
made over to him estates and other property, and year by year
he increased his gifts to Hâjjï Shams al-Dïn and paid off any debts
incurred by him. Shaykh Safi rejected a suggestion by his wife
that he make over two-thirds of his estates to his son-in-law, but
he did agree to pass on to the latter income accruing from his own
property. However, Shaykh Safi’s beneficence did not extend to
the descendants of Jamäl al-Dïn ‘Alï, who had challenged him for
the leadership of the Zähidiyya Order. Shaykh Safi appears to
have been party to the usurpation by his son-in-law of the revenue
from certain vaqfs (lands held in mortmain) which rightfully
belonged to Jamäl al-Dïn’s son, Badr al-Dïn, because a decree of
the Mongol Tlkhän Abü Sa‘ïd dated 1320 ordered the restoration
of this revenue to Badr al-Dïn. On the other hand, Shaykh Safi
was ready to do battle with the Mongol authorities in defence
of Hâjjï Shams al-Dïn’s descendants if their rights were infringed,
as for instance when a Mongol amir attempted to convert some
of their private estates (milk) into tribal pasture (yurt), or when
boundary disputes arose.
Toward the end of his life, Shaykh Safi made a will in favour
of his second son, Sadr al-Dïn Müsä, appointing him his successor
and vicegerent, charging him with the administration of the
votive offerings, effects and private estates belonging to the Order
and making him responsible for the continuance, as far as was
possible, of the practice of providing sustenance for the poor at
God’s gate. Shaykh Safï al-Dïn died on 12 September 1334. Sadr
al-Dïn Müsä had been born in 1304/5, and was therefore thirty
years old when he succeeded his father as leader of the Safaviyya
Order. Since his elder brother had predeceased Shaykh Safi" al-Dïn,
and his three younger brothers died soon after their father, and
left no issue, Shaykh Sadr al-Dïn acquired any vaqf property and
lands which they possessed, and so became not only the spiritual
heir but the sole material heir of Shaykh Safi" al-Dïn.
Shaykh Sadr al-Dïn’s long term of office (1334—91) was marked
IO Iran under the Safavids
by an important development : the sacred enclosure of the Safavid
family at Ardabïl was begun and completed in ten years under
his direction. The tomb of Shaykh Safî al-Dïn is antedated by the
haram-khäna, which was built between 1324 and 1334,6 but many
of the ancillary buildings, including rooms for private medita­
tion, the dar al-hußaz, or room housing the Qur’än-reciters, the
chini-khäna, or room later used to house Shah ‘Abbas I’s gift of
porcelain to the shrine, but whose original function is unknown,
were added by Sadr al-Dïn Müsä; after the establishment of the
Safavid dynasty, further buildings were added by Shäh Ismä‘Ü I
and Shäh Tahmäsp, and Shäh ‘Abbäs I embellished and restored
many parts of the shrine. At the same time, Shaykh Sadr al-Dïn
continued his father’s efforts to spread the Safavid religious
propaganda, and many of the Ilkhanid amirs and Mongol nobility
became disciples of the Shaykhs of Ardabïl. Already during the
lifetime of Shaykh Safï al-Dïn, Rashïd al-Dïn, the great vazir of
the Tlkhäns Ghäzän Khän and Öljeitü, had demonstrated great
veneration for the Safavid Shaykh, and among the Mongol amirs
who counted themselves as his disciples was the powerful Amïr
Chübän. Several sources record versions of a conversation which
is alleged to have taken place between Shaykh Safï al-Dïn and
Amïr Chübän. Asked by the Amïr whether the king’s soldiers or
his own disciples were the more numerous, the Shaykh is said to
have replied that his disciples were twice as numerous; another
version of his reply alleges that in Iran alone for every soldier there
were a hundred Süfïs. To this the Amïr is said to have replied:
You speak truly, for I have travelled from the Oxus to the frontiers
of Egypt, and from the shores of Hurmüz to Bäb al-Abväb [Darband],
which are the furthest limits of this kingdom, and I have seen the
disciples of the Shaykh embellished and adorned with the ornaments
and garb of the Shaykh, and they have spread the sound of the zikr1
to those parts.8

Regular contact was maintained between Ardabïl and these


Safavid proselytes, and the basic organisation of the Safaviyya
Order was established by Shaykh Safï al-Dïn. The Safavid
propaganda network already extended to eastern Anatolia and
Syria, and many recruits were made among the pastoral Turcoman
tribes inhabiting those regions. Members of these tribes later
constituted the élite of the Safavid fighting forces, and it is
The Lords of Ardabïl II

significant that, during the early years of the fourteenth century,


the Safaviyya Order was establishing itself in regions in which it
subsequently caused the greatest anxiety to the Ottoman sultans.
The traffic between these regions and Ardabïl was on a large scale;
we are told that, in the space of three months, the number of
novices and devotees who visited Shaykh Safi al-DIn via the
Maragha and Tabriz road alone was 13,000 and the number
coming from other parts was on a comparable scale.
The succession of Shaykh Sadr al-DIn to the leadership of the
Order coincided with the break-up of the Ilkhanid empire in Iran
and Mesopotamia. In the absence of a strong central government,
families of powerful amirs such as the Chubanids and Jala’irids
carved out principalities for themselves. In the Armenian highlands
round Lake Van, the strength of the federation of Turcoman tribes
known as the Qarä Quyünlü (those of the Black Sheep) was on
the increase; initially dependents of the Jala’irids, in 1390 they
seized from their overlords control of the province of Azarbayjan.
In other parts of Iran, such as Harät and Sabzavär in Khurasan,
and in the provinces of Färs and Kirman, local Iranian dynasties
established themselves.
The political turbulence of the times naturally had an adverse
effect on the position of the Safavid shaykhs at Ardabïl. The town
of Ardabll itself changed hands on several occasions. Malik Ashraf
was clearly not one of the Chubanid amïrs who venerated the
leader of the Safavid Order, for “ by fair and specious words” he
lured Shaykh Sadr al-DIn to Tabriz and threw him into prison.
Although Malik Ashraf is known to have had a distaste for
theologians and religious leaders in general, it is tempting to see
in his action against the Safavid leader some recognition of the
growing political significance of the Safavid movement. On the
other hand, many shaykhs, doctors of religion and men of
learning voluntarily went into exile to escape from Malik Ashraf s
oppressive rule. When Shaykh Sadr al-DIn had been in prison for
three months, Malik Ashraf experienced a terrifying dream as a
result of which he released the Shaykh with profuse apologies.
Some time later, Malik Ashraf regretted having released the
Shaykh, and sent some men to Ardabll to re-arrest him. Shaykh
Sadr al-DIn, forewarned by his spiritual insight of the ruler’s
intention, abandoned the seat of his spiritual authority and fled
to Gïlân. The fact that Malik Ashraf thought it necessary to
12 Iran under the Safavids
attempt to re-arrest the Safavid leader indicates, I think, that there
was some political motive underlying his hostility toward Shaykh
Sadr al-DIn.
Many members of the religious classes who left Äzarbäyjän at
this period fled north through the Caucasus and sought refuge
with Jan! Beg Mahmud, ruler of the Blue Horde of western
Qipchäq (1340-57) and a descendant of Chingiz Khan. The
laments of these refugees about their ill-treatment at the hands of
Malik Ashraf provided Jam Beg with a convenient excuse for
invading Äzarbäyjän. He captured Malik Ashraf near Tabriz and
put him to death. Jänl Beg received Shaykh Sadr al-DIn in royal
fashion at his camp at Awjän near Tabriz. According to the
traditional Safavid account, Jänl Beg gave the Shaykh a private
audience, in the course of which he said that he had heard that
the Shaykh had been in exile for a long time, and that the
condition of the Safavid dervishes living in the ancestral sanctuary
at Ardabll had deteriorated. He advised the Shaykh to return to
Ardabll and minister to the poor. He instructed the Shaykh to
draw up an inventory of all the lands, workshops and estates
belonging to himself and his followers so that he 0 änl Beg) might
allot them to the Shaykh as a suyürghäl,9protected by a maledictory
clause, so that the profit accruing from this property might be
assigned to the Safavid Order. Unfortunately, the necessary
inventories could not be completed before Jänl Beg left Iran, and
the decrees assigning this property and revenue were never issued
by the Khän.
Even if these decrees had been issued, it is doubtful whether the
Safavid shaykhs would have enjoyed the uninterrupted beneficial
possession of these revenues, because the Ardabll area continued
to be fought over by rival rulers during the last quarter of the
fourteenth century. About 1372, the Jala’irid amir Ahmad b.
Uvays held Ardabll as a suyürghäl from his father. He seems to
have accorded his protection to the Safavid shaykhs, because a
decree dated 1372 forbids governors and other officials in areas
under his jurisdiction to “ make any demands or write drafts on
places which are in the hands of the disciples [of Shaykh Sadr
al-DIn]’5.10 Apparently the property of the Safavid Order had
enjoyed immunity from taxation for some time, because the
decree referred to “ certain ancient tax exemptions enjoyed by the
estates and awqäf [lands held in mortmain] belonging to the
Safavid shrine” .
The Lords of Ardabïl 13

In 1390, the Qara Quyünlü amirs wrested Ägarbäyjän from


the Jala’irids, and Ardabïl was allotted as a suyürghäl to the amirs
of the Jagïrlü tribe of Turcomans, who quartered their cavalry,
retainers and servants for the summer in the pastures of the
Ardabïl area. In 1413, a dispute between the Jâgîrlü khän and his
overlord, the Qara Quyünlü ruler, led to the former’s plundering
Safavid property at Ardabïl and imprisoning a member of the
Safavid family. Given the political turmoil of the time, however,
it would seem that Shaykh Sadr al-Dïn was reasonably successful
in protecting from usurpation the property belonging to the
Ardabïl shrine and the lands in the province of Ardabïl and
surrounding districts which belonged to the Safavid family, and
in rendering immune from the ad hoc exactions of local officials
and military commanders the income deriving from this
property.
Shaykh Sadr al-Dïn died in 1391/2 and, like his father, was
buried in the Ardabïl sanctuary. Before his death he had nominated
his son Khvaja ‘Alï as his successor and vicegerent, and had
entrusted to him the “ prayer-mat of spiritual guidance”, and had
charged him with the care of God’s servants. Khvaja ‘Alï was head
of the Order from 1391/2 to his death on 15 May 1427. Under
the leadership of Khvaja ‘Alï, the esoteric doctrine of the Safavid
Order first assumed an unequivocally Shi‘ite character, but one
must take particular care not to give the pietistic legends and
additions of later Safavid ideologists the authority of historical
fact. Both Sayyid Ahmad Kasravï11 and Horst12 have rejected as
fabrications the legend of Khvaja ‘Alï’s three meetings with the
great conqueror Tïmür, who ravaged Western Asia in a series of
campaigns between 1381 and 1404. The last of these meetings
occurred in 1404, shortly before Tïmür’s death, when the latter
passed through Ardabïl on his way back to Central Asia after his
celebrated victory over the Ottoman Sultan Bâyazïd I at the battle
of Ankara (27 July 1402).
According to the traditional Safavid account, Tïmür sum­
moned Khvaja ‘Alï and gave him a poisoned cup to drink. A
number of dervishes present began rhythmically to chant the zikr
“ There is no god but God.” As their fervour increased, Khvaja
‘Alï went into a trance, and rose to join the dance. The heat
produced by the physical exercise sweated the poison out of his
body. Tïmür was so overcome with wonder that he seized the
hem of Khvaja ‘Alï’s robe, and became his disciple and convinced
H Iran under the Safavids
follower. The Târtkh-i 1Älam-ärä-yi ‘Abbäst makes no mention
of a poisoned cup, but states that Tïmür became Khväja ‘Alfs
disciple after a display of the Shaykh’s powers of telepathy. Tïmür
handed over to Khväja ‘All the prisoners taken in his campaign
against the Ottomans. Khväja ‘AIT set the men free and settled
them near the holy shrine of Ganja bi-Kül. Their descendants
became known as the Süfiyän-i Rümlü.13 The anonymous history
of Shäh Ismâ‘ïl14 contains a fuller version: “ The Shaykh [Khväja
‘All] begged for the liberation of the prisoners of Rüm15, and
Tïmür freed them all and appointed them to the service of the
family of Ardabïl. He also issued an order to the rulers and
governors of Rüm to the effect that the men whom he had freed
‘and who are Süfîs of the Safavid family’, wherever they be,
should not be oppressed or prevented from visiting their murshid
(spiritual director) ; they must be exempted from payment of
peasant dues as well as from government taxes. Out of his own
lawful money Tïmür bought fields and villages in the neighbour­
hood of Ardabïl and allotted them as a vaqf (benefaction) to the
resting-place of Shaykh Safi", which he recognised as constituting
asylum. He also made over to the Safavid family the land taxes
of the district. To those of the prisoners who expressed the desire
to return to Rüm, permission was granted to do so. Khväja ‘AIT
appointed his representatives to all the tribes and said : ‘Let your
comings and goings be not infrequent, for the advent of the
righteous Duodeciman religion is nigh and you must be ready to
sacrifice your lives.’” The lands purchased by Tïmür were not in
the Ardabïl district alone, but comprised villages and hamlets in
regions as far away as Isfahän and Hamadän. According to the
Silsilat al-Nasab, Tïmür is said to have constituted these lands into
a vaqf to the male issue of Khväja ‘Alï, but since the lands thus
donated had not come into the possession of the Safavid family
in their entirety before Tïmür’s death the following year in 1405,
the benefaction became non-operative, and at the time of the
compilation of the Silsilat al-Nasab (ca 1660), none of the lands
in question was in the possession of the descendants of Khväja ‘Alï.
As a further embellishment to this account, the instrument
relating to this benefaction is said to have fallen into the hands
of the troops of Shäh ‘Abbäs I near Balkh in 1602/3. ‘Abbäs I
refused to take cognisance of the acquisition of these lands by the
Safavid family. He said it had been a royal transaction; perhaps
The Lords of Ardabïl 15

the title-deeds had been drawn up, but the landowners in question
had not received payment; otherwise, he reasoned, at least a
portion of the property would still be in the hands of the
beneficiary. The view that the story of the benefaction by Tïmür
either to Khvaja ‘All and his descendants or to the shirine of
Shaykh Safi al-DIn itself is a fabrication is supported by the great
Safavid historian Iskandar Beg Munshl With his usual honesty,
he writes: “ Although I have not found this tradition in the
historical chronicles, or in any other accounts of the circumstances
of the Safavid family, either in prose or poetry, nevertheless it
is widely rumoured and disseminated by a succession of verbal
reports, and so I have written it down.” He goes on to say,
however, “ the actual vaqf document, written in an antique hand,
and embellished with the Mongol seal and with the personal seal
of Amïr Tïmür, fell into Safavid hands during a campaign in the
region of Balkh, while Safavid forces were laying siege to
Andikhüd, and was brought to the notice of Shäh ‘Abbas I ”.16
We are told that Tïmür’s son Shährukh also held Khvaja ‘All
in respect. In 1420, in the course of his campaign in north-western
Iran against the Qarä Quyünlü, Shährukh entered Ardabïl and
visited the tomb of Shaykh Safï al-DIn, and sought to obtain
spiritual blessings from the presence of Khväja ‘All. Shährukh was
in the habit of demonstrating his sympathy with popular religious
sentiment by showing veneration for the holy men and visiting
the tombs of the celebrated shaykhs of the regions through which
he passed, but his visit to Khvaja ‘Alï is particularly interesting
in view of the by then manifestly Shï‘ï tendencies of the Safavid
Order. It appears that the political benefits of such an action
outweighed in the mind of the Sunni ruler any religious antipathy
he may have felt, and this view is supported by the fact that on
several occasions Shährukh visited the shrine of the 8th ShTï
Imäm at Mashhad.
About the year 1427, Khväja ‘All decided to make the
pilgrimage to Mecca, and set out, leaving his third son, Ibrâhîm,
at Ardabïl as spiritual director and supervisor of the Safavid
mausoleum. Ibrâhîm could not bear the separation from his father,
and followed him to Mecca, where they performed the rites of
the pilgrimage together. From Mecca, they went to Jerusalem,
where Khväja ‘Alï died and was buried by Ibrâhîm. Ibrâhîm then
returned to Ardabïl to assume the duties of his father’s vicegerent
i6 Iran under the Safavids
and successor, which he performed until his own death in 1447.
Little is known about the development of the Safavid Order
during this period. What is clear, is that Ibrâhîm maintained and
strengthened the network of adherents who were actively
engaged in spreading Safavid propaganda in Anatolia and else­
where. At the head of this organisation was an officer called the
khalifat al-khulaja; this office has been felicitously termed by
Minorsky the “ special secretariat for Süfî affairs”. Through the
khalifat al-khulafa and his subordinates, called ptra, the leaders of
the Safavid Order and, later, the Safavid shahs, controlled and
maintained close contact with their Süfî disciples both within and
without the borders of Iran. The presence of large numbers of
Safavid supporters in eastern Anatolia ultimately came to be
recognised by the Ottomans as a serious threat to their authority
in that area. The khalifat al-khulafa was regarded as the deputy and
lieutenant of the murshid-i kätnil himself, that is, the perfect
spiritual director, or leader of the Safavid Order. All Süfîs of the
Order obeyed the orders of the khalifat al-khulafa as they would
the orders of their leader himself. It was the duty of Süfîs of the
Safavid Order to visit the Safavid shrine at Ardabïl and be
spiritually enriched by an audience with their Shaykh. We are told
that by the time of Shaykh Ibrâhîm the throng of disciples
crowding round the Safavid sanctuary had become so great that
not all of them could be admitted into the presence of the Shaykh.
Ibrâhîm excelled even his forefathers in the scale of his charity to
the poor and needy; the shrine had become so wealthy that its
kitchens were stocked with dishes and vessels of gold and süver,
and the Shaykh conducted himself like a king.
With the accession of IbrâhînTs son, Junayd, to the leadership
of the Safavid Order, the Safavid movement entered yet another
important phase in the two centuries of patient preparation for
the establishment of the Safavid dynasty. From his assumption of
the leadership, Junayd gave clear indications of his desire for
temporal power and kingship. It is no accident that he is the first
Safavid leader to whom the term sultan, indicative of temporal
authority, was applied. No importance should be attached to the
fact that pious tradition liked to apply the title sultan retroactively
to the early leaders of the Safavid family. No longer content with
spiritual authority alone, Junayd introduced a militant note by
inciting his disciples to carry on holy war against the infidel.17
The Lords of Ardabïl 17

These activities aroused first the suspicion and then the appre­
hension of the ruler of western Iran, the Qarä Quyünlü chief
Jahänshäh, whose authority extended from Äzarbäyjän and the
borders of Georgia to the Persian Gulf. Jahänshäh peremptorily
ordered Junayd to disperse his forces, leave Ardabïl, and go
wherever he pleased as long as it was outside his dominions.
Should Junayd fail to comply with these demands, Ardabïl would
be destroyed. Junayd fled from Ardabïl with a number of Süfïs
of the Safavid Order and, after some years in Asia Minor and
Syria, was finally given sanctuary by Jahänshäh’s enemy the Äq
Quyünlü ruler Üzün Hasan, whose base at that time was Diyär
Bakr. Junayd spent three years in Diyär Bakr (1456-9), and
cemented his political alliance with the Äq Quyünlü ruler by
marrying his sister, Khadya Begum. Üzün Hasan saw Junayd as
a useful ally in the event of an Äq Quyünlü drive eastward into
Iran against the Qarä Quyünlü. Similarly, the decision of the
Safavid leader to ally himself with the Sunnï Äq Quyünlü was
taken on the grounds of political and military expediency. Not
only were the Qarä Quyünlü too powerful militarily to permit
any successful Safavid military coup in Äzarbäyjän (Junayd had
tacitly acknowledged this in abandoning Ardabïl, the nerve-centre
of the Safavid movement), but the Qarä Quyünlü were also rivals
to the Safavids on the religious level too. Although the Qarä
Quyünlü were not militant Shï‘ïs, they had been “ trying to unify
their adepts on a shï‘a platform”,18 and so they were much more
likely to clash with the Safavids on ideological grounds than were
the Äq Quyünlü.
In 1460, Junayd led a force of 10,000 men into Shïrvân.
According to some sources, this was a repetition on a larger scale
of his earlier raids on Circassia, and he intended merely to march
across the territory of the Shïrvânshâh in order to reach Circassia.
Other sources, however, state that his object was the conquest of
Shïrvân, which would then constitute a convenient base for a
subsequent invasion of Iran. In view of the size ofjunayd’s army,
this seems much more probable. The expedition ended in disaster,
for Junayd was attacked by the Shïrvânshâh on the banks of the
river Kur, near Tabarsarän on 4 March 1460, and was killed in
the battle.
The value of the long years of patient ideological preparation
by the Safavid organisation for the seizure of power in Iran now
i8 Iran under the Safavids
became apparent. Not only did the Safavid movement not
disintegrate, but, with the succession of Junayd’s son Hay dar, its
drive to achieve temporal power accelerated. Haydar’s first move
was to continue the political and military alliance with the Äq
Quyünlü by marrying Üzün Hasan’s daughter ‘Alamshâh Begum
(also known as HalTma Begum Äghä and Marta) whose mother,
Despina Khätün, was the daughter of Calo Johannes, the Emperor
of Trebizond. Like his father, Haydar wielded both spiritual and
temporal authority : “ inwardly, following the example of shaykhs
and men of God, he walked the path of spiritual guidance and
defence of the faith ; outwardly, he was a leader sitting on a throne
in the manner of princes”.19 It could only be a matter of time
before Haydar, like his father, would make a bid for a kingdom
of his own. Before trying conclusions with the Qarä Quyünlü,
however, Haydar, again like his father, gave his men battle
experience by leading them in raids against the “ infidels” of
Circassia and Däghistän —probably the Christian Alans (Ossetes)
living north of the Darial pass, and the Kabard Circassians. In
order to reach these regions, it was necessary for Haydar to cross
the territory of the Shïrvânshâh, who had defeated and killed his
father in 1460. The Shïrvânshâh allowed Haydar’s first two
expeditions, in 1483 or i486, and 1487, to cross his territory
unopposed. In 1488, however, when Haydar sacked the town of
Shamâkhï, the capital of Shïrvân, the Shïrvânshâh, Farrukhyasär,
appealed for help to his son-in-law, the Äq Quyünlü Sultän
Ya‘qüb: “ At the moment,” said Farrukhyasär, “ Haydar owns no
territory, but he has mobilized a warlike army, and his ambitions
will not be contained within the confines of the district of Ardabïl.
Nor, if he succeeds in acquiring a kingdom such as mine, will he
for long be satisfied with such a meagre empire. On the contrary,
it will merely whet his appetite.”20 Sultän Ya‘qüb, persuaded by
these arguments, sent 4,000 men to the assistance of Farrukhyasär.
This detachment played the decisive part in the defeat of Haydar’s
army on 9 July 1488 at Tabarsarän, only a short distance from
the place where his father had been killed in 1460. In the course
of the battle, Haydar received a mortal arrow-wound, and was
buried on the battlefield by his followers.
What had brought about this volte-face in Äq Quyünlü policy
toward the Safavids? The great Äq Quyünlü ruler, Üzün Hasan,
had died in 1478, and had been succeeded first by his son KhaEl
The Lords of Ardabll 19
and, later the same year, by his younger son Ya‘qüb. From the
outset, relations between Haydar and Ya‘qüb were not smooth,
and Haydar recognised that he was no longer persona grata at the
Äq Quyünlü court. Whereas Üzün Hasan had seen Junayd as a
useful ally against the Qarä Quyünlü, and was prepared to
continue to extend his friendship to Haydar even after he himself

2. Court usher (yasavul), a qizilbäsh officer

had destroyed the Qarä Quyünlü empire in 1467, Ya‘qüb


increasingly saw the presence of a well-armed and trained Safavid
force within his own kingdom as a potential danger to his own
position.
Shortly before his third and fatal expedition to Shir van in 1488,
Haydar, instructed in a dream by the Imam ‘AIT, had devised for
his followers the distinctive scarlet headgear, with twelve gores
commemorating the twelve ShTI Imams, which henceforth was
to be the distinctive mark of the supporters of the Safavid house, '
and which led the Ottomans derisively to dub them qizilbäsh, or
20 Iran under the Safavids
redheads. This name, used by the Ottomans in a pejorative sense,
was adopted as a mark of pride. Strictly speaking, the name
qizilbäsh applied only to those Turcoman tribes inhabiting eastern
Anatolia, northern Syria and the Armenian highlands which were
converted by the Safavid da va, or propaganda, and became
disciples of the Safavid shaykhs at Ardabll. Eventually, however,
the term came to be applied loosely to certain non-Turcoman
supporters of the Safavids. According to the anonymous history
of Shäh IsmäTl, when Haydar first showed the Süfî täj (as this
distinctive headgear came to be called) to Üzün Hasan, the latter
kissed it and put it on his head. His son Ya‘qüb, however, refused
to wear it, and this was the origin of the enmity between Haydar
and Ya‘qüb. This story, se non e veto (and it cannot be true if the
date for Haydar’s invention of the täj is correct, because Üzün
Hasan died in 1478) e ben trovato. After the death of Haydar,
Ya‘qüb is said to have forbidden his subjects to wear the qizilbäsh
täj. These evil actions, comments the Safavid chronicler piously,
led to the destruction of the Äq Quyünlü dynasty.
For the second time, the Safavid movement had lost its leader
in battle, but its momentum continued to carry it forward
inexorably. O f Haydar’s sons, only the three he had by ‘Alamshäh
Begum are of importance: ‘AIT, Ibrâhîm and IsmäH. O f these,
Ibrâhîm appears to have defected to the Äq Quyünlü;21 this
would account for the silence of the Safavid historical tradition
regarding his fate. The eldest son, ‘Alï, succeeded his father as head
of the Safavid Order, and the political aspirations of the Safavids
were made even clearer by ‘All’s adoption of the title pädishäh
(king). Ya‘qüb Sultän’s anxieties, temporarily stilled by the death
of Haydar, were aroused in a more acute form by reports that
‘AIT was preparing to avenge his father’s death. Ya‘qüb sent a
detachment of troops to Ardabïl and arrested the three brothers
and their mother, who was his own sister; the prisoners were
interned in the fortress of Istakhr in Färs, and ‘AIEs life was spared
only at the intercession of his mother.
The prospects of a successful culmination of the Safavid plans
to seize power in Iran appeared remote. In December 1490,
however, Ya‘qüb Sultän died, and the Äq Quyünlü empire was
torn by civil war as each of some half dozen claimants to the
throne sought to eliminate all his rivals. One of these, Rustam,
hit upon the plan of making use of the fighting élan of the Safavid
The Lords of Ardabïl 21

supporters in his struggle against his rivals. Accordingly, in 1493,


the Safavid brothers were released after four and a half years of
imprisonment. ‘AIT was received by Rustam at the Äq Quyünlü
capital, Tabriz, with a great display of respect, and Rustam said
to the Safavid leader: “ What has been done to you is past, and
with God’s help I will make amends for it. You are as a brother
to me, and at my death you shall become King of Iran.“22 ‘All’s
forces played a vital part in Rustam’s defeat of his principal rival,
but the following year, 1494, Rustam in his turn grew alarmed
at the obvious strength of Safavid support, and he re-arrested ‘AIT
and his brothers. Hearing that Rustam planned to put him to
death, ‘AIT escaped from Rustam’s camp and made for Ardabïl,
accompanied by the small band of seven devoted Safavid sup­
porters known as the ahl-i ikhtisäs, or persons singled out for
special duty, who played such a vital role in bringing the Safavid
revolution to a successful conclusion. Rustam realised the urgent
need to intercept the Safavid brothers before they made contact
with their base at Ardabïl. “ Should Sultan ‘AIT once enter
Ardabïl,’’ he said, “ (which God forbid!) the deaths of 10,000
Turcomans would be of no avail.” On the way to Ardabïl, Sultan
‘AIThad a premonition of his approaching death, and he designated
his brother Ismâ‘Tl as his successor as head of the Safavid Order.
“ I desire you,” he said, “ to avenge me and your father and your
ancestors upon the child of Hasan Pâdishâh [Üzün Hasan]. For
the die of Heaven’s choice has been cast in your name, and before
long you will come out of Gïlân like a burning sun, and with your
sword sweep unbelief from the face of the earth.”23
The small Safavid band was overtaken near Ardabïl by the Äq
Quyünlü troops, and ‘Alï was killed. Isma‘Tl reached Ardabïl in
safety, and took refuge first at the Safavid shrine. Then, when
Rustam instituted a house-to-house search for him in Ardabïl,
IsmâTl was moved from one hiding-place to another by his
devoted supporters for a period of six weeks. His mother was
tortured by the Äq Quyünlü, but without avail, since she was
ignorant of her son’s whereabouts. After eluding capture in
Ardabïl for six weeks, Ismâ‘ïl was passed from hand to hand by
devotees and sympathisers until he reached the court at Lâhïjân
in Gïlân of a local ruler named Kâr Kiyâ Mïrzâ ‘Alï; there he was
given sanctuary. The Äq Quyünlü were still hot on his trail. A
woman of the Zu’l-Qadar tribe who was one of the people who
22 Iran under the Safavids
had sheltered him in Ardabïl, was seized and put to death after
having revealed what she knew of the escape route followed by
Ismä‘3 . Rustam sent spies into Gïlân disguised as Süfîs of the
Safavid Order, to try and ascertain IsmäTTs whereabouts. When
they reported that Ismä‘3 was at Lähljän, Rustam sent three
successive envoys to Kär Kiyâ Mîrzâ ‘Alï, demanding that he
surrender IsmäTL Kär Kiyâ Mîrzâ refused these demands, though
with considerable trepidation. An embellishment by pious tradi­
tion states that Kâr Kiyâ Mîrzâ, when he swore on oath to
Rustam’s envoys, that Ismä‘3 had no foothold on the soil of Gïlân,
had Ismä‘3 suspended in a wooden cage in order not to perjure
himself. Not satisfied with Kâr Kiyâ Mïrzâ’s denials, Rustam was
making preparations to invade Gïlân with a large force, when his
own territory was invaded by his cousin Ahmad and he himself
was killed (1497).
Further internecine struggles between rival Äq Quyünlü princes
gave Ismâ‘ïl a breathing-space at Lähljän, and he and his close
advisers made their final plans for their attempt to overthrow the
Äq Quyünlü state in Iran. It is often assumed that Ismä‘3 himself
was solely responsible, by his charismatic leadership, for bringing
the Safavid revolution to a successful conclusion. When one
considers that Ismä‘3 was only seven years old when he took
refuge in G3 än; that he was only twelve when he emerged from
G3 än in 1499 to make his bid for power; and no more than
fourteen when he was crowned Shäh at Tabriz in 1501 as the first
king of the Safavid dynasty, it is clear that this could not have
been so. The responsibility for maintaining the momentum of the
Safavid revolutionary movement lay primarily with the small
band of seven close advisers known as the ahl-i ikhtisäs, already
referred to. It was V. Minorsky who first observed that “ the basic
organisation of the early Safavids” was “ very simüar to the single
party of a modern totalitarian state”,24 and the function of the
ahl-i ikhtisäs is closely analogous to that of the small band of
men through whom Lenin controlled the Bolshevik movement
before the revolution, a group given formal status in 1919 as the
Politburo.25
Throughout the almost five years spent by Ismä‘3 in hiding at
Lâhïjân, he maintained close contact with his disciples in Anatolia,
the southern Caucasus and Äzarbäyjän. Since his qizilbäsh sup­
porters were in the main Turcoman tribesmen, who spoke a form
The Lords o f Ardabïl 23

of Turkish, IsmäTl addressed to them simple verses in the Äzarl


dialect of Turkish, in order to make his propaganda more
effective. In these poems, he adopted the pen-name (takhallus) of
“ Khatâ’ï ”. During the last half of the fifteenth century, before
the establishment of the Safavid state, there is no doubt whatever
that Safavid propaganda asserted that the Safavid leader was not
merely the representative of the Hidden Imam but the Hidden
Imam himself; the Safavid leader was even apotheosised as a
divine incarnation. It is alleged that the disciples of Junayd
(1447—60) openly addressed him as “ God”, and his son as “ Son
of God”, and in his praise they said: “ he is the Living One, there
is no God but he”.26 When Haydar became head of the Safavid
Order in 1460, the Sufi khalifas “ came from every direction and
foolishly announced the glad tidings of his divinity”.27 The
evidence of Ismâ‘ïTs own poems is incontrovertible proof that he
wished his followers to consider him a divine incarnation. To take
just one example:
I am Very God, Very God, Very God!
Come now, O blind man who has lost the path, behold the Truth!
I am that Agens Absolutus of whom they speak.28
How was it that religious beliefs of such an extremist and
antinomian character found such ready acceptance in Anatolia and
Kurdistan in the fourteenth century? To answer that question one
has to go back to the capture of Baghdad in 1258 by the Mongols,
and the extinction of the caliphate. This event not only marks a
watershed in the political history of the Islamic world, but had
far-reaching effects on religious developments as well. For 600
years the caliphate had been the visible symbol of the unity of
the Islamic world, and the upholder of the orthodoxy of the
Islamic faith. The religious tolerance (some might say indifference)
of the Mongol rulers deprived Sunnï or “ orthodox” Islam of
its dominant position, and created conditions which facilitated
the development not only of Shi‘ism but of popular religious
beliefs of every kind. From the late thirteenth century onwards, a
wide variety of extremist Shï‘ï sects flourished in Anatolia and
Kurdistan,29 and many of these groups avoided persecution by
the Ottoman government as schismatics only by placing them­
selves under “ the all-embracing and tolerant umbrella of the
Bektâshï organization”.30 Anatolia in particular became a verit-
24 Iran under the Safavids
able melting-pot of religious ideas. The two principal ingredients
in this pot were Shihsrn and Sufism, and in the course of the
fourteenth century these two ingredients became permanently
blended. While I cannot concur entirely with Henri Corbin’s
dictum that: “ True Shfism is the same as Tasavvuf[i.eSufism],
and similarly, genuine and real Tasavvufcannot be anything other
than Shfism ”,31 this statement embodies in a rather extreme form
a truth which is the key to the understanding of the history of
Persia in the centuries during which Safavid propagandists were
steadily making converts and preparing the ground for the
Safavid revolution. Seyyed Hosscin Nasr has pointed out that the
connecting link between Shihsm and Sufism is ‘All, the ist Imam:
“ in as much as ‘All stands at the origin of Shi‘ism, and is at the
same time the outstanding representative of Islamic esotericism,
the sources of Shfism and Sufism are in this repect the same and
they have many elements in common”.32
From the blending of these two ingredients was produced, after
a period of fermentation, the heady brew of apotheosis of the
Safavid leader, and those who quaffed this brew were inspired
with the fanatical fighting spirit to which the account of a
contemporary Venetian merchant bears independent testimony:
This Sophy [Süfï] is loved and reverenced by his people as a God, and
especially by his soldiers, many of whom enter into battle without
armour, expecting their master Ismael to watch over them in the fight.
The name of God is forgotten throughout Persia and only that of Ismael
remembered ; if any one fall when riding or dismounted, he appeals to
no other God but Shiac (Shaykh), using the name in two ways: first
as God Shiac, secondly as prophet: as the Mussulmans say “laylla, laylla
Mahamet resuralla” [lä iläha ilallahu wa Muhammadun rasülullähi], the
Persians say “Laylla yllala Ismael velialla” [lä iläha ilällähu (va) Ismä'Tl
vollallähi}; besides this everyone, and particularly his soldiers, consider
him immortal.33
The title valx alläh bestowed on IsmâTl by his followers indicates
that they accorded him a status equal to that of ‘All himself as
the “ vicar” or “ lieutenant” of God par excellence.
In August 1499, Ismâ‘TI, or more likely the ahl-i ikhtisäs, decided
that the time was ripe for the supreme bid for power. This was
indeed the moment of truth for the Safavid movement. By the
loss of three successive leaders in battle, the movement had already
suffered and overcome more serious setbacks than had been
The Lords of Ardabll 25
experienced by any other revolutionary movement in history.
Not only would the morale of the qizilbäsh be unlikely to sur­
vive another disaster unscathed, but on this occasion the leader,
Ismâ4ïl, had no successor; it was the Safavids themselves who had
insisted that pidar-farzandï, that is, the dynastic principle, was the
sole criterion to be used to determine the succession, and not nass,
or designation; IsmaTl as yet had no son, and his only surviving
brother, Ibrâhîm, had defected to the Äq Quyünlü. Kâr Kiyâ
Mîrzâ tried to dissuade Ismä‘Il from his enterprise, emphasising
his extreme youth (he was still only twelve), and reminding him
of the fate of predecessors. Undeterred, Ismâ‘îl set out with the
ahl-i ikhtisäs from Lâhîjân to Ardabïl, and was joined en route by
1,500 men from Syria and Asia Minor. Threatened by the Äq
Quyünlü Governor of Ardabïl, IsmäTl decided his forces were
insufficient to risk a confrontation, and withdrew to the Talish
district on the borders of Äzarbäyjän and Gïlân. During the winter
of 1499/1500, both the Äq Quyünlü and the Shïrvânshâh
Farrukhyasär made unsuccessful attempts to seize or kill Ismâeîl.
Returning to Ardabïl in the sping of 1500, Ismä‘Il dispatched
heralds to his supporters in Syria and Asia Minor, instructing them
to meet him at a rendezvous at Arzinjän in the Armenian
highlands. On his way to the rendezvous, Ismâ‘ïl was joined by
a contingent of Turcomans of the Bäyburtlü tribe, and when he
reached Arzinjän he found 7,000 men from the Ustäjlü, Shämlü,
Rümlü, Takkalü, Zu’l-Qadar, Afshär, Qäjär and Varsäq tribes
awaiting him. About the same time, the two Äq Quyünlü princes
who had survived a fresh outburst of dynastic strife, Alvand and
Muräd, had decided on an amicable partition of the Äq Quyünlü
empire: Alvand retained Äzarbäyjän, Arrän, Muqän and Diyär
Bakr (the north and west), and Muräd ‘Iräq-i ‘Ajam, Kirmän and
Färs (the centre and south).
IsmäTl did not immediately invade the Äq Quyünlü empire;
instead, he led his men against the Shïrvânshâh. Two motives may
have influenced his decision: the practical desire to test his army
against a less formidable enemy before risking a pitched battle
with the Äq Quyünlü ; and a psychological motive, namely, the
desire to avenge the deaths of his father and grandfather at the
hands of the rulers of Shïrvân. In December 1500, Ismâ‘ïl crossed
the river Kur and brought Farrukhyasär to battle near Fort
Gulistän; Farrukhyasär was defeated and killed. Ismä*!! proceeded
26 Iran under the Safavids
to the coast and captured Bäkü, but marched back toward
Nakhchivän on hearing the news that Alvand had crossed the
Aras and was marching to meet him. The two armies met at
Sharür. IsmTïl had only 7,000 men against Alvand’s 30,000, but
IsmaTTs victory was so complete that some 8,000 Äq Quyünlü
fell in the battle. This decisive victory gave Ismâ‘îl control of
Äzarbäyjän. He entered Tabriz, where he was crowned in the
summer of 1501. Although Alvand was collecting another army
at Arzinjän, and Muräd remained undefeated in the south with
a large army, the battle of Sharür was in fact decisive. IsmaTl
had captured the Äq Quyünlü capital, Tabriz, and the Safavid
revolution, after two centuries of preparation, was an accom­
plished fact. Coins were minted in IsmäTTs name, but his most
important action was to pronounce that the official religion of the
new Safavid state would be Ithnä ‘Asharï, or “ Twelver”, Shfism.
The implications of this pronouncement, which changed the
whole course of subsequent Iranian history, will be considered in
the next chapter.
2
Theocratic state: the reign o f Shäh IsmäTl I
(1501-1524)

The announcement by Shäh Ismä‘Tl at Tabriz in 1501 that the Ithnä


‘AsharT, or “ Twelver”, form of Shi‘ism was to be the official
religion of the newly established but not yet consolidated Safavid
state was the single most important decision taken by IsmäTl. As
previously noticed, Ithnä ‘AsharT Shi‘ism lay at the heart of one
of the bases of the power of the Safavid leaders, namely, their
claim to be the representatives on earth of the 12th Imam or Mahdl
(if not the Imäm himself) ; the cult of 4All had been inextricably
bound up with the development of Iran of Sufism, or Islamic
esotericism, from at least the thirteenth century, and the position
of murshid-i kämil, or perfect spiritual director, was the second basis
of the power of the Safavid leaders; finally, by asserting that ‘All’s
younger son, Husayn, married the daughter of Yazdigird III, the
last of the Sasanid kings, ShT‘Ts had linked the family o f ‘AIT with
the ancient Iranian monarchical tradition, and the divine right of
the Iranian kings, deriving from their possession of the “ kingly
glory”, was the third basis of the power of the Safavid shahs. Ithnä
‘Asharl Shi‘ism was therefore the most important element in
Safavid religious propaganda and political ideology.
Shi‘ism was, in origin, a political movement, the Shï‘at ‘AIT
(Party of ‘All), which supported the claim to the caliphate o f ‘All,
the cousin and son-in-law of the Prophet Muhammad. Shi‘is
believe that Muhammad formally designated ‘All as his successor
(khalifa) at a ceremony at GhadTr Khumm in the year 632. ShT‘Ts
therefore regard the first three caliphs (Abü Bakr, ‘Umar and
‘Uthmän) as usurpers, and the ritual cursing of these persons has
always been a proper duty of ShI‘Ts, although the emphasis placed
on it varied from time to time. In the early days of the Safavid
state, when revolutionary fervour was still strong, great emphasis
was placed on this ritual cursing. Safavid supporters known as

27
3. Shah Ismâ‘ïl I

tabarrâ’iyân (those who have pledged themselves body and soul to


the shah), walked through the streets and bazaars cursing not only
the three “ rightly-guided” caliphs mentioned above, but also all
enemies of ‘Alï and the other Imams, and Sunnis in general.
Anyone who failed to respond without delay, “ May it [the
cursing] be more and not less! ”, was liable to be put to death on
the spot.1
Despite the two centuries of propaganda carried out by the
Safavids, the promulgation of Shihsm as the state religion was
The reign of Shah Ism dû I 29

fraught with danger, and some of IsmTTTs advisers were worried


about the reaction to his announcement. “ O f the 200,000-300,000
people in Tabriz,” they said, “ two-thirds are Sunnis. . .we fear
that the people may say they do not want a ShTT sovereign, and
if (which God forbid!) the people reject Shi‘ism, what can we do
about it?” IsmäTTs reply was uncompromising: he had been
commissioned to perform this task, he said, and God and the
immaculate Imams were his companions; he feared no one.
“ With God’s help,” he said, “ if the people utter one word of
protest, I will draw the sword and leave not one of them alive.”
Brave words indeed; but the political reality was that the Äq
Quyünlü prince Alvand, defeated at the battle of Sharür, was
mobilising a fresh army in the Anatolian highlands, and in the
south, Sultan Muräd, another Äq Quyünlü prince, had an army
of 70,000 men, a force nearly six times larger than anything Ismâ‘ïl
could put into the field. Whatever he might say in public, Ismä‘Il
was worried about the outcome, but he was reassured by ‘AIT
in a dream: “ O son, do not let anxiety trouble your m ind.. .let
all the qizilbäsh be present in the mosque fully armed, and let them
surround the people; if, when the khutba [formal address in a
mosque] is recited, the people make any movement, the qizilbäsh
will be able to deal with the situation, since they surround the

The imposition of Shihsm on a country which, officially at least, was


still predominantly Sunni, obviously could not be achieved without
incurring opposition, or without a measure of persecution of those who
refused to conform. Disobedience was punishable by death, and the
threat of force was there from the beginning. As far as the ordinary
people were concerned, the existence of this threat seems to have been
sufficient. The ‘ulamä were more stubborn. Some were put to death;
many more fled to areas where Sunnism still prevailed - to the Timurid
court at Harät and, after the conquest of Khuräsän by the Safavids, to
the Özbeg capital at Bukhara.3
What were the benefits deriving from IsmäH’s action? First,
it harnessed the driving power of a dynamic religious ideology
in the service of the new state, and thus gave the latter the strength
to surmount its initial problems, and the momentum to carry it
through the serious crises which faced the state after the death of
Shäh Ismäffi I in 1524. Second, it clearly differentiated the Safavid
state from the SunnT Ottoman empire, the major power in the
30 Iran under the Safavids
Islamic world in the sixteenth century, and thus gave it territorial
and political identity. It can, of course, be argued that the
establishment of a militant ShT‘I state on the Ottoman border was
an act of provocation which made conflict with the Ottomans
inevitable, and to that extent militated against the interests of Iran.
It is improbable, however, that Ottoman imperialist aspirations
would not have embraced Iran during the sixteenth century, the
period of the greatest expansion of the Ottoman empire, whether
or not the Safavid revolution had succeeded; the fact that it did
succeed gave the Safavid state at least a chance of survival against
the most formidable military machine ever seen in the world of
Islam. In short, the imposition by the Safavids of Ithnä ‘AsharT
Shfism as the official religion of the state had the effect of
producing a greater awareness of national identity, and thus of
creating a stronger and more centralised government.
Once Ismä‘Tl had declared that Ithnä ‘AsharT Shi‘ism was the
official religion of the Safavid state, there was an urgent need to
impose doctrinal uniformity by directing and accelerating the
propagation of the ShT‘Tfaith. We are told that there was an acute
shortage of works on ShTT jurisprudence, and that a religious
judge produced a copy of an ancient manual on the fundamentals
of the faith which served as a basis for religious instruction. There
was also a shortage of ShT‘T ‘ulamä, and Ismâ‘ïl was forced to
import some ShT‘T theologians from Syria. To supervise the
propagation of the ShT‘Tfaith, and to act as head of all the members
of the religious classes, Ismä‘Tl appointed an officer termed the sadr.
The office of sadr had existed in the Timurid and Turcoman states;
the important difference in this office in the Safavid state was that
the sadr was a political appointee, and the office of sadr was used
by the Safavid shahs as a means of controlling the religious classes.
Since the Safavids equated belief in the right religion with loyalty
to the state, it was necessary to root out heresy, and this task was
also part of the duties of the sadr. Upon the successful imposition
of doctrinal uniformity depended the smooth operation of the
temporal arm of government and the ability of the state to survive
hostile attacks by its SunnT neighbours. This task, initially the chief
part of the sadr s duties, had been largely achieved by the end of
Ismä‘TTs reign; thereafter, the energies of the sadr were devoted
mainly to the overall administration of the religious institution
and to the supervision of vaqf property. As a result, the political
influence of the sadrs declined.
The reign of Shäh Ismactl I 3i
The administrative system of the early Safavid state was
complex: on the one hand, the Safavids were the inheritors of a
bureaucratic system which resembled the traditional bureaucracy
of a mediaeval Muslim state; on the other hand, Shäh Ismä‘11 was
faced by the problem of how to incorporate into the administrative
system of the new state the tightly-knit Sufi" organisation of the
Safaviyya Order which had prepared the ground for, and had
been responsible for the success of, the Safavid revolution. One
of the basic problems which face all revolutionary leaders is, how
to stop the revolution once the opposition has been overthrown,
how to cool what Trotsky called the “ red-hot atmosphere” of
the revolutionary struggle and how to repair the administrative
fabric of the state, restore law and order and return to economic
prosperity. Inevitably, there are always those among the ranks of
the revolutionaries who do not want life to return to normal, who
wish to live in an atmosphere of permanent revolution and who
want the revolution units to continue in existence as “ organs of
struggle and preparation for a new insurrection Those who hold
the power in the new state, however, wish to transform such units
into “ organs for consecrating the victory” , and to bring them
under the control of the central administration.4The problem was
exacerbated by the fact that, even after the establishment of the
Safavid state in 1501, fresh recruits, who were aflame with all
the revolutionary zeal possessed by those who had brought the
Safavids to power, kept arriving in Iran from Anatolia. IsmäTl,
in order to siphon off this excessive revolutionary fervour, dis­
patched a number of military expeditions to Anatolia, culminat­
ing in the major expedition under Nür ÉAlï Khalifa in 1512.
This force penetrated deep into Anatolia, sacked the town of
Tuqät, and inflicted several defeats on Ottoman armies. These
attacks on Ottoman territory were one of the factors which led
to the Ottoman invasion of Iran in 1514.
Another factor which complicated the situation confronting
Shäh IsmäTl in 1501 was the mutual antipathy between the Tâjïk,
or Iranian, elements in Safavid society, and the Turkish, or more
properly Turcoman, tribal forces (qizilbäsh) which had been
largely reponsible for bringing the Safavids to power but which
in many cases came from outside the borders of Iran. Friction
between these two elements was inevitable because, as Minorsky
put it, the qizilbäsh “ were no party to the national Iranian
tradition. Like oil and water, the Turcomans and Persians did not
32 Iran under the Safavids
mix freely, and the dual character of the population profoundly
affected both the military and civil administration of Persia,”5
The Iranian elements were, in general, the “ men of the pen” of
classical Islamic society. They filled the ranks of the bureaucracy,
and represented the long Iranian bureaucratic tradition which
antedated Islam and which, after the islamisation of Iran, had
provided administrative continuity under a succession of foreign
rulers —Arabs, Turks, Mongols, Tatars and Turcomans. In the
opinion of the qizilbäsh, Tajiks, or “ non-Turks”, a pejorative
term they applied to Iranians, were only fit to look after accounts
and administrative matters generally. They had no right to
exercise military command, and the qizilbäsh considered it a
dishonour to be ordered to serve under an Iranian officer. They,
the qizilbäsh, were the “ men of the sword” . The Iranian view
of the qizilbäsh was equally stereotyped. If qizilbäsh officers were
given political posts, or encroached on administrative areas which
the Iranians considered to be their own preserve, the latter
resented it. Iranians did not expect the qizilbäsh to have a taste for
poetry or the fine arts. Such pursuits were the prerogative of
cultured and civilised gentlemen, in other words, the Iranians.
The perception each ethnic group had of the other was, of
course, a stereotype, but had enough underlying reality to cause
a power struggle between the two groups in the early Safavid
state. What steps did Shäh Ismä‘H take to try and effect a synthesis
of these disparate elements and to combine them into one
harmonious administrative system? In the first place, he created
the new office of vakxl-i nafs-i nafis-i humäyün. This officer was to
be the vicegerent of the shah, and to represent him both in his
spiritual capacity as murshid-i kämil, or perfect spiritual director,
of the Safavid Order, and in his temporal function as pädishäh,
or king. The creation of this office clearly represented an attempt
on the part of IsmäTl to bridge the gap between a theocratic form
of government and a bureaucratic one. Since the qizilbäsh
considered that it was merely a fitting reward for their services
to the Safavid cause that they should fill the principal offices of
the Safavid state, it was natural that the first holder of this new
office, initially the most powerful in the new state, should be one
of their number, and Isma‘Il selected one of the ahl-i ikhtisäs, the
“ nucleus staff” of the Safavid Order mentioned earlier, the
qizilbäsh officer Husayn Beg Lala Shämlö. The second action taken
The reign of Shah Ismahl I 33

by IsmäH in his attempt to build a bridge between Turcoman and


Tajik was to make the sadr, the head of the religious classes, a
political appointee; in so far as this arrangement gave the sadr
political influence, he formed a link between the largely Iranian
ranks of the ‘ulamä and the political branch of the administration,
dominated during the early Safavid period by qizilbäsh military
commanders.
Reference has been made to the theocratic nature of the Safavid
state during the reign of Ismâ‘ïl I, and to the strongly military
character of the administration. These are perhaps the two most
important aspects of the Safavid state between 1501 and 1514. The
shah was the apex of the whole administrative structure. His rule
was in theory absolute. He was the living emanation of the
godhead, the Shadow of God upon earth. Since the ruler was
considered to be directly appointed by God, his subjects were
required to obey his commands whether these be just or unjust.
As the representative of the Mahdl, the Safavid shah was closer
to the source of absolute Truth than were other men, and
consequently disobedience on the part of his subjects was sin. The
prevalent view was that the imperfections of the ruler did not
invalidate his authority as the lieutenant of God, the vicar of the
Prophet, the successor of the Imams and the representative of the
Mahdl during the occultation of the latter. As we have seen, many
of the qizilbäsh believed that IsmäTl was the manifestation of God
Himself. The inevitable result was that the shah’s power was
absolute; indeed, that astute seventeenth-century observer, the
Huguenot jeweller Chardin, considered the power of the kings
of Iran to be greater than that of any other monarch in the world.
As an apparent paradox, but in reality a logical consequence in
a society devoid of powerful municipal and corporate institutions
enjoying a considerable measure of autonomy, the absolute nature
of the shah’s authority was not a threat to, but rather a guarantee
of, the individual freedom and security of the lower classes of
society. Sir John Malcolm put it succinctly: “ If the shah is not
feared,” he said, “ the nation suffers a great increase of misery
under a multitude of tyrants.”6 It was the persons who stood
between the shah and the mass of his people, the nobility, the court
functionaries and the serried ranks of officials, both civil and
military, lay and ecclesiastic (to use Western terms), on whom the
shah’s anger might be vented without warning, and who stood
34 Iran under the Safavids
in constant fear of their lives. Anyone who held office in the state
was considered to be the slave of the shah; his property, his life
and the lives of his children, were at the disposal of the shah, who
held the absolute power of “ loosing and binding”, to use the
terminology of the time.
The predominantly military character of the early Safavid state
derived from the circumstances attending the rise of the Safavids
to power. It was what Minorsky termed the “ dynamic ideology”
of the Safavid movement that made converts to the Safavid cause,
but this cause would not have achieved political power without
the cutting edge of qizilbäsh swords. As already noted, the
qizilbäsh were conscious of the debt due to them. The use of such
terms to describe the Safavid state as qalamraw-i qizilbäsh (the
qizilbäsh realm), dawlat-i qizilbäsh (the qizilbäsh state) and
mamlikat-i qizilbäsh (the qizilbäsh kingdom), make this abundantly
clear. Similarly, the shah is commonly referred to as pädishäh-i
qizilbäsh (the king of the qizilbäsh), a term which appears to
exclude altogether from consideration the king’s Iranian subjects !7
It should occasion no surprise, therefore, that the qizilbäsh
demanded, and obtained, the principal offices of state after the
accession of Shäh Ismä‘Tl. As already mentioned, a qizilbäsh was
appointed to the new office of vakïl-i nafs-i nafis-i humäyün, and
thus became the most powerful person in the state after the shah.
Qizilbäsh officers naturally filled the two highest military posts,
that of amir al-umarä, or commander-in-chief of the army, and
that of qürchïbâshï. The function of the qürchïbâshï, who ultimately
superseded the amir al-umarä as commander-in-chief of the qürchïs
or qizilbäsh tribal regiments, is initially obscure. Thus, of the five
principal offices of state under IsmäTl I, three —and these the most
important - were held by qizilbäsh officers. Iranians filled the
office of sadr, and also that of vazïr. The vazïr, traditionally the
head of the bureaucracy and hence one of the most powerful
officers of state, was reduced to subordinate status during the reign
of Ismâ‘ïl I as a result of first, the creation of the office of vakil,
who became a sort o f“ super-minister ”, and second, the tendency
of the two powerful military officers, the amir al-umarä and
qürchïbâshï, to encroach on the preserves of other officials and in
general to have a considerable say in political affairs.
During the reign of Shäh Ismâ‘ïl I, then, the various branches
of government, religious, political and military, were not rigidly
The reign o f Shah IsmäTl I 35
separated compartments. There was considerable overlapping of
authority, and the relative importance of the chief offices varied
from time to time. When dealing with this period, therefore, such
terms as “ civil” , “ military”, “ religious” and “ political” must
be used with caution, and must be construed within the context
of the actual powers, so far as these can be determined, of the
official concerned. Perhaps the most striking illustration of the
effect of the domination of the polity by the military is the way
in which members of the religious classes, such as sadrs and qâzls,
frequently held not only military rank but also military
command.
When IsmäTl was crowned at Tabriz in 1501, he was master
only of the province of Ägarbäyjän; it took ten years for him to
conquer the rest of Iran. He also captured Baghdad, but that city
was not destined to remain in Safavid hands for long. The main
stages in the expansion of the Safavid empire were: the defeat of
the remaining Äq Quyünlü forces near Hamadän (1503) (this gave
IsmäTl control of central and southern Iran) ; the subjugation of
the Caspian provinces of Mäzandarän and Gurgän and the capture
of Yazd in the south-east (1504); the pacification of the western
frontier and the annexation of Diyär Bakr (1505—7); the capture
of Baghdäd and the conquest of south-west Iran (1508); the
subjugation of Shïrvân (1509/10); and the conquest ofKhuräsän
(1510), which had been wrested three years previously from the
Timurids by the Ozbegs of Transoxania. All these campaigns
entailed hard, sometimes bitter, fighting ; the campaign in Mäzan­
darän in 1503/4 was conducted with especial ferocity, which
may be accounted for by the fact that IsmäTPs opponent, a local
ruler named Amir Husayn Kiyä ChulävI, was a ShIT and was
therefore seen by IsmäTl as a rival on the religious plane as well
as the political; certainly his political aspirations were not in
doubt, since he had given sanctuary to a large number of Äq
Quyünlü troops after IsmäTTs victory near Hamadän in 1503.
IsmäTTs greatest victory, however, was undoubtedly won at the
battle of Marv, on 2 December 1510. After their conquest of
Khuräsän in 1507, the Özbegs had taken to raiding the province
of Kirmän. When IsmäTl protested against this action, the Özbeg
leader Muhammad Shlbänl Khän sent a derisive reply, bidding
IsmäTl return to his ancestral calling of darvïsh (i.e., Süfï). In
November 1510, IsmäTl marched into Khuräsän, and on 2
36 Iran under the Safavids
December succeeded in luring the Ozbegs, who had taken refuge
behind the walls of Marv, into a pitched battle. Muhammad
ShlbänT Khan and 10,000 of his men were killed. IsmäTl sent the
head of the Özbeg chief to the Ottoman Sultan Bâyazïd II, and
this act is said to have aroused a strong desire for revenge in the
latter’s son, Selim “ the Grim”. As a result of this victory, the
province of Khurasan was brought under Safavid control, and
the city of Harät became the second city of the empire and the
seat of the heir-apparent.
Since ancient times, the legendary frontier between Iran, the
land of the Aryans or Iranians, and Türän, the land of the Turkish
peoples, had been the Oxus river. The Safavids would have liked
to have made the Oxus the frontier of their empire in the north­
east, but they were unable to hold the key city of Balkh. At all
events, after the disastrous adventure of Ismä‘3 I in Transoxania,
the Safavids renounced all territorial ambitions the other side of
the Oxus. In 1511, IsmäTl was drawn into an attack on Samarqand
through the ambition of the Timurid prince, Zahïr al-Din Babur,
to recover his Transoxanian dominions, from which he had
been driven by the Özbcgs. In return for IsmaTTs help, Babur
promised to have coins struck in his name and have his name
included in the khutba. IsmäTl sent a force to the assistance of
Bäbur, who succeeded in capturing Samarqand in October 1511,
and Bukhärä shortly afterwards. At this point, Bäbur made the
mistake of sending the Safavid troops home. In May 1512, the
Özbegs returned, drove Bäbur out of Bukhärä and besieged him
in Hisär-i Shädmän. IsmäTl sent a large army to his assistance,
under the command of the vakil Amir Yär Ahmad IsfahänL The
events which followed seemed to underline the failure of one of
IsmaTTs basic policies, namely, his attempt to reconcile the two
antipathetic ethnic groups in the state, the qizilbäsh and the
Iranians.
It will be recalled that IsmäTl had created the office of vakïl-i
nafs-i naßs-i humäyün, with the idea that the vakil would be his
alter ego, with authority second to his own in both political and
religious matters. The importance he attached to this office is
shown by the fact that the man he chose to hold it in 1501 was
Husayn Beg Lala Shämlü, a qizilbäsh officer and one of the
“ nucleus staff” of the Safavid Order, that small group of trusted
companions who had saved IsmäTl from being captured by the
The reign of Shah IsmäTl I 37
Äq Quyünlü during the four and a half years of his concealment
in Gïlân. After he had held the office of vakil for six years, Husayn
Beg Shämlü was dismissed by the Shäh and replaced by Amir
Najm, a goldsmith of Rasht and, what is much more to the point,
an Iranian. The only reason offered by any of the sources for the
dismissal of Husayn Beg Shämlü, namely, that the Shäh had lost
confidence in him because he had been surprised by Kurds during
his campaign of 1507 and had lost 300 men, does not carry
conviction, for in 1508, shortly after his dismissal from the office
of vakil, we find him in command of the Safavid army in the
campaign which led to the capture of Baghdäd. The inescapable
conclusion is that the dismissal of Husayn Beg Shämlü was simply
a question of policy. Apparently Ismä‘Tl had already begun to be
apprehensive of the power of the qizilbäsh chiefs who had raised
him to the throne only seven years previously. The appointment
of an Iranian to the office of vakil in 1508 was obviously an attempt
to curb the power of the qizilbäsh and to produce a better balance
between qizilbäsh and Tâjïk in the upper echelons of the ad­
ministration. Unfortunately, the new policy was no more suc­
cessful than the first. Amir Najm held office for only two years,
but even during that time there were ominous rumblings of
discontent from the qizilbäsh, who felt that their position had been
weakened in a manner unacceptable to them. The Shäh, however,
held to his course, and, when Amïr Najm died in 1509/10,
appointed another Iranian to this office: Amïr Yär Ahmad
IsfahänL The resentment of the qizilbäsh rapidly increased, and
came to a head when the new vakil was placed in command of
the expedition to Transoxaniain 1512. After some initial successes,
the combined armies of Amïr Yär Ahmad Isfahânï and Bäbur laid
siege to the fort of Ghujduvän. When supplies began to run short,
Bäbur and some of the qizilbäsh amirs suggested that they should
go into winter quarters and resume the offensive in the spring.
The vakil refused to agree. On 12 November 1512, a large Özbeg
army arrived to relieve the fort, and at once gave battle. Either
immediately before the battle, or just after battle had been joined,
many of the leading qizilbäsh amirs deserted, because of their
hostility toward the vakil and because they considered it a dis­
honour to serve under him. Bäbur also fled. The vakil, whose
personal courage was greater than his political acumen, fought on
and was captured by the Özbegs and executed on the spot. The
38 Iran under the Safavids
remains of his army were totally routed, and the Ozbegs swept
on into Khurasan, capturing the cities of Harät and Mashhad.
The following year, IsmäTl restored the situation on the north-east
frontier, and an uneasy truce with the Ozbegs existed for about
eight years. When the Shäh reached Khurasan, he subjected to
public ignominy the qizilbäsh commander who had been the first
to flee from the field of Ghujduvän. Dada Beg Tälish had his beard
shaved off, was dressed in women’s clothes and paraded round the
camp mounted on an ass. Had Dada Beg Tälish not been one of
the ahl-i ikhtisäs, the “ nucleus staff” of the Safavid Order to whom
IsmäTl owed so much, his punishment would doubtless have been
even more severe; as it was, later the same day he was pardoned
and given a robe of honour.
Despite the fact that the débâcle in Transoxania had been caused
primarily by the bad blood between the qizilbäsh chiefs and their
Iranian commander-in-chief, Ismä‘11 persisted with his policy of
appointing Iranians to the office of vakil. This can only mean that,
in the Shäh’s mind, given a choice between continuing friction
between Turks and Iranians regarding the highest office of the
state, and concentrating all power once again in the hands of the
qizilbäsh, the former was the less dangerous course. Between 1512
and his death in 1524, IsmäTl made three more appointments to
the vikälat (office of vakil) : in each case, an Iranian was appointed.
The first was killed in battle in 1514. The second, Mîrzâ Shäh
Husayn IsfahänT, acquired what was, in the eyes of the qizilbäsh,
undue influence over the Shäh, and this once more fanned their
resentment to the point of fury; this fury, initially held in
check by their fear of the Shäh, finally would brook no control,
and they murdered the vakil in 1523 after several unsuccessful
attempts.
There can be little doubt that Shäh IsmäTl originally decided
to appoint Iranians to the vikälat because he was apprehensive of
the power of the qizilbäsh chiefs. It was a deliberate attempt on
the part of the Shäh to integrate the Turkish and Iranian elements
in the newly formed Safavid state. The qizilbäsh, however, were
not able to reconcile themselves to the idea of the most powerful
office in the state being in the hands of a TäjTk, and did not hesitate
to commit murder in order to remove from the scene Iranians
appointed to this post. The fact that the qizilbäsh seized control
of the state immediately after IsmäTTs death in 1524 shows that
The reign of Shäh Ism ail I 39
the threat to the Shah’s authority was a very real one. The failure
of IsmäTTs policy in this respect had serious consequences for the
Safavid state in the long term.
The setback in Transoxania was soon overshadowed by the
much more serious threat of an Ottoman invasion. The establish­
ment on the eastern frontiers of the Sunnï Ottoman empire of
a state with a militantly ShïT ideology constituted in itself a grave
challenge to that empire. This was particularly so because of the
presence within the borders of the Ottoman empire of large
numbers of Turcomans who sympathised with Shäh IsmäTTs
pretensions to quasi-divine status and supported his attempt to
establish a ShïT state in Iran. They constituted what in more recent
times would have been referred to as a “ fifth column”. The
danger of their being seduced by Safavid propaganda was all the
greater because the Ottomans had originally been backed by
much the same kind of heterodox Sufism as constituted the basis
of Safavid power. Although, during the fourteenth century, the
Ottoman sultäns “ gradually adopted a civilised palace life”, and
“ came more and more under orthodox influences”,8 their
subjects in the remote mountainous areas of eastern Anatolia,
adjacent to the Iranian border, continued to belong to a wide
variety of extremist ShïT sects which, in order to protect
themselves from persecution by the Ottoman government as
schismatics, later “ gained the right of asylum under the all-
embracing and tolerant umbrella of the BektäshT organisation” .9
The Turcoman tribesmen yvho belonged to these ShïT groups had
constituted fertile ground for Safavid propaganda; they venerated
IsmäTl and flocked to his standard in thousands. During the almost
five years that IsmäTl had spent in hiding in LähTjän (1494—9), he
had maintained constant contact with these murids (disciples) in
Anatolia by means of an extensive network of officers termed
khalifa, dada, lala and plra. Disciples had constantly made their way
to Gïlân to take gifts and offerings to their murshid-i kämil (perfect
spiritual director). In the late summer of 1499, when IsmäTl had
made his bid for power, the first contingents of troops to join him
were Turcoman Sufi’s largely from Anatolia. In the spring of 1500,
when IsmäTl sent out his couriers from Ardabïl to summon his
followers to the rendezvous at Arzinjän, his messengers were
received with enthusiasm. The Ustäjlü tribe, for example, “ with
one accord came with their wives and children, and they were
40 Iran under the Safavids
1,000 families. . .and when people from other districts heard that
the Ustäjlü tribe had come in this manner everyone became
inclined [to follow their example] ; they came, company by
company, until their numbers reached 7,000” .10 There is no
doubt that the active subversion of large numbers of Ottoman
subjects in Anatolia by the politico-religious propaganda of the
Safavids was the principal reason for the outbreak of war between
the two states. “ Had the Ottomans not put an abrupt and decisive
end to this process their hold on vast areas in the Eastern parts
of their realm would have been greatly jeopardised, and the Shi‘a
doctrine would have registered one of its most resounding
successes.”11 Faced with the possibility that eastern Anatolia
might be detached from allegiance to the Ottoman state,
Bâyazïd II in 1502 ordered the deportation of large numbers of
Sh?Ts from Anatolia to the Morea. In 1511, a large-scale Shï‘ï
revolt at Tekke, on the Mediterranean coast of Asia Minor,
emphasised that the danger still existed, and the same year a
substantial number of Takkalü tribesmen from Karmiyan arrived
in Iran to reinforce IsmäTTs army. These two incidents show that
the Safavid ideology had a strong hold, not only in eastern, but
also in central, Anatolia.
The actual casus belli were two: the campaign in eastern
Anatolia waged by Nür ‘All Khalifa in 1512 with a Safavid force
levied on the spot from among the Süfîs of the Safavid Order;
and the support given by Shäh IsmäTl to Selim’s rivals after the
death of Sultän Bâyazïd in the same year. IsmäTl supported first
the legal heir, Ahmad and, after Ahmad had been put to death
by Selim, Ahmad’s son Muräd. IsmäTl planned to use Muräd to
mobilise opposition to Selim but, when the expected support for
Muräd failed to materialise, the scheme was abandoned. Muräd
was granted asylum in Iran, and subsequently died at Käshän.
Sultän Selim, once firmly established on the Ottoman throne,
immediately began preparations for the invasion of Iran with an
army the size of which was remarkable in Middle East warfare
of the period: 200,000 men. In order to secure his rear, before he
marched he “ proscribed ShiTsm in his dominions and massacred
all its adherents on whom he could lay hands”.12 The number
of ShITs put to death at that time is said to be 40,000, but this
is probably a conventional figure merely indicating a large
number. Those who were not put to death were branded and sent
to Ottoman territory in Europe.
The reign of Shah Isma‘il I 4i

Sultan Selim reached Sïvâs on i July 1514; there, he reviewed


his troops and disbanded some of the less battleworthy units. Then
he advanced slowly along the highroad to Arzinjän, through an
area which had been systematically devastated by the Safavid
Governor-General of Diyär Bakr, Muhammad Khan Ustäjlü. On
22 August 1514 the Ottoman army reached the plain ofChäldirän,
north-west of Khvuy in Äzarbäyjän, and the following day the
Safavid army attacked.
Widely differing figures for the size of the opposing armies at
the crucial battle of Chäldirän are given by both Iranian and
Turkish sources, but the figures given by the Ottoman historian
Hakim al-DIn BitllsI are probably close to the mark: Ottoman
army, 100,000; Safavid army, 40,000. Shäh Ismä‘11 possessed two
commanders, Muhammad Khän Ustäjlü and NGr ‘All Khalifa,
who had had first-hand experience of Ottoman methods of
warfare. Their advice was to attack at once, before the Ottomans
had had time to complete their defensive laager. Muhammad
Khän Ustäjlü also counselled against a frontal attack, because of
the strength of the Ottoman artillery. Unfortunately for the
Safavid cause, this sound advice was rejected both by a senior
qizilbäsh commander, Dürmlsh Khän Shämlü, and by Ismä‘11
himself. Dürmlsh Khän Shämlü had a privileged position at court
because of his connections; his father had been one of the ahl-i
ikhtisäs, or special companions, of Shäh Ismä‘11, and his mother
was the Shäh’s sister. He rudely rebuffed Muhammad Khän
Ustäjlü with the words, “ Diyär Bakr is your bailiwick”,13 and
made the extraordinary proposal that, instead of attacking at once,
the Safavid forces should wait until the Ottomans had completed
their dispositions (presumably on the ground that it would not
be sporting to attack them sooner). The Shäh, instead of treating
his suggestion with derision, endorsed it: “ I am not a caravan-
thief,” he said; “ Whatever is decreed by God, will occur.”14 In
later years, Ismä‘ITs son, Shäh Tahmäsp, is said to have cursed the
name of Dürmlsh Khän whenever the battle of Chäldirän was
mentioned.
The Ottomans were thus able to organise their laager or
Wagenburg at their leisure. Twelve thousand janissaries,15 armed
with muskets, were stationed behind a barrier formed of gun-
carriages linked together by chains. This barrier presented an
insuperable obstacle to the Safavid army, composed as it was
almost entirely of cavalry. The sources give conflicting accounts
42 Iran under the Safavids
of the course of the actual battle. It appears that the Safavid right
wing, led by Shäh IsmäTl in person, routed the Ottoman left
and killed its commander, Hasan Pasha. The Ottoman centre,
however, where the janissaries and the bulk of the artillery were
stationed, remained intact. Ottoman firepower, consisting of 200
cannon and 100 mortars, was now brought into play with
devastating effect. Muhammad Khan Ustäjlü, in command of the
Safavid left, was killed, and his men fell back in disorder. IsmäTl
rallied his troops and led them in heroic, but vain, charges against
the Ottoman laager; from behind cover the Ottoman gunners
directed a deadly fire on the Safavid cavalry to which the latter
had no answer. After suffering further heavy casualties, IsmäTl was
forced to break off the engagement. Casualty figures given by the
sources are unreliable, but the extent of the disaster for the
Safavids may be judged from the list of high-ranking qizilbäsh
officers killed at Chäldirän: they included Husayn Beg Lala
Shämlü, the former vakïl-i nafs-i nafis-i humäyün; Särü Fïra
Ustäjlü, the qürchïbâshï', a number of provincial governors; the
Amïr Nizäm al-DIn ‘Abd al-Bäql, the sadr; and a former sadr. The
Ottoman losses were not negligible: as Knolles puts it quaintly
in his General History of the Turks, “ besides his common footmen,
of whom he made least reckoning, he [Selim] lost most part of
his Illirian, Macedonian, Servian, Epirot, Thessalian and Thracian
horsemen, the undoubted flower and strength of his army, which
were in that mortall battel almost all slaine or grievously
wounded ”,16When Shäh IsmäTl left the battlefield, Sultän Selim,
thinking that his withdrawal was a ruse, did not pursue him. Later,
he marched to Tabriz, the Safavid capital, which he occupied on
5 September 1514. He proposed to winter in Iran and complete
the subjugation of Iran the following spring, but his officers
mutinously refused to winter at Tabriz and, eight days after he
had entered Tabriz, Selim marched out and went into winter
quarters at Amasya.
Some authorities have seen the Ottoman victory at Chäldirän
as primarily a triumph of logistics. It was, of course, an impressive
feat to move such a large army, equipped with such a formidable
number of guns, over a distance in excess of 1,000 miles from
Istanbul to the plain of Chäldirän, the last part of the route passing
through extremely mountainous terrain. Indeed, 60,000 camels
are said to have carried the provisions for the army, and the
The reign of Shah Ism ail I 43
commissariat department alone numbered 5,000 men. The decisive
factor in the Ottoman victory was, however, their firepower,
as the contemporary account by Caterino Zeno, Venetian am­
bassador to the court of Üzün Hasan, testifies:
The monarch [Selim], seeing the slaughter, began to retreat, and to turn
about, and was about to fly, when Sinan, coming to the rescue at the
time o f need, caused the artillery to be brought up and fired on both
the janissaries [sic] and the Persians. The Persian horses hearing the
thunder o f those infernal machines, scattered and divided themselves
over the plain, not obeying their riders’ bit or spur any more, from the
terror they were i n. . . . It is certainly said, that if it had not been for
the artillery, which terrified in the manner related the Persian horses
which had never before heard such a din, all his forces would have been
routed and put to the edge of the sword . 17
D. Ayalon writes:
Had the Ottomans not employed firearms on such a large scale in the
battle o f Chäldirän and in the battles which followed it, it is reasonably
certain that their victory —even if they had been able to win —would
have been far less decisive. In other words, the Ottomans would
have acquired far less Safawid territory in that event and a much
stronger Safawid army would have been left intact to prepare for a
war o f revenge. . . . At Chäldirän. . . Ottom an artillery and arquebuses
w rought havoc among the ranks o f the Safawis who had no similar
arms with which to reply . 18

Why was Shäh IsmäTTs army not equipped with firearms?


Unlike the Ottomans, who were the first Muslim state to adopt
firearms and to use them on a large scale, the Safavids, at the time
of IsmäTl I, thought the use of firearms unmanly and cowardly.
The Mamlüks of Syria and Egypt similarly remained wedded to
their cavalry, and were similarly defeated by the Ottomans a few
years after the battle of Chäldirän. IsmäTTs failure to use cannon
and hand-guns was certainly not due to ignorance of these
weapons, although this is often asserted. The myth that firearms
were first introduced into Iran nearly a century later, by two
English gentlemen—adventurers, Sir Anthony Sherley and Sir
Robert Sherley, has been a persistent one, but the evidence in both
the European and the Persian sources makes it clear that this claim
is entirely without foundation. In Europe, cannon were invented
earlier than hand-guns. By the second half of the fourteenth
century, artillery was being used by all the principal military
44 Iran under the Safavids
powers in Europe, including England, Spain and Portugal. This
new weapon, which revolutionised the whole art of warfare, was
adopted by the Ottomans about 1420; by the time of the siege
of Constantinople in 1453, they had become so adept in its use
that they were casting cannon of gigantic size.
Contrary to the generally accepted tradition, the rulers of Iran
were not ignorant of these developments, although their contacts
with Europe were naturally not as close as were those of the
Ottoman empire. In 1471, the Signory of Venice dispatched to
the Äq Quyünlü ruler Üzün Hasan a consignment of firearms
which was intercepted at Cyprus. Two years later, in 1473, the
Ottomans gave Üzün Hasan a practical demonstration of the use
of artillery when they defeated him on the Upper Euphrates.
Üzün Hasan appealed to Venice for assistance, and in 1478 the
Venetians sent him “ one hundred artillerymen of experience and
capacity”.19 Possibly as a result of the efforts of these men, we
find the Äq Quyünlü prince Khalil, in the same year, using cannon
against a rival, and there are numerous references to the use of
cannon in siege-warfare by the Äq Quyünlü from that time on.
The first recorded use of cannon by the Safavids is in 1488, when
the Safavid leader Haydar used siege-guns against the fort of
Gulistän; this was twenty-six years before the battle of Chäldirän.
The main points to note in regard to the use of cannon by the
Iranians are, first, they adopted them with reluctance, and, second,
unlike the Ottomans, they never made effective use of them in
the field, but tended to restrict their use to siege-warfare.
Hand-guns first appeared in Europe early in the fifteenth century,
and were adopted by the Ottomans very soon afterwards. The
early hand-guns were either matchlocks or arquebuses. Once
again, the Ottomans had a clear lead over other Islamic states in
the Middle East in the use of the new weapons. It is worth noting
that, even in Europe, there was considerable resistance to their use.
Hand-guns seem to have been in use in Iran by 1478; in other
words, although a later invention than cannon, they may have
reached Iran about the same time as the latter.
The inescapable conclusion, then, is that the Safavids did not use
firearms at Chäldirän because they did not choose to use them.
As a result of their attitude to firearms, they suffered a grave defeat
at the hands of the Ottomans which might well have been fatal
to the nascent Safavid state, then only thirteen years old. That their
The reign of Shah IsmäTl I 45
defeat did not result in the occupation of a large part, or perhaps
the whole, of the Safavid empire, was due in part to the success
of their scorched earth policy in the path of the Ottoman advance.
The unwillingness of the Ottoman troops to winter at Tabriz was
due largely to the lack of provisions for themselves and their
horses and baggage-animals. The lack of supplies was particularly
serious because the Ottoman army was at the end of immensely
long lines of communication which were stretched to the limit.
As a result of their defeat at Chäldirän, the Safavids were thrown
on to the defensive in their long-drawn-out struggle with the
Ottomans, and did not regain the initiative for three-quarters of
a century, until the reign of Shäh ‘Abbäs the Great. The crucial
nature of the battle of Chäldirän was not lost upon contemporary
observers: “ if the Turk had been beaten, the power of IsmäTl
would have become greater than that of Tamerlane, as by the fame
alone of such a victory he would have made himself absolute lord
of the East”.20
The immediate effect of the Safavid defeat at Chäldirän was the
loss of the province of Diyär Bakr, which was annexed to the
Ottoman empire in 1516/17. The Ottomans also put an end to
the ZuT-Qadar dynasty of Mar‘ash and Albistän, and those
regions too were absorbed into their empire. Far more serious than
the loss of territory was the psychological effect of the defeat on
Shäh IsmäTl himself, and its effect on his relations with the
qizilbäsh. Chäldirän was IsmäTTs first defeat. “ Since in his
experience he had always been victorious, and his enemies
defeated and conquered, he considered no adversary his equal, and
thought himselfinvincible ; the defeat at Chäldirän had a profound
effect on IsmäTTs character and behaviour; his egotism and
arrogance were changed to despair and dejection ” ; so wrote Nasr
Alläh Falsafi, the principal Iranian historian of the Safavids in
recent times.21 According to Falsafi, IsmäTl went into mourning
after his defeat. He wore black robes and a black turban; the
military standards were died black, and were emblazoned with
the inscription al-qisäs (retribution). During the remaining ten
years of his reign, Ismä‘H never once led his troops into action in
person, despite the fact that both the Özbegs and his former ally
Bäbur, now a rising power and destined in 1526 to capture Delhi
and Agra and found the Mogul empire in India, seized the key
frontier cities ofBalkh and Qandahär respectively. Nor did Ismä‘11
46 Iran under the Safavids
devote his attentions to affairs of state as in the past. On the
contrary, he seems to have tried to drown his sorrows by drunken
debauches. As one Safavid chronicle puts it: “ most of his time
was spent in hunting, or in the company of rosy-cheeked youths,
quaffing goblets of purple wine, and listening to the strains of
music and song”.22
Chäldirän shattered the belief of the qizilbäsh in their leader as
a divine or semi-divine figure who was invincible. The mystical
bond linking murshid (spiritual director) and murid (disciple) had
been snapped, and could not be repaired. Although the qizilbäsh
continued to accord their leader the title of murshid, the title had
become meaningless except for ritualistic purposes. Similarly,
although traces of the original Süfî organisation persisted in a
fossilised form, they rapidly ceased to have any organic function
within the Safavid body politic. The qizilbäsh tacitly dissociated
themselves from the murshid—murid relationship and began to
behave like the mediaeval feudal barons whom they in some
respects resembled. This view is supported by the fact that, only
two years after Chäldirän, the qizilbäsh Governor-General of
Khuräsän made a powerful challenge to IsmäTTs authority, and
by the fact that, within a year of IsmäTTs death, civil war broke
out between rival qizilbäsh tribes fighting for control of the state
with little or no regard for the sancrosanct nature of the Shäh’s
person, and but scant appreciation of the supposedly absolute
character of the Shäh’s authority, in both its spiritual and temporal
aspects. Iskandar Beg MunshT, the author of the greatest of all
Safavid histories entitled Tärikh-i ‘Älam-ärä-yi ‘Abbäsi, written
about a century after Chäldirän, makes the following fascinating
comment on the Safavid defeat:
W ithout doubt God, in His most excellent wisdom, had decreed that
Shäh IsmäTl should suffer a reverse at the battle o f Chäldirän, for had
he been victorious in this battle too, there would have been a danger
that the belief and faith o f the unsophisticated qizilbäsh in the authority
o f the Shäh would have reached such heights that their feet might have
strayed from the straight path o f religious faith and belief, and they
might have fallen into serious error .23
This is indeed a valiant attempt to rationalise the Safavid defeat,
but in the eyes of Sunni Muslims, of course, the qizilbäsh had fallen
into “ serious error” long before Chäldirän.
IsmäTTs abdication of his responsibilities in regard to the
The reign of Shäh IsmäTl I 47

personal direction of the affairs of state after Chäldirän gave


certain officials the opportunity to increase their own power
proportionately. Many of the highest-ranking qizilbäsh officers
had been killed at Chäldirän, and so qizilbäsh power was tem­
porarily in eclipse. This allowed an official whose status had been
downgraded by the creation of the office of vakil, and by the
dominant position of qizilbäsh military officers in the Safavid
administrative system during the first decade of Ismä‘TTs rule, to
come to the fore: this official was the vazir, the head of the
bureaucracy and traditionally an Iranian. The evidence is con­
tradictory as to whether Mirzä Shäh Husayn Isfahânï, appointed
by the Shäh to succeed the vakil Amir ‘Abd al-Bäqi, slain at
Chäldirän, received the title of vakil or was simply styled vazir.
What is certain is that there was a radical change in the character
of the vikalai after Chäldirän. The original title of vakil~i nafs-i
nafis-i humäyün, indicating that the vakil was the alter ego of the
shah, is not recorded after Chäldirän; henceforth, the term used
is simply vakil, unembellished, or at best vakil-i saltana, a significant
change indicating that the vakils loyalty is now not so much to
the person of the shah as to the state. The important development
after Chäldirän is that what Minorsky called the “ excessive
prerogatives of a Vice-Roy” underwent considerable modifica­
tion. The vakil, even when so termed, was now regarded
primarily as the head of the bureaucracy, in other words, as a vazir.
For a time, the vakil continued to exist as a sort of superior vazir,
the vazir proper still being regarded as inferior in rank. Once the
vakils raison d'être had ceased to exist, however, it was only a short
time before the title itself fell into abeyance. This development
marked a decisive step away from the original theocratic concept
of the state, and toward a greater separation of religious and
secular powers within the state. At all events, MTrzä Shäh Husayn
took advantage of the Shäh’s withdrawal from the day-to-day
management of affairs to enhance his own authority. By becoming
a boon companion of the Shäh in the drinking bouts in which
Ismâ‘ïl indulged with increasing frequency after Chäldirän, he
acquired great —the qizilbäsh thought undue —influence over the
Shäh. As a contemporary chronicle put it : “ All the amirs [military
commanders] and pillars of the state, and all the vazirs and nobles
of the court, were ordered to obey him and, putting the
saddle-cloth of obedience on their shoulders, were enjoined not
48 Iran under the Safavids
to enter upon any affairs, whether important or trivial, without
informing him and obtaining his advice.”24
In 1521, MTrzä Shäh Husayn demonstrated his power by
turning the tables on his former master, the high-ranking qizil­
bäsh chief Dürmîsh Khan Shämlü. It was one of the strengths of
the administrative system of the early Safavid state that, when
military officers were appointed to provincial governorships (as
was the normal practice during the reigns of Shäh IsmäTl and
Shäh Tahmäsp), they proceeded to the seat of their governorate
and personally administered the province under their jurisdiction.
Dürmîsh Khän Shämlü was an exception. When he was appointed
Governor of Isfahän in 1503, he had remained at court like any
seventeenth-century French noble at Versailles, and had delegated
one of his retainers, a certain architect at Isfahän named Mîrzâ
Shäh Husayn, to act as his vazïr and deputy there and look after
the administration for him. No doubt the fact that Dürmîsh Khän
Shämlü was the Shah’s nephew gave him a privileged position
at court, where he obtained the office of ishtk-äqäsi of the Supreme
Divan, or Master of Ceremonies. In 1517, he was appointed lala
(guardian) of IsmäTTs second son, Säm Mîrzâ. His continued
presence at court was irksome to Mîrzâ Shäh Husayn, since it was
a constant reminder of his own humble origins; but the former
servant had now risen above his master, despite the fact that
Dürmîsh Khän was distinguished among the qizilbäsh chiefs by
his close relationship to and intimacy with the Shäh, and in 1521
Mîrzâ Shäh Husayn succeeded in getting Dürmîsh Khän sent to
Harät as governor. In the end, Mîrzâ Shäh Husayn overreached
himself and, in April 1523, was assassinated by a group of
qizilbäsh, thus adding his name to the list of those who had become
victims of the struggle between Turk and Iranian in the early
Safavid state.
A year later, on 23 May 1524, Shäh IsmäTl I, the founder of
the Safavid state, died, and was buried in the family mausoleum
at Ardabïl. He was two months short of his thirty-seventh
birthday at the time of his death, and had reigned for nearly
twenty-three years. When he came to the throne in 1501, at the
age of fourteen, he had been at once faced by problems of great
complexity: the problem of how to incorporate the Süfî
organisation of the Safavid Order, of which he was the murshid-i
kämil (perfect spiritual director), in the administrative system of
The reign of Shah Ism ail I 49
the new state, of which he was the king. There was the problem
of how to reconcile the “ men of the sword”, the Turcoman
military élite which had brought him to power, with the “ men
of the pen”, the Iranian bureaucrats with a long tradition of
professional expertise, on whom he depended for the smooth
functioning of the state. There was the problem of how to
encourage Shï‘ï militancy while at the same time preventing the
religious classes from becoming the dominant power in the state.
There was the problem of first consolidating Safavid rule within
the traditional boundaries of Iran, and then of defending these
frontiers against powerful Sunni neighbours to the east and to the
west. Ismâ‘ïl possessed charismatic appeal, the gift of leadership
and personal bravery, though as a general he lacked both the
caution and the tactical and strategic brilliance of his descendant
‘Abbäs I. He also possessed a high degree of statecraft and political
wisdom. Although his imaginative and often ingenious solutions
to the problems listed above were frequently successful in the
short term rather than the long, this postulates not so much the
inadequacy of the solutions as the intractability of the problems.
3
Internai dissensions and external foes : the Safavid
state from 1524 to 1588

During the last decade of the reign of IsmäTl I, there had been
a movement away from the theocratic form of government which
had been a distinctive feature of the early Safavid state. There had
been a general trend toward the separation of religious and
political powers, and toward the reduction of the influence of the
qizilbäsh in state affairs. As noted in the previous chapter, there
had been a change in the status of the vakil. From 1508 onwards,
the Shäh had not appointed a qizilbäsh chief to this high office.
From 1514 onwards, there was a subtle change in the nature of
the office ; there was tendency to lay less emphasis on the special
position of the vakil as the vicegerent of the shah, and to regard
him rather as simply the head of the bureaucracy, in other words,
as a vazïr. IsmäTl had also taken steps to reduce the status of the
office of amir al-umarä, or commander-in-chief, another of the
principal offices of state held by the qizilbäsh. In 1509/10, Husayn
Beg Lala Shämlü (who had initially combined this office with that
of vakil) was dismissed from his position as amir al-umarä. IsmäTl
did not replace him by another high-ranking qizilbäsh chief, but
awarded this important office to an unknown officer, Muhammad
Beg Ustäjlü, who held the comparatively humble position of
sufrachl (sewer). Muhammad Beg was promoted to the rank of
sultän and given the title of Chäyän Sultän, in order to give him
a status more suitable to the holder of the position of commander-
in-chief.1An even more significant fact is that Chäyän Sultän was
given not only Husayn Beg Shämlü’s office, but his tribal district
(;ulkä) and retainers as well. This action by-the Shäh struck at the
root of the qizilbäsh tribal organisation. The great qizilbäsh tribes,
termed üymäq, were subdivided into as many as eight or nine clans,
and the basis of the fighting spirit of the qizilbäsh was their fierce
tribal loyalty (ta'assub-i üymäqiyyat; ta‘assub-i qizilbäshiyyat). It

5 0
The Safavid state from 1524 to 1588 5i
would be impossible for the new amir al-umarä, an Ustäjlü, to
command from Shämlü tribesmen support in any way comparable
to that which he naturally would receive from members of his
tribe. The move appears to have been successful from Ismâ‘ïl’s
point of view, for we hear nothing of note about Chäyän Sultan,
though he held office until his death in 1523. The particular
significance of IsmäTTs action is that it foreshadows the methods
used later by Shäh ‘Abbas the Great to curb the power of the
qizilbäsh.
Tahmäsp, Shäh Ismä‘Tl’s eldest son, had been born on 22
February 1514. He was therefore only ten years and three months
old when he succeeded his father on the throne. The qizilbash were
not slow in seizing their opportunity to reverse the trend toward
giving Iranians a larger share in the governance of the state. They
took over control of the state and usurped the authority of the
Shäh for a decade. A qizilbash chief, Dïv Sultän Rümlü, summoned
his fellow-amirs to a gathering of the clans. At this gathering, Dïv
Sultän Rümlü displayed the testamentary disposition of the late
Shäh appointing himself amir al-umarä and guardian of the young
Shäh Tahmäsp. To denote this latter function of regent, the old
title of atäbeg, used by the Seljuq Turks and the Turcoman rulers
of Iran in the fifteenth century, was revived. The bulk of the chiefs
of the Rümlü, Takkalü and Zu’l-Qadar tribes agreed to recognise
Dïv Sultän as their leader and elder (rïsh-safid: literally, “ grey­
beard”). Two of the leading Shämlü amirs, Dürmïsh Khän,
Governor of Harät, and Zaynal Khän, Governor of Astaräbäd,
sent pledges of support and urged other Shämlü chiefs to do the
same. Some Ustäjlü amirs also joined Dïv Sultän, but the majority
of the chiefs of that tribe, led by Köpek Sultän Ustäjlü, the brother
of the former amir al-umarä Chäyän Sultän, ranged themselves
against the new regent. The Ustäjlüs had the advantage of being
in control of the capital, Tabrïz. Some of Köpek Sultän’s
supporters urged him to challenge the regent in the field, but
Köpek Sultän demurred: “ We are both slaves of the Shäh,” he
said, “ and devotees of the same threshold; we will not contend
with each other.”2
The regent, however, was not only an able military commander
but an astute politician, and he completely outmanoeuvred the
Ustäjlü chief. In the autumn of 1525, the regent advanced on
Tabriz, and sent a message to the Ustäjlüs to the effect that the
52 Iran under the Safavids
late Shah had entrusted him, Dïv Sultan, who was one of the
veteran Süfîs of the Safavid house, with the care of the young
Tahmäsp, and had taken solemn oaths from the other amirs that
they would not act contrary to his (Dïv Sultan’s) judgement. It
was therefore incumbent on them all, he said, to respect Shah
IsmäTTs will, and he called on the Ustäjlü amir to come forth from
Tabriz and meet him. Otherwise, he said, civil war would break
out, and the enemies of Iran would get the chance for which they
had been waiting for years. The Ustäjlü amirs, reflecting on the
dishonour which would attach to their name if they refused,
agreed to meet the regent. Dïv Sultan at once put to death two
qizilbäsh chiefs, one an Ustäjlü and the other a Qäjär, whom he
accused of fomenting the dissension between himself and the
Ustäjlüs, and set up a triumvirate consisting of himself, Chüha
Sultän Takkalü and Köpek Sultän Ustäjlü. Not only was Köpek
Sultän disappointed in his hopes of becoming a joint defacto ruler
of the state with Dïv Sultän, but it rapidly became apparent that
his role was to be like that of Lepidus in the celebrated triumvirate
of Octavius, Mark Antony and Lepidus in 43 B.c. If Chüha Sultän
affixed his seal to documents, this was held to signify the
agreement of Köpek Sultän as well. Worse than that, Dïv Sultän
and Chüha Sultän aimed to deprive the Ustäjlü chiefs of the
possibility of any effective opposition to themselves, by system­
atically dispersing them to their fiefs. Köpek Sultän, realising that,
as a result of this underhand dealing, his position was untenable,
withdrew to his fiefs at Nakhchivän and Erïvân; another version
is that Dïv Sultän sent him with an expedition to raid Georgia.
Whether Köpek Sultan’s departure from centre stage was volun­
tary or not, his fellow-triumvirs took advantage of his absence
to expropriate most of the lands which had been assigned to the
Ustäjlü tribe in the form of tiyül.3
This arbitrary action on the part of the regent and Chüha Sultän
precipitated the civil war. In the spring of 1526, only twenty-five
years after the coronation of Shäh Ismâ‘ïl at Tabrïz, the rival
factions clashed near Sultäniyya in Äzarbäyjän, and the Ustäjlüs
were put to flight and forced to take refuge in the forests of Gïlân.
The following year, Köpek Sultän re-emerged, seized ArdaLü,
where he killed the aged governor, Bädinjän Sultän Rümlü, and
marched on Tabrïz. In a pitched battle with his fellow-triumvirs
near Sharür,4 he was defeated and killed, and the surviving
Ustäjlüs fled back to the forests.
The Safavid state from 1524 to 1588 53
The civil war had already been extremely detrimental to the
state; as one chronicle puts it: “ the body politic was destitute of
administration and order, and confusion rent the country”.5
Many of the qizilbäsh chiefs stationed in Khurasan had been drawn
into the war, and the Özbegs, always eager to exploit any
weakness on the north-east frontier, seized Tüs and Astaräbäd and
roamed at will in other parts of Khurasan. Much worse was to
come. Chüha Sultän suggested to Tahmäsp that the regent, Dïv
Sultän, was the real cause of the discord between the qizilbäsh, and
it would be advisable to get rid of him. On 5 July 1527, when
the regent entered the divan, the young Shäh shot an arrow at
him which, despite Tahmäsp’s lack of strength, struck the regent
on the chest; at a signal from Tahmäsp, Dïv Sultän was then
dispatched by the guards. Chüha Sultän thus emerged as the real
ruler of the state. The administration of affairs was entirely in his
hands, and Tahmäsp was king in name only. At first, Chüha
Sultän’s position seemed unassailable. He scored a diplomatic
success by persuading some of the alienated Ustäjlü chiefs to return
to their allegiance to the Shäh; they were received at Qazvïn by
the Shäh and each was assigned land and an office as befitted his
position. The surviving triumvir handed out most of the land in
the provinces in the form of assignments to members of his own
tribe, the Takkalüs.
On the north-east frontier, the city of Harät had been under
siege by the Özbegs under ‘Ubayd Alläh Khän for some months
and, in the summer of 1528, with the civil war apparently over,
Shäh Tahmäsp marched to its relief. Near Jam, the Safavid army
was confronted by an Özbeg force overwhelmingly superior in
numbers. According to one report, some of the qizilbäsh chiefs,
including Chüha Sultän, in command of the right wing, were so
overawed by the size of the Özbeg army that they fled from the
field; another version states that Chüha Sultän remained on the
field but exhibited cowardice later. The latter account states that
the Takkalüs on the Safavid right were shattered by a charge made
by the Özbeg commander Jânï Beg Sultän, and fled from the field
followed by the troops forming the Safavid left. Tahmäsp alone
stood firm, in the Safavid centre, thus demonstrating for the
second time that he was not as malleable as some of qizilbäsh chiefs
had thought. The Shäh ordered a counter-attack by the Safavid
centre, composed of Sjiämlüs and Zu’l-Qadars, and in the mêlée
the Özbeg chief himself, ‘Ubayd Alläh Khän, was wounded, and
54 Iran under the Safavids
his men left the field in disorder. Mean while Jânï Beg Sultan, who
had broken through the Safavid right and had been plundering
in the Safavid rear, came near Tahmäsp’s standard under the
impression that it was that o f ‘Ubayd. Tahmäsp at once made to
attack him but Chüha Sultän, kneeling in a most unmanly fashion,
urged they should await the return of the qizilbäsh who had left
the field.
Shäh Tahmäsp, though no doubt disgusted by Chüha Sultän’s
conduct, must have decided that his own personal position was
as yet too insecure for him to make a move against the triumvir,
because Chüha Sultän continued to direct the affairs of state. The
situation at Harät remained critical, because the Özbegs had
resumed the siege of the city as soon as the royal army left
Khuräsän. The Governor of Harät, Husayn Khän Shämlü, whose
conduct at the battle of Jäm had been in marked contrast to that
of Chüha Sultän, was desperately short of supplies; eventually,
in the absence of any assistance from Tabriz, he was forced to
negotiate with ‘Ubayd Alläh Khän. Chüha Sultän delayed the
dispatch of a relief force to Harät out of pure vindictiveness
toward Husayn Khän. Ultimately, Husayn Khän was forced to
surrender the city, but he obtained surprisingly generous terms:
he, his ward Säm Mirza (the Shäh’s brother), the qizilbäsh garrison
and a number of ShïTs from among the population of Harät, were
allowed to leave the city unmolested; they made their way via
STstän to Shlräz, where Husayn Khän received a royal summons
to proceed to court. Fearful of his reception at the hands of Chüha
Sultän, the Shämlü chief procrastinated, but finally, having
received a pledge of safe-conduct, joined the royal camp near
Isfahän and was received by the Shäh with great marks of
affection.
This display of royal favour made Chüha Sultän detest Husayn
Khän Shämlü even more, and he planned to murder the latter at
a banquet. Forewarned of the plot, Husayn Khän decided to strike
first, and made his way with a band of Shämlü retainers toward
Chüha Sultän’s tent. Chüha Sultän fled, and took refuge in the
royal tent, where a fierce struggle ensued. During this confused
mêlée two arrows actually struck Tahmäsp’s crown. At that
moment the words of the Huguenot jeweller Chardin, writing
in the second half of the seventeenth century, might have seemed
to the Shäh to need some qualification : ‘Te Gouvernment de Perse
The Safavid state from 1524 to 1588 55
est monarchique, despotique et absolu, étant tout entier dans la
main d'un seul homme, qui est le chef souverain, tant pour le
spirituel, que pour le temporel. . . il n’y a assurément aucun
souverain au monde si absolu que le roi de Perse”.6 Yet he was
shortly to demonstrate his determination to rule de facto as well
as de jure. The guards on duty happened to be Zu’l-Qadars; they
sided with the Shämlüs, and one of their number mortally
wounded Chüha Sultän. The Takkalüs carried away his body and,
returning in greater strength, overwhelmed the Shämlüs, took
300 of them prisoner and promptly put them to death. The
Takkalüs remained in a rebellious mood and, a few days later,
fighting broke out again near Hamadän between them and the
other qizilbäsh tribes. One of the Takkalü supporters misguidedly
attempted to abduct the Shäh and carry him off to the Takkalü
camp. Tahmäsp, his patience clearly exhausted, had the intruder
put to death, and then gave the Draconian order for the general
slaughter of the Takkalü tribe. Many were killed around the royal
tent; others escaped to Baghdad, where the Safavid governor,
himself a Takkalü, put some of them to death as a proof of his
loyalty and sent their heads to the Shäh; some eventually defected
to the Ottomans. The chronogram in Persian for this event gives
the date of the event, 937 (1530/1), and the meaning “ the Takkalü
disaster” ; the chronogram is particularly apt, for the Takkalü
tribe never subsequently played any considerable part in the
governance of the Safavid state.
Shäh Tahmäsp, still no more than sixteen or seventeen years
of age, had given clear evidence that he did not intend to allow
the usurpation of his royal prerogatives by the qizilbäsh to go on
indefinitely, or to tolerate open rebellion by his soi-disant
“ disciples”. Husayn Khän Shämlü, however, who succeeded
Chüha Sultän as the most powerful qizilbäsh chief in the state, did
not draw the appropriate moral from his predecessor’s downfall.
Husayn Khän assumed office with the consensus of the qizilbäsh
chiefs and the principal officers of state, who subsequently in­
formed the Shäh of their decision. The four years of Takkalü
supremacy were followed by three years of Shämlü supremacy.
Just as Chüha Sultän had appointed Takkalüs to office in prefer­
ence to men from other tribes, so Husayn Khän allotted the pick
of provincial posts to Shämlüs. Husayn Khän repeated Chüha
Sultan’s mistake of not allowing the Shäh to have any say in the
56 Iran under the Safavids
business of government, and he also repeated his predecessor’s
mistake of underestimating the Shäh. Having angered the Shäh
by his arbitrary action in putting to death the vazir Amir Ja‘far
SävajT,7 in 1533 he aroused Tahmäsp’s suspicions that he was
plotting to overthrow him and put his brother, Säm Mïrzâ, on
the throne ; even worse, he was accused of contemplating desertion
to and collaboration with the Ottomans, who had invaded Iran
again. Tahmäsp had him summarily put to death. Since Husayn
Khän Shämlü was a cousin of Tahmäsp himself, and was also the
lala (guardian) of the Shäh’s infant son Muhammad Mïrzâ, who
had been born in 1531, his execution had a profound effect on
the other qizilbäsh chiefs. It indicated not only that the Shäh had
the will to take stern measures to put an end to qizilbäsh
hegemony, but also that he had at his command a sufficient
number of loyal officers to carry out his will.
The execution of Husayn Khän Shämlü marked the end of a
decade of qizilbäsh rule (1524-33), and the reassertion of royal
authority. The qizilbäsh interregnum had naturally caused some
changes in the relative importance of the principal offices of state.
The vakil, whose position had been confused with that of the vazxr
during the last decade of the reign of Shäh Ismâ‘ïl, when the office
was held by an Iranian, regained much of his former prestige and
importance. Indeed, his military and political power was such that
he is often confused in the sources with the amir al-umarä, whose
influence, as one would expect, was also greatly increased during
the period of government by military commanders. The triumvirs
are styled vakil and amir al-umarä indifferently, and during the
qizilbäsh interregnum there seems to have been no clear distinction
between these two offices in the minds of the historians of the
period. When Shäh Tahmäsp succeeded in taking control of the
affairs of state, both these titles fell into abeyance. We no longer
hear of the amir al-umarä as an officer of the central administration,
and the office is not listed among the appointments by Shäh £Abbäs
I at his accession in 1588. The title vakil, too, almost disappeared
from the scene. The reduction of the role of the military in the
governance of the state necessarily led to a marked increase in the
power of the head of the bureaucracy, the vazir. The qürchibäshi,8
a military officer formerly subordinate to the amir al-umarä,
emerged as the chief military officer of the state, and continued
to hold this position as long as the qizilbäsh troops constituted the
whole or principal part of Safavid armies.
The Safavid state from 1524 to 1588 57
The civil war in Iran had critically weakened the state and had
given an unexpected opportunity to the two most formidable
enemies of the Safavid state, the Ottoman Turks in the west and
the Özbegs in the east, to strike deep into Safavid territory.
Reference has already been made to Özbeg attacks in the east and
to the loss of Harät. Between 1524 and 1538, the Özbegs, led by
the vigorous and martial ‘Ubayd Alläh Khän, launched five major
invasions of Khurasan; these were quite apart from the almost
habitual annual raids across the north-east frontier. Even more
dangerous were the four full-scale invasions of Iran between 1533
and 1553 by the Ottomans, then at the height of their power under
the great Sultän Süleymän, known to the Ottomans as “ the
Lawgiver”, and to the West as “ the Magnificent”. The remark­
able thing is not that the Safavids suffered serious losses of
territory as a result of these onslaughts, but that they were not
overwhelmed. Shäh Tahmäsp, struggling against discord and dis­
loyalty and treachery in high places, both on the part of qizil­
bäsh chiefs and on the part of his own brothers, managed to hold
the Safavid state together for more than half a century. This
postulates one of two things —or perhaps a little of both: either
the institutional framework of the early Safavid state established
by Shäh IsmäTl, and its dynamic ideology, were strong enough,
in spite of all, to enable the state to weather the storm; or else
Tahmäsp possessed qualities with which he has not been credited
by any source, Western or Oriental.
Shäh Tahmäsp reigned for fifty-two years, longer than any
other Safavid monarch. His personal character seems to have made
little impression on Western observers, and what impression it did
make was wholly unfavourable. He is portrayed as a miser, so
parsimonious that he sent his disused clothing to the bazaar to be
sold. He is portrayed as a religious bigot, as a melancholy recluse
who swung between extremes of abstinence and intemperance,
as a man capable of great cruelty. He is said to have led the life
of a “ mere voluptuary”, never leaving the haram, “ where he
divides his time between dallying with his favourites and fore­
casting the future by means of lots”.9 He is not credited with
any particular skill either in the arts of peace or of war.
This picture is obviously out of focus, even distorted. In the
first place, Shäh Tahmäsp, whatever his faults, was not lacking
in either physical or moral courage. At the battle ofjäm in 1528,
apparent total defeat at the hands of the Özbegs was converted
58 Iran under the Safavids
into victory by Tahmäsp’s personal bravery and powers of
leadership. His moral courage was spectacularly demonstrated by
his decisions to execute the regent DTv Sultän Rümlü in 1527 and
the amir al-umarä Husayn Khän Shämlü in 1533, and by his
ordering of the general massacre of the rebellious Takkalüs in
1530. As a military commander, he was probably not in the same
class as his father, IsmäTl, or his grandson, ‘Abbäs I. On the other
hand, IsmäTTs flamboyance and dash, which achieved brilliant
victories over the Özbegs, were if anything a handicap in war­
fare against the Ottomans, which called for a cool head, sure
judgement and superior battle tactics. The shortcomings of IsmäTl
as a military commander were demonstrated by the Ottomans at
Chäldirän, and after that defeat IsmäTl retired to his tent, so to
speak, to sulk rather in the manner of Achilles. Shäh Tahmäsp’s
military skills were essentially defensive in nature, but he had no
choice but to fight defensive wars. For example, in 1533 he could
muster only 7,000 men to meet an Ottoman invasion force of
90,000 men under the Grand Vizier Ibrâhîm Pasha, and the loyalty
of many even of these 7,000 was suspect. The ability to survive
in the face of such odds surely posits that Tahmäsp was a master
of Fabian tactics. He made maximum use of a scorched earth
policy. The frontier areas of Äzarbäyjän through which invading
Ottoman armies had to pass were systematically laid waste. When
Ottoman forces reached the Iranian frontier, they were already
at the end of a long line of communication, and the task of
provisioning their men was a formidable one. The further they
advanced into Äzarbäyjän, the more difficult their position be­
came. Frequently there was shortage of food for the troops, and
their baggage-animals died because of the lack of pasture. When
they were forced to beat a retreat, through the mountainous
terrain of Äzarbäyjän and Kurdistän, they were harassed by
Kurdish and other tribes which made a living by raiding baggage-
trains and cutting off stragglers; the severe winters of these areas
also took their toll. Tahmäsp, realising that another defeat on the
scale of Chäldirän would mean the end of the Safavid state,
husbanded his meagre forces with the same parsimony with which
he watched over his treasuries. The lessons of Chäldirän had been
well learnt, and at no time did he commit his numerically far
inferior forces to a pitched battle against the Ottomans. At the
same time, within a few years of his accession, we find references
to the presence of both gunners (tüpchiyän) and musketeers
The Safavid state from 1524 to 1588 59
(tufangchiyän) in the Safavid armies. The use of cannon continued
to be restricted in the main to siege-warfare. The one occasion
on which the sources specifically record the use of cannon in the
field by Tahmäsp is at the battle of Jam, and in that action the
immobility of the cannon rendered them ineffective against
swiftly moving light cavalry forces which constantly changed
their point of attack; this was the case even though the guns
employed on that occasion were not heavy field-guns, but light
cannon (probably a type of mortar) mounted on wagons. The
ineffectiveness of artillery in the field on that occasion merely
increased the already considerable antipathy felt by the Safavids
toward that weapon. In 1539, we hear for the first time of a new
military office, that of tüpchï-bâshï, or commander-in-chief of
artillery. In regard to hand-guns, detachments using arquebuses
or muskets formed part of Safavid armies before the death of Shäh
Ismä‘il, and after the accession of Tahmäsp references to them
are frequent. Until his premature death in 1549 at the age of
thirty-two, Bahräm Mïrzâ, Tahmäsp’s brother, gave the Shäh
loyal support; Bahräm, a fearless and sometimes impetuous
commander, in many ways resembled his father. Tahmäsp’s
two other brothers, however, Säm Mïrzâ and Alqäs Mïrzâ, were
both guilty of treachery: the former, while Governor-General of
Khuräsän, rebelled against the Shäh and carried on intrigues with
the Ottomans; the latter, while Governor of Shïrvân, rebelled and
threw in his lot with the Ottomans. In 1548, Sultän Süleymän
equipped him with an army and sent him to Iran to overthrow
Tahmäsp. The treachery of these two brothers was a source of
great grief to the Shäh.
That Shäh Tahmäsp was a religious bigot is undeniable. The
celebrated incident which occurred when Anthony Jenkinson, an
Englishman in search of trade privileges, was received in audience
by Tahmäsp in 1562, reveals the Shäh’s attitude toward “ infidels ”
in general (see Chapter $). Shäh Tahmäsp certainly did not possess
that dominant characteristic of pragmatism possessed by his
grandson ‘Abbäs I who, when he realised that religious tolerance
was good for trade, committed himself to a policy of religious
tolerance. Tahmäsp’s parsimony, too, is well attested. A Chronicle
of the Carmelites in Persia asserts that :
Every day, “ for the sake o f his soul” , many kinds o f tribute and imposts
are removed and people made free o f them ; but for the most part such
measures are not put into execution, because, w hen tw o or three years
6o Iran under the Safavids
have passed, he wants the w hole sum at once, as he did at the time when
I was w ith the court in the district o f Julfa, inhabited entirely by
Armenians, w ho had been exempted for 8 years from paying tribute,
when all at once he determined to demand it for the w hole time past,
to the loss and ruin o f those poor Christians.
Tahmäsp gave his cast-ofF clothing in lieu ofpayment, “ what was
worth ‘i ’ being reckoned as ‘io ” \ He often sold jewels and dealt
in other merchandise, “ buying and bartering with that subtlety
which a passable trader might use”.10 The Shäh imposed a tax of
one-seventh on all merchandise. A contemporary Persian source
is uncompromising on the subject of his avariciousness:
Shäh Tahmäsp was extremely avaricious in regard to the accumulation
o f m oney, property and treasure. O f the rulers o f Iran and Türänu since
the invasions o f Chingiz Khän —or even since the advent o f Islam —
no king at any period expended so much effort as Shäh Tahmäsp to
accumulate treasure in the form o f cash, cloths and stuffs, and articles
like vessels o f gold and silver.12

The need to fight on two fronts was a severe handicap for the
Safavids. It meant that maximum Safavid strength could not be
mobilised either in the west or the east, and in fact Safavid armies
were regularly inferior in numbers to both the armies of the
Ottomans and those of the Özbegs. At the battle of Jäm in 1528,
for example, Tahmäsp had 24,000 men against an Ozbeg army
of 80,000 seasoned veterans and some 40,000 skirmishers and
irregulars, and the pitifully small force at Tahmäsp’s disposal in
1534 at the time of the first Ottoman invasion has already been
mentioned. The news that the Shäh had moved the bulk of his
forces to Äzarbäyjän to meet an Ottoman threat was a signal to
the Ozbegs to step up the pressure on the north-east frontier.
Conversely, the Shäh was repeatedly prevented from taking any
long-term measures against the Ozbegs by Ottoman invasions in
the west. In the winter of 1533/4, for instance, when Tahmäsp
had just relieved Harät after that city had endured a terrible siege
by the Özbegs lasting eighteen months, during which the garrison
and inhabitants had been reduced to eating cats and dogs, the Shäh
was making plans for a major expedition to Transoxania when
he received the news that Sultän Süleyman’s army had invaded
Äzarbäyjän, and was forced to return to the west. There was no
relaxation of the relentless series of attacks mounted by ‘Ubayd
Alläh Khän in the east until the death of that Özbeg leader in 1540.
The Safavid state from 1524 to 1588 61
The Ottomans were given considerable assistance in their
efforts to conquer Iran by renegade qizilbäsh amirs and by the
traitor Alqäs Mïrzâ, the Shah’s brother. Sultan Süleymän’s first
invasion of Iran in 1534 came about as the result of intrigues by
the defector Uläma of the Takkalü tribe. At the time when the
triumvir Chüha Sultän was the defacto ruler of the state, Uläma
was commander-in-chief of the armed forces in Äzarbäyjän. After
the fall of Chüha Sultän, Uläma had ambitions to succeed him
as chief executive officer of the state. When Husayn Khän Shämlü
was appointed to succeed Chüha Sultän, Uläma forgot the debt
of loyalty which he owed to the Safavid house, and defected
to the Ottomans. It is true that many Takkalü officers fled in
fear of their lives as a result of the stern action taken against
the rebellious Takkalü tribe in 1530/1. There is, however, no
evidence that the Shäh proscribed any Takkalüs who were not
actually involved in the revolt at the time of the death of Chüha
Sultän, and the fact that officers like Uläma were prepared actually
to enter Ottoman service shows the extent to which the qizilbäsh
had abandoned in practice their unquestioning obedience to the
Shäh as their murshid-i kämil, whatever lip-service they might
continue to pay to it in theory. It was Uläma who alerted the
Ottoman Sultän to the fact that north-west and central Iran lay
undefended in 1533 when the Shäh was planning to invade
Transoxania. Sultän Süleymän sent a force of 80,000—90,000 men
under the Grand Vizier, Ibrâhîm Pasha, while he followed up with
the main army. The Grand Vizier made contact with Uläma, and
dispatched him with a force in the direction of Ardabïl.
Shäh Tahmäsp marched back from the frontier of Transoxania
to Rayy by forced marches, covering the distance in twenty-one
days. The situation was a desperate one. Sultän Süleymän had
joined forces with the Grand Vizier, and the vast Ottoman host
had brushed aside a small force sent by the Shäh to try and hold
Tabriz. For the first time, the faith of some in the fortunes of the
Safavid house wavered. More qizilbäsh officers defected, and the
loyalty of some who remained was suspect. At this critical
juncture, a heavy snowfall blanketed the plain at Sultäniyya,
where the Ottomans were encamped, and many Turkish soldiers
perished from exposure. Sultän Süleymän, unable to return by the
route by which he had come, because no supplies were to be had
in Äzarbäyjän, was forced to withdraw through Kurdistän. The
62 Iran under the Safavids
Shäh went in pursuit of Uläma and other renegades who had shut
themselves up in the fortress of Van, but meanwhile Sultän
Süleymän had occupied Baghdäd at the invitation of the Safavid
garrison, which consisted of Takkalü troops. Only the com­
mandant of the garrison and 300 men remained loyal to the
Safavid cause. Thereafter Baghdäd and the province of ‘Iräq-i
‘Arab, conquered by Shäh Ismä‘Il in 1508, remained in Ottoman
hands except for the short period between 1623 and 1638.
The second round of the Ottoman offensive opened the
following year, and was directed by Sultän Süleymän from
Baghdäd. A number of engagements were fought at various
points between Kurdistan and the Armenian highlands, and the
Safavids were uniformly successful. The renegade Uläma again
took part in the fighting on the Ottoman side. The third Ottoman
invasion occurred in 1548 and, like the first, was on a massive scale.
Sultän Süleymän marched forth from Istanbul, with a vast army
recruited from Anatolia, Syria, Egypt, Qarämän, Diyär RabFa
and ‘Iräq-i ‘Arab, accompanied by large quantities of artillery and
countless janissaries. With him went the traitor Alqäs Mïrzâ, Shah
Tahmäsp’s brother. Alqäs MTrzä, while Governor of Shïrvân, had
rebelled against the Shäh, had been pardoned, rebelled again,
and had finally sought refuge from Tahmäsp’s wrath with the
Ottoman Sultän. He had told the Sultän that, if he (Alqäs) were
to enter Iran at the head of a large army, there would be a general
uprising in his favour.
Tahmäsp made his usual preparations to meet the new on­
slaught. He had the entire area between Tabriz and the Ottoman
frontier laid waste, so that no trace of grain or blade of grass
remained. The inhabitants of Tabriz blocked up the underground
water-channels, so that no drinking water could be found.
Similarly, measures were taken to deny the enemy all forms
of victuals. When Sultän Süleymän reached the Iranian frontier,
he sent the renegade Uläma Takkalü to lay siege to Vän, and
dispatched Alqäs MTrzä and 40,000 men in the direction of
Marand. Once again the Ottomans occupied Tabriz, but their
forces soon began to suffer acutely from lack of provisions. When
their pack-animals began to die like flies, Sultän Süleymän again
beat the retreat, harassed at every step by the qizilbäsh forces. The
Sultän detached Alqäs Mïrzâ, who had ceased to be of use to him
once his words had proved to be an empty boast, and Uläma,
hoping that they would draw off some of his pursuers. The move
The Safavid state from 1524 to 1588 63
was unsuccessful. Alqäs Mïrzâ penetrated deep into central Iran,
passing through Qum to Käshän; the people of Isfahan shut the
gates ofthat city against him, and he moved south into Firs, where
Shiraz also refused him admittance. After an equally unsuccessful
attempt to rouse support in Khüzistän, Alqäs Mïrzâ, in despair,
returned to Baghdäd. Now merely a source of embarrassment to
the Ottomans, he was expelled from Baghdäd, and fled into
Kurdistän, where he was arrested by Safavid forces and taken
before the Shäh, who upbraided him for his disloyal and dis­
honourable conduct. His life was spared, but he and the Shäh’s
other disloyal brother, Säm Mïrzâ, were incarcerated in the
remote fortress—prison of Qahqaha.
The suppression of Alqäs Mïrzâ’s revolt was followed by four
or five years of peace between the Safavid and the Ottoman
empires. Minor acts of insubordination on the part of Kurdish
chieftains along the frontier were overlooked, and Shäh Tahmäsp
was encouraged to open negotiations for a more lasting peace.
Before this was achieved, however, the acts of provocation
committed by Iskandar Pasha, Governor of Van and then
Governor-General of Erzerüm, including attacks on Khvuy and
Erïvân, led to the fourth and last invasion of Iran by the Ottomans
during the reign of Sultän Süleymän. This time there was a change
in the usual pattern of events. Instead of waiting for the arrival
of the Ottoman army, Shäh Tahmäsp seized the initiative. The
fact that he was able to divide his army into four army corps, and
to send each in a different direction, indicates a significant increase
in the strength of the Safavid army. Iskandar Pasha was soundly
defeated outside Erzerüm, with the loss of 3,000 men. The Shäh
captured a number of key forts along the frontier. When Sultän
Süleymän finally reached Nakhchivän in the summer of 1533, he
found it impossible to remain in the area because of the effective­
ness of the Safavid scorched earth policy, and withdrew toward
Erzerüm, In the course of his retreat, Sinän Beg, one of the
Sultän’s intimate companions and special favourites, was captured
by a Safavid patrol, and this made the Sultän the more ready to
enter into serious peace negotiations. Peace was finally signed at
Amasya in 1555, and Iran obtained a much needed respite from
Ottoman attacks which lasted for thirty years. Because Tabriz had
proved so vulnerable to Ottoman attack, the Shäh transferred his
capital to Qazvïn.
Starting from a virtually hopeless position, Shäh Tahmäsp had
64 Iran under the Safavids
achieved much during the first thirty years of his reign. He had
maintained his position during a decade of civil war between those
“ turbulent praetorians”, the qizilbäsh chiefs. With pathetically
small resources, he had survived massive onslaughts from both
east and west; not only had he survived, but he had gradually
increased the strength of his armed forces and, aided by his one
loyal brother Bahram and by his son Isma‘il, had gone over to
the offensive against the Ottomans in the campaign of 1553. As
a result, when he opened peace negotiations with the Sublime
Porte, he was able to do so from a position of relative strength,
and the terms of the Treaty of Amasya were not unfavourable
to Iran. Had Tahmäsp been forced to negotiate peace with the
Ottomans in 1534, he would undoubtedly have been forced to
cede large areas of territory in the north-west, including his
capital, Tabriz. As it was, by the Treaty of Amasya only minor
territorial modifications were made along the Ottoman—Safavid
frontier, and both sides made concessions. Georgia was divided
into mutually agreed “ spheres of influence”. Peace remained
unbroken for the remainder of Shäh Tahmäsp’s lifetime. Sultän
Selim II succeeded his father Süleymän on the death of the latter
in 1566, and was succeeded in his turn by Sultän Muräd who,
during the lifetime of Tahmäsp and Ismâ‘ïl II, “ did not deviate
from the path of friendship and sworn peace” .13
Between 1540 and 1553, Shäh Tahmäsp waged four campaigns
in the Caucasus. In the course of these campaigns, Georgian,
Circassian and Armenian prisoners were taken in large numbers
and brought back to Iran. The introduction of these new ethnic
groups profoundly changed the whole character of Safavid
society, and had important repercussions on the military and
political institutions of the state. Prior to the introduction of these
new elements, there had been a struggle for power, for control
of the principal offices of state, between the two “ founding races”,
the Iranians and the Turks. By the end of the reign of Tahmäsp,
the qizilbäsh found their privileged position as the military
aristocracy challenged by members of the new ethnic groups.
Moreover, the introduction into the royal haram of Georgian and
Circassian women, who were prized for their beauty, precipitated
dynastic struggles of a completely new kind, as these women
engaged in political intrigue with a view to securing the throne
for their own sons.
The Safavid state from 1524 to 1588 65

Why did Shäh Tahmäsp wage these campaigns in the Caucasus,


and was the introduction of these new ethnic groups from the
Caucasus a conscious policy on his part in order to offset the power
of the qizilbäsh? The answer to the first question is that Tahmäsp’s
motives in sending his troops into the Caucasian provinces were
very probably the same as the motives of his forefathers Junayd,
Haydar and Ismâ‘ïl, namely, the desire to give his troops battle
experience, and the desire for booty. The Georgian churches
constituted a rich source of gold, jewels and other luxury items,
which found their way into the Safavid treasury. Since the Cau­
casian provinces were for the most part inhabited by Christian
peoples, the launching of these attacks without any necessary pro­
vocation on the part of the victims could be given the convenient
justification of jihad, or “ holy w ar”, against the infidel. The
waging of these campaigns by Tahmäsp was probably part of a
deliberate policy to try and restore the morale and fighting
efficiency of the qizilbäsh after the double trauma of Chäldirän and
the civil war of 1525—33. As a result of these campaigns,
The governors o f all the seven districts o f Georgia were appointed by
the Shäh and became his subjects, contracted to pay the poll-tax and
the land-tax, and were instructed to have the name and exalted titles
o f the Shäh included in the khutba, and stamped on the coinage. Thus
the infidels o f those regions were reduced to submission by the sharp
swords o f the warriors o f Islam.14

The answer to the second question is less certain. Shäh ‘Abbäs


I, who came to the throne in 1588, gave official recognition to
these “ third force” elements by making the ghulämän-i khässa-yi
sharïfa (slaves of the royal household) an important part of both
the civil and military administration. The ghuläms, on arrival in
Iran, were required to become Muslims, though, particularly in
the case of the Georgians, their conversion to Islam was fairly
nominal. They were then given special training, on completion
of which they were either enrolled in one of the newly created
ghuläm regiments, or given employment in the royal household
or some other branch of the khâssa administration. This was the
situation as regularised by Shäh ‘Abbäs I. Were any elements of
this situation visible during the reign of Tahmäsp? The answer,
I think, is “ yes”, but the sources do not make it clear whether
these changes were embodied in any formal structures or institu­
66 Iran under the Safavids
tionalised forms; if they were, then it is safe to assume that they
were the result of conscious policy decisions by Tahmäsp.
The majority of the prisoners brought to Iran from the
Caucasus during the reign of Tahmäsp were women or children,
and it was these children and their descendants, and the offspring
of these women, who constituted the basis of the “ third force”
as institutionalised by ‘Abbäs I. The number of people involved
was considerable. For example, from the campaign of 1553/4,
30,000 prisoners were brought back to Iran. It should not be
overlooked that some Georgian noblemen voluntarily offered
their services to the Safavid crown. One nobleman, connected
with the Georgian royal family, who had been sent to the Safavid
court as an ambassador, entered Safavid service with all his
retainers, and eventually became Governor of Shakkï, a province
of Shîrvân. In 1585, during the reign of Sultan Muhammad Shäh,
we find a Georgian nobleman holding the office of lala, or
guardian, to one of the Safavid princes. The office of lata had
always been a jealously guarded preserve of the qizilbäsh, and the
appointment of a Georgian to such a politically sensitive position
is an indication that significant social changes had taken place
before the accession of ‘Abbäs I.
One of the most celebrated events of Tahmäsp’s reign was the
visit to Iran of the Mogul Emperor Humäyün, the son of Bäbur
who had founded the empire in 1526.15 At his accession,
Humäyün had to fight desperately against disloyal brothers and
against strong Afghän forces. Defeated twice by the Afghäns, and
with revolts on all sides, Humäyün, made for Qandahär, on the
frontier between the Mogul empire and the Safavid state, but was
rebuffed there too, and threw himself on the mercy of Shäh
Tahmäsp. The visit of this Sunni ruler in 1544 clearly showed
Tahmäsp’s religious bigotry. He refused to give him any political
assistance unless he became a convert to Shi‘ism, and he let
Humäyün know that his own life and the lives of his 700-strong
retinue were in jeopardy unless he agreed to become a ShI‘I.
Reluctantly, Humäyün signified his acceptance of the ShT‘I faith.
After his return to India, he reverted to his Sunni faith, but he
was a man of liberal religious views and many ShI‘Is from Iran
entered his service.16 The quid pro quo which Tahmäsp demanded
for giving sanctuary to the Mogul emperor was the strategically
important city of Qandahär, which had been a bone of contention
The Safavid state from 1524 to 1588 67

between the two states from the time of the founding of the
Mogul empire. Humäyün surrendered Qandahär to Tahmäsp,
but the city did not remain in Safavid hands for long, and control
of it continued to pass from one side to the other.
Another foreign dignitary to arrive at Tahmäsp’s court,
although of a rather different calibre, was the fugitive Otto­
man prince Bâyazïd, who had rebelled against his father Sultän
Süleymän. Bâyazïd attempted to persuade Tahmäsp to espouse his
cause and to lead an army against the Ottomans, but Tahmäsp
not surprisingly was averse to disturbing the hard-won peace
which he had recently concluded with the Ottoman Sultän.
Ultimately, the Shäh suspected that Bäyazld, who had brought
10,000 fully armed men with him, was plotting a coup at QazvTn,
and Sultän Süleymän made it clear that the continuance of the
existing peace was dependent upon the extradition of Bâyazïd.
Tahmäsp thereupon handed over Bâyazïd and his four sons to the
Ottoman delegation sent to fetch them, and the terms of the
Treaty of Amasya were reconfirmed in 1562. On instructions
from Sultän Süleymän, the five Ottoman princes were put to
death as soon as they were taken into Ottoman custody.
In 1574, Shäh Tahmäsp fell ill. His illness lasted two months,
and twice he was at the point of death. With the temporary
removal of his firm hand from the helm, there was a recrudescence
of dissension among the qizilbäsh chiefs. For forty years, since he
reasserted the authority of the crown in 1533, Tahmäsp had
achieved a satisfactory balance between the rival qizilbäsh and
Tâjïk elements in the state. Now that the Shäh was ailing, the
qizilbäsh thought they could regain control of the state as they
had after the death of Shäh Ismâ‘ïl I when Tahmäsp himself was
still a minor. In 1574, however, the situation was more compli­
cated than it had been in 1524. In 1524, the struggle had been
to determine which qizilbäsh tribe, or coalition of tribes, would
govern a state in which the qizilbäsh tribes in general enjoyed
a dominant and privileged position. In 1574, and particularly
after the death of Tahmäsp in 1576, the struggle was to deter­
mine whether the qizilbäsh could fight off the challenge to this
privileged position made by the Georgians, Circassians and
Armenians who now constituted a “ third force” within the state
and society. The Safavid leaders Junayd and Haydar had married
wives of Turcoman stock, and Tahmäsp’s mother was also a
68 Iran under the Safavids
Turcoman. With the question of the succession to Tahmäsp an
imminent problem, the Georgian and Circassian women in the
royal haram who were the mothers of princes of the blood royal
pushed the claims of their respective sons to the succession; had
they succeeded in placing one of them on the throne, the power
and influence of the “ third force” elements in the administration
of the Safavid state would obviously have been greatly enhanced.
O f Tahmäsp’s nine sons who reached adolescence, seven were
the sons of Circassian or Georgian mothers; only two were the
sons of a Turcoman mother: Muhammad Khudäbanda, and
Ismâ‘ïl. The qizilbäsh problem was made more acute by the fact
that neither of these princes was fitted to rule. Muhammad
Khudäbanda’s eyesight was so bad that he was virtually blind.
Ismâ‘îl had had an auspicious start to his political career. Appointed
Governor of Shlrvän in 1547, he had conducted several successful
campaigns against the Ottomans in the Caucasus and eastern
Anatolia, and in 1556 he was appointed Governor of Khuräsän.
After only a few months at Harät, however, Ismä‘il was suddenly
arrested and sent to the remote prison of Qahqaha, usually
reserved for dangerous political prisoners. Ismä‘11 seems to have
forfeited the Shäh’s favour by certain actions at Harät which made
the Shäh suspect that Ismâ‘ïl was plotting to overthrow him.
These suspicions were played on by Ma‘süm Beg Safavï, a
powerful official descended from a side branch of the Safavid
family, who had been appointed head of the bureaucracy in 1559
or perhaps earlier, and who was also the lala (guardian) of
Tahmäsp’s third son, Haydar, whose mother was a Georgian
slave. Ma‘süm Beg would naturally have aspirations for his own
protege to succeed Tahmäsp, and would therefore seize any
opportunity to spoil IsmTïTs chances. In his position of power in
the central administration, Ma‘süm Beg was well placed to pour
poison into the Shäh’s ear. Whether Tahmäsp’s suspicions were
justified or not, Ismä‘11 remained in jail for nearly twenty years,
from the time of his incarceration in December 1556 to his release
by the qizilbäsh, who proceeded to set him on the throne, in
August 1576.
Before IsmäTl II came to the throne, there was much jockeying
for position on the part of the rival factions. It is clear that the
qizilbäsh did not at once perceive the true nature of the threat
to their own position from the Georgian and Circassian factions,
The Safavid state from 1324 to 1388 69
because in 1574 certain qizilbäsh chiefs were plotting on behalf
of Sulaymän Mïrzâ, whose mother was the sister of a Circas­
sian chief. By 1575, the qizilbäsh had split into two factions,
one supporting Ismâ‘11 Mïrzâ, the other Haydar Mïrzâ, whose
mother was a Georgian and one of the Shâh’s legal wives.
Tahmäsp himself is said to have favoured Haydar, but he kept
his own counsel, and placed a special guard on Ismâ‘ïl in case
the pro-Haydar faction should try to murder him. When Shâh
Tahmäsp died on 14 May 1576, the Georgians and the Ustäjlüs
made an unsuccessful attempt to place Haydar on the throne.
Haydar actually placed the crown on his head, and called himself
“ shah ”, but, as luck would have it, the guard on duty at the palace
that day was composed of supporters oflsmâTl —Afshârs, Rümlüs
and Bayâts —who effectively isolated Haydar from his own
supporters. In the fracas which ensued, Haydar was killed. Next,
the Rümlüs and Circassians attempted to enthrone a prince whose
mother was a Circassian slave, but this attempt, too, was frustrated.
Finally, most of the qizilbäsh threw their support behind a
“ Turcoman candidate”, Ismâfl Mïrzâ. Thirty thousand qizilbäsh
assembled before the prison-fortress of Qahqaha. Ismâ‘11, who
consented to emerge from the security of the prison only after
receiving the most solemn pledges of support, was enthroned at
Qazvïn as Shâh Ismâ‘ïl II, on 22 August 1576, at the age of forty.
Ismâ‘11 II early served notice that his mind had been affected
by his long imprisonment. During the three months which
elapsed between the death of his father and his enthronement, a
delay which had been caused mainly by IsmâfTs insistence on
waiting for an auspicious date, Ismâ‘11not only put to death many
of those who had supported Haydar, especially Ustäjlüs, but also
treated his own supporters in a hostile fashion. He executed those
whose only crime was that they had held important office under
his father. “ The royal tents,” he said, “ cannot be held up by old
ropes.” It soon became clear that Ismâ‘11 Ifs only goal was to
remain in power at all costs. To that end, he systematically killed,
or blinded, any prince of the blood royal who might conceivably
become the centre of a conspiracy against him. Five of his
brothers, and four other Safavid princes, were murdered or
blinded. The qizilbäsh, realising that he was not the sort of ruler
they had hoped for, now conspired to assassinate him. The factor
which gave a certain plausible justification to their action was that
7 0 Iran under the Safavids
Ismä‘H II was a rather less than enthusiastic Shï‘ï. Since Ismâ‘ïl was
addicted to narcotics, his murder was an easy matter. With the
connivance of Ismâ‘ïTs sister, Pan Khan Khänum, the conspira­
tors placed poison in an electuary containing opium, which was
consumed by the Shäh and one of his boon companions. IsmäH
died on 24 November 1577, having reigned for only slightly
more than a year.
The only members of the Safavid royal house who had not been
murdered or blinded by IsmäTl II during his brief reign were his
elder brother Muhammad Khudäbanda and the latter’s three sons :
Hamza, Abü Tälib and ‘Abbas; and they had escaped Ismä‘Tl IPs
purge only because he himself was murdered before orders issued
for their execution had been carried out. The qizilbäsh therefore
had little alternative but to place on the throne the prince whom
they had passed over previously, namely, Muhammad Khundä-
banda, and the latter reached Qazvln from Shiraz on 11 or 13
February 1578; he adopted the style Sultän Muhammad Shäh.
The new Shäh, who was of a mild, somewhat unworldly
disposition, given to jokes and witticisms, who wrote poetry
under the pen-name of “ Fahmï”, and who was, as will be
recalled, almost blind, was at once caught up in the bitter rivalry
between two ambitious and ruthless women : his own wife, Mahd-i
‘Ulyä, and Tahmäsp’s daughter, Pan Khän Khänum, who had
aided the conspirators to murder IsmäTl II and had since his death
managed the affairs of state through a council of qizilbäsh chiefs
which she had set up. None of these chiefs dared to disobey her
orders, and she confidently anticipated that her brother, Sultän
Muhammad Shäh, would submit to her will also. Her plans went
awry when an experienced Iranian bureaucrat named Mïrzâ
Salmän, who had been appointed vazxr by Shäh Ismä‘Tl II in June
1577, managed to obtain permission from Pan Khän Khänum to
leave Qazvïn and travel to Shïrâz. With that innate sense of
self-preservation bred in Iranian bureaucrats from long centuries
of tradition, MTrzä Salmän lost no time in ingratiating himself
with Sultän Muhammad Shäh and his wife by revealing to them
the powerful position held at Qazvïn by Parï Khän Khänum.
Mahd-i ‘Ulyä immediately saw that either she or the Shäh’s sister
had to go, and she set about detaching as many qizilbäsh chiefs
as possible from their allegiance to her rival. The night after the
arrival of Sultän Muhammad Shäh and Mahd-i ‘Ulyä at Qazvïn,
The Safavid state from 1524 to 1588 7i
they had Pari Khan Khanum strangled; her uncle, the Circassian
chief Shamkhal, was executed, and Ismâ‘ïl IPs infant son was
murdered.
Mahd-i ‘Ulya was now in complete control of the state. Her
eldest son, Hamza Mïrzâ, was appointed vakil of the Supreme
Divan, and was authorised to affix his seal to official documents
above that of the vazïr, Mïrzâ Salmân. For eighteen months,
Mahd-i ‘Ulyâ reigned supreme. She was the daughter of a local
ruler in Mâzandarân whose family boasted of its descent from the
4th Shï‘ï Imâm, Zayn al-‘Äbidm. She was hostile to the interests
of the qizilbäsh, and did all she could to strengthen the position
of the Tâjïks in the administration of the state; in this policy she
naturally had the strong support of the vazïr. Mahd-i ‘Ulya was
determined that her favourite son, Hamza, should succeed her
husband. To prevent her younger son ‘Abbäs from constituting
a threat to her plans, she tried repeatedly to get him sent to QazvTn,
but the Governor of Harât, ‘All Qui! Khän Shämlü, refused to
comply with her orders. Another of Mahd-i ‘Ulyâ’s ambitions
was to revenge herself on the man who had murdered her father
in Mâzandarân and expropriated her family’s territory in that
province. When her father’s murderer died before she could
achieve her object, she extended her feud to his son, Mïrzâ Khân,
who finally agreed to come to Qazvïn after receiving a solemn
promise of safe-conduct. While Mïrzâ Khân was on his way to
Qazvïn with an escort of qizilbäsh, he was murdered by some of
the Queen’s men. The qizilbäsh chiefs felt great indignation at the
Queen’s violation of a sworn oath, particularly since it was they
who had persuaded Mïrzâ Khân to throw himself on the Queen’s
mercy in the first place.
Sultän Muhammad Shâh tried to win the favour of his subjects
by a policy of lavish grants from the treasury. All the qizilbäsh
chiefs who were appointed to provincial posts received their pay
and allowances for one year and in some cases for two. The large
stock of robes of honour which had been accumulated in the
treasury were distributed to the amirs, to office-holders, to finan­
cial agents, kaläntars (mayors) and other provincial dignitaries.
The troops of the royal bodyguard, who had received no pay
for ten years, were paid all the arrears due to them. New positions
of the status of amir were added to the establishment of each
qizilbäsh tribe. Since all the provinces had already been assigned
72 Iran under the Safavids
as fiefs (the normal form of payment), the payment of these newly
created amirs constituted yet another drain on the royal treasury,
which rapidly became exhausted. This royal largesse did not
produce good government. The civilian population complained
of a lack of security. The qizilbäsh, seeing that new offices and
perquisites were apparently there for the asking, demanded more.
The general impression created abroad by the administration
of Sultän Muhammad Shäh and his Queen was one of weakness
and discord within the state. The traditional enemies of the
Safavids, the Ottomans and the Özbegs, were not slow in
attacking Iran to see whether this impression was correct. The
Ozbegs again ravaged Khuräsän, and, in the west, the Ottomans,
in league with some Kurdish chiefs, probed the Safavid defences
in Äzarbäyjän. The long period of peace with the Ottomans was
definitively broken when Sultän Muräd sent an army of more
than 100,000 men, which included a large force of Crimean
Tatars, to invade Äzarbäyjän in 1578. The Safavid forces suffered
defeat after defeat. A large part of Georgia was overrun. In
1579/80 Hamza Mïrzâ and the vazxr MTrzä Salmän made a
successful counter-attack in Shïrvân and Qaräbägh, and the Tatar
chief, ‘Ädil Giräy Khän, was taken prisoner. ‘Ädil Giräy was
treated with honour, in the hope of weaning him from his
allegiance to the Ottomans, and he was lodged in the state
apartments in the royal palace at Qazvïn. The qizilbäsh amirs
pressed the Shäh to transfer the Tatar khän to one of the
fortress—prisons, on the grounds that it was too dangerous to leave
him at Qazvïn while most of the amirs were away on campaign
against the Ottomans.
The hostility between the Queen and the qizilbäsh chiefs was
rapidly coming to a head. The qizilbäsh resented the Queen’s
pro-Tâjïk policies; those who had persuaded Mïrzâ Khän to go
to Qazvïn on the Queen’s guaranteeing his safe-conduct were
outraged when the Queen violated her oath; those of the royal
bodyguard who carried out the murder of Mïrzâ Khän were
disgruntled because the Queen failed to reward them adequately;
they were angered by the Queen’s rejection of their advice in
regard to ‘Ädil Giräy Khän; in short, they disliked Mahd-i
‘Ulyä and everything she stood for, and in particular they disliked
her hold over the Shäh and the fact that she missed no opportunity
to humiliate the qizilbäsh. A group of qizilbäsh conspirators
The Safavid state from 1524 to 1588 73
banded together to remove Mahd-i ‘Ulya from her position of
power. They sent a message to the Shäh:
Your Majesty w ell know s that w om en are notoriously lacking in
intelligence, weak in judgem ent, and extrem ely obstinate. M ahd-i
‘U lya has always opposed us, the loyal servants o f the crow n, and has
never agreed w ith us on matters o f state policy; she has acted contrary
to the considered opinions o f the qizilbäsh elders, and has constantly
attempted to humiliate and degrade us. W e have not been safe from
her actions, even though up to the present time w e have not been guilty
o f improper conduct, nor have w e done anything to cause her alarm.
So h ow can w e feel secure now , w hen our basic incompatibility has
com e out into the open, when she has lashed w ith her tongue the elders
o f the qizilbäsh tribes, has called us mutinous, and has uttered dire threats
against us ? In short, w e do not consider it proper that word should get
around am ong neighbouring rulers that no member o f the royal family
still remains in the care o f the qizilbash, because a w om an has taken
charge o f the affairs o f state and is all-powerful. M ahd-i ‘U ly a ’s pow er
and influence in the governm ent o f the realm is objectionable to all the
qizilbäsh tribes, and it is impossible for us to reach a modus vivendi with
her. If she is not rem oved from pow er, in all probability revolts will
occur w hich w ill be to the detriment o f both religion and the state.17

The Shäh, a pious, ascetic and mild soul, offered to exile his
wife to Qum, or to send her back to Mâzandarân, or to abdicate
himself, leaving the choice of his successor to the qizilbäsh chiefs.
The Queen despised his attempts to appease the qizilbash; she
would not swerve a hair’s breadth, she said, from the line of
conduct she had followed so far. When they heard this, a group
of the conspirators burst into the haram and strangled the Queen.
A few days later, the qizilbäsh amirs assembled at the palace, and
reaffirmed their fealty to Sultän Muhammad Shäh and, after him,
to Hamza Mïrzâ. The impotence of the Shäh and Hamza Mïrzâ,
starkly revealed by their inability to call the murderers of the
Queen to account, encouraged the qizilbäsh to give full rein to
inter-tribal rivalries in a manner reminiscent of the factionalism
rampant at the beginning of the reign of Tahmäsp. In the case
of Tahmäsp, they had been able easily to dominate a ten-year-old
boy ; in the case of Sultän Muhammad Shäh, they were able to
impose their will on a good, well-meaning, but pathetically weak
and almost blind middle-aged man. At Qazvïn, the Turkmän and
Takkalü tribes were in control; in Khuräsän, an Ustäjlü—Shämlü
coalition raised the standard of revolt in 1581 and swore allegiance
74 Iran under the Safavids
to the Shäh’s son ‘Abbas, then ten years of age. In November 1582,
the Shäh and Hamza MTrzä led the royal army to Khuräsän to
suppress the revolt, but their attempt brought them further
humiliation at the hands of the qizilbäsh. At first, all went well.
The Ustäjlü leader, Murshid QulT Khän, declared his allegiance
to Hamza MTrzä, and received the royal pardon. The Shämlü
chief, ‘AlT QulT Khän, was isolated and besieged at Harät. Then
the bad blood between the qizilbäsh chiefs in the royal army, and
the vazxr MTrzä Salmän, formerly the right-hand man of the
Queen, Mahd-i ‘Ulyä, came to a head. Since the qizilbäsh in the
royal army were less than enthusiastic about prosecuting a siege
against their fellows within the walls of Harät, the vazxr openly
accused them of dereliction of duty and sedition. The qizilbäsh
already hated the vazïr because he had supported the pro-Tâjîk
policies of the late Queen, and because he had been granted
military rank and had taken a leading part in the campaigns of
1579/ 8o against the Ottomans. In other words, the qizilbäsh were
no more reconciled in 1583 to the idea of a Tâjïk having military
pretensions than they had been in 1512 when their animosity
toward the Tâjïk vakil had led to the defeat and death of the latter.
They now denounced MTrzä Salmän in violent terms. He was,
they said, the destroyer of the state and the enemy of the qizilbäsh,
and they demanded his dismissal from the office of vazxr. MTrzä
Salmän had every reason to expect that his patrons, the Shäh and
Hamza MTrzä (the prince was additionally his son-in-law) would
protect him, but they surrendered him tamely to the qizilbäsh
amxrs, who put him to death after appropriating all his possessions.
After the murder of MTrzä Salmän, Hamza MTrzä, then about
nineteen years of age, directed the affairs of state, but he lacked
the maturity of judgement and political experience required by
such turbulent times. Not only was he impulsive and hot-
tempered, but he was a heavy drinker, and he made the fatal
mistake of making some of the younger qizilbäsh officers stationed
at Qazvïn his drinking-companions. As a result, he soon became
embroiled in qizilbäsh factionalism. The military situation con­
tinued to deteriorate, and the Ottomans occupied Tabrïz in 1585.
This time, they were to remain in occupation of the former
Safavid capital for twenty years. The same year, Hamza had to
suppress a plot in favour of his brother Tahmäsp. On 6 December
1586, Hamza MTrzä was murdered in mysterious circumstances
while campaigning in Qaräbägh.
The Safavid state from 1524 to 1588 75
In July 1585, the leader of the Ustäjlü faction in Khuräsän,
Murshid Qulï Khän, had outwitted his rival Shämlü chief and had
secured possession of the person of ‘Abbäs Mïrzâ, then about
fourteen years of age. The death of Hamza Mïrzâ the following
year, and a massive invasion of Khuräsän in December 1587 by
the Özbegs under their new leader ‘Abd Alläh Khän, who laid
siege to Harät and threatened to engulf the whole province, made
Murshid Qulï Khän decide to risk a coup at Qazvïn. When he
reached Qazvïn, a public demonstration in favour of ‘Abbas
decided those among the qizilbäsh chiefs in the capital who still
wavered, and on 1 October 1588 Sultän Muhammad Shäh handed
over the insignia of kingship to his son, who was crowned Shäh
‘Abbäs I. The kingmaker, Murshid Qulï Khän Ustäjlü, was for
the moment the most powerful man in the Safavid state, and he
assumed the title of vakil of the Supreme Divan as a token of that
fact. As in 1534, the existence of the Safavid state was at stake.
Harät, after a heroic defence lasting nine months, fell to the
Özbegs in February 1589, and the Özbegs swept on to Mashhad
and Sarakhs. In the west, all efforts to dislodge the Ottoman
garrison at Tabrïz had failed. The situation called for a strong and
astute ruler; fortunately for the Safavid state, and indeed for the
future of Iran, the seventeen-year-old ‘Abbäs was such a man.
4

The Safavid em pire at the height o f its pow er


under Shäh ‘Abbas the Great (1588-1629)

The gravity of the situation facing ‘Abbäs I at his accession in


1588 was extreme. In the west and north-west, almost all the
provinces lying along the border with the Ottoman empire had
been occupied by the Ottomans; in the east, half the province of
Khurasan had been overrun by the Ozbegs. On the domestic
scene, the twelve years that had elapsed since the death of
Tahmäsp had witnessed a dramatic loss of authority on the part
of the ruler; in fact, after the murder of the Queen by qizilbäsh
conspirators in 1579, the Shäh and his son, Hamza Mïrzâ, had
been reduced to total impotence. Not only had there been a
recrudescence of qizilbäsh inter-tribal factionalism in an extreme
form, but the incident of the murder of the vazxr, MTrzä Salmän,
showed that the fundamental dichotomy in the Safavid state
between Turk and Iranian was as sharp as it had been at the
establishment of the state eighty years earlier. In the absence of
a firm, controlling hand, the principal officers of state looked each
to his own interests alone, and the result was a situation bordering
on anarchy. The treasury, as a result of the prodigality of Sultän
Muhammad Shäh, was empty.
With the resources at his disposal, such numerous and grave
problems could not be dealt with simultaneously; it was necessary
to set priorities. ‘Abbäs at once displayed the strong sense of
pragmatism which was one of his dominant characteristics. His
order of priorities was to be; first, the restoration of internal
security and law and order, reorganisation of the army and reform
of the financial system; second, expulsion of the Ozbegs from
Khuräsän ; third, recovery of territory occupied by the Ottomans.
In order to free his hands to deal with the domestic situation, and
to restore the discipline and morale of the armed forces with a
view to taking the offensive on the eastern front, ‘Abbas took the

76
Safavid empire under Shäh ‘Abbäs the Great 77
painful but decisive step of signing a peace treaty with the
Ottomans in 1589/90 which ceded to the enemy some of Iran’s
richest provinces: Äzarbäyjän, Qaräbägh, Ganja, Qaräjadigh and
parts of Georgia, Luristän and Kurdistan. The acceptance of such
humiliating peace terms was an indication of the weakness of
‘Abbas’s position at his accession.
One matter was of the greatest urgency : he had to make it clear
to the qizilbäsh chiefs that, though they had made him shah, he
had no intention of being their puppet. The very manner in which
he had come to the throne, by means of a coup d'état which
overthrew his father, the legal ruler, made it obvious that the
qizilbäsh might conspire to overthrow him in the same way if he
failed to govern in accordance with their wishes. The events of
‘Abbas’s formative years had left him with a deep and abiding
distrust of the qizilbäsh chiefs. In 1581, when he was too young
to have any real say in the matter, he had been proclaimed king
in Khuräsän by a group of qizilbäsh chiefs, although he had no
wish to be the centre of a revolt against his father. He had been
a pawn in the struggle between his own guardian, ‘AH QulT Khän
Shämlü, Governor of Harät, whose aim was to unite all the
qizilbäsh chiefs in Khuräsän behind ‘Abbäs Mïrzâ, and Murshid
Qulï Khän Ustäjlü, the Governor of Mashhad, whose ambition
would not allow him to accept a position subordinate to that of
‘Alï Qulï Khän. Finally, in 1585, in a battle between the two
factions, ‘Abbäs was taken prisoner by Murshid QulïKhân’s men
and carried off in triumph to Mashhad. ‘Abbäs had been brought
up since infancy among the Shämlü tribe, and this turn of events
was abhorrent to him. His captor, Murshid Qulï Khän, assumed
the role of his guardian, and arrogantly gave himself the title of
vakti.
However much ‘Abbäs might wish to take punitive action
against the qizilbäsh for their disloyalty to the state, he had to
recognise that they still constituted the backbone of the fighting
forces and that too drastic a purge of their ranks would militate
against his objective of increasing the strength of the army. ‘Abbäs
had made one basic decision: there was to be no going back to
a situation in which the qizilbäsh chiefs held a dominant position
in the state, or even to the situation which obtained between 1533
and 1574, when Shäh Tahmäsp adroitly maintained a delicate
balance between the Turcoman and Tâjïk interests. The punish-
78 Iran under the Safavids
ment of the qizilbäsh for their disloyalty and factionalism was to
be the forfeiture of their privileged position in the state. Yet one
of the bases of the power of the Safavid kings had been the
unquestioning obedience and devotion accorded to them by their
qizilbäsh Süfî disciples. Although the actions of the qizilbäsh since
the battle of Chäldirän in 1514 had made it abundantly clear that
they no longer believed in their leader as a divine or quasi-divine
person, nevertheless the dynamic ideology which had motivated
the early Safavid movement had not entirely disappeared. The
Shäh was, in theory at any rate, still their murshid-i kämil, their
perfect spiritual director, and they were his murids (disciples). At
moments of crisis, an appeal to those qizilbäsh who were shähl-
sevdn, that is, who loved the shah, was still an effective rallying-cry.
The original Süfî organisation of the Safavid party was still in
existence, though its existence was a shadowy one and it had
no organic functiön within the administrative framework of the
state. Nevertheless the head of this organisation, the khalifat
aUkhulaJa, still considered himself a person to be reckoned with,
and in 1576 had even made a direct challenge to the authority of
Shäh Ismä‘Tl IL Ismä‘Tl, in order to test the loyalty of the khalifat
al-khulaja, Husayn Qulï Khulafa Rümlü, told him that he would
appoint him vakil of the Supreme Divan if he was willing to
relinquish the position of khalifat al-khulafä. Husayn QulT replied:
“ I will not surrender the position of khalifa. If the office of vakil
be added to that, well and good; but if not, I will not be satisfied
with the vikälat [alone].”1 He said this because he considered his
power as khalifa to be superior to that of a vakil. While one cannot
help thinking that Husayn QulT was exaggerating the importance
of his office, given the realities of the situation in 1576, it is clear
that Shäh ‘Abbäs could not afford lightly to dispense with the
devotion to his person which was inherent in the Sufi ideology,
even though by 1588 perhaps only a minority of the qizilbäsh
subscribed to this ideology wholeheartedly.
The question, therefore, was what source of support could
‘Abbäs find which would place loyalty to himself above sectarian
interests? For an answer, ‘Abbäs turned to the “ third force”
which Shäh Tahmäsp had introduced into the state, namely, the
Circassians, Georgians and Armenians termed theghuläms (slaves)
of the shah, who, after conversion to Islam, had been trained for
service either in the army or in some branch of the administration
Safavid empire under Shah ‘Abbas the Great 79

of the royal household. The term ghuläm invites an obvious


comparison with the Ottoman qapt-qullart, or slaves of the Porte:
indeed, the term qullar soon entered into Safavid usage too. ‘Abbas
immediately set about levying, from the ranks of the ghuläms,
several regiments which constituted the nucleus of a standing
army. The concept of a standing army was in itself an innovation
in Iran in Islamic times. Throughout the mediaeval Islamic period,
armies had been levied on a tribal basis in times of need, and
mobilisation was a relatively lengthy and cumbersome process.
The ruler, who might or might not possess a small bodyguard,
had to maintain his position by his personal prestige and whatever
other factors constituted the basis of his own particular authority.
By creating new ghuläm regiments, ‘Abbäs formed an army which
was always available, was able to go into action at short notice
and, most important of all, owed no allegiance except to the Shäh
in person. The existence of the new standing army enabled ‘Abbäs
to deal ruthlessly with the slightest sign of recalcitrance on the part
of the qizilbäsh.
The new ghuläm regiments created by ‘Abbäs consisted of
cavalry, armed with muskets in addition to the usual weapons,
and numbered 10,000-15,000 men. These regiments did not make
up the whole of the standing army. In addition, ‘Abbäs created
a corps of musketeers (tufangchiyän), composed mainly of Iranians,
who were originally intended to be infantry but were gradually
provided with horses, and an artillery corps (tüpchiyän) ; each of
these corps was 12,000 strong. Finally, the size of the royal
bodyguard was increased to 3,000 men, and it was drawn
exclusively from the ranks of the ghuläms, another clear indication
of the Shäh’s distrust of the qizilbäsh. All in all, the Shäh thus had
at his command a standing army of about 40,000 men.
‘Abbäs, having created a standing army, was faced by the
problem of how to pay it. Prior to Shäh ‘Abbäs I, the qizilbäsh
troops constituted by far the larger part of the total forces
available. The government of the provinces was allotted to the
qizilbäsh chiefs in the form of assignments known as tiyül. The
governor of the province was allowed to consume the greater part
of the revenue of the province on condition that he maintained,
and mustered when required to do so by the shah, a stated number
of troops. Provinces organised in this way were termed mamälik
or “ state” provinces; only a small part of the revenue from such
8o Iran under the Safavids
provinces was given to the king, usually in the form of presents
and dues. The amount of cash in the royal treasury was therefore
small and totally inadequate as a source of funds to pay a standing
army of some 40,000 men. “ Crown” lands constituted the
principal source of income for the shah, the revenues from such
lands being collected by the shah’s stewards or bailiffs. The
solution to the problem which was adopted by Shäh ‘Abbäs was
the conversion of a number of mamälik, or “ state” provinces,
into khässa, or “ crown ” provinces. The “ crown ” provinces were
administered by a comptroller or intendant of the Crown, and
these officials were often drawn from the ranks of the ghuläms.
This policy thus at the same time reduced the number of powerful
qizilbäsh provincial governors who acted like petty princes in the
area under their jurisdiction, and enhanced the prestige of the
ghuläms. The policy therefore seemed doubly attractive to ‘Abbas,
and in the short term it solved his problems. In the long term,
however, it was open to serious objections. In the first place, in
the case of the old-style qizilbäsh provincial governors, self-interest
militated against extortion; if they tried to levy undue amounts
in the form of taxes and extraordinary dues of various kinds, they
damaged the province’s economy and the law of diminishing
returns came into effect. In the khässa provinces, on the other hand,
the intendant of the Crown had only one interest, to retain his
job by remitting to the royal treasury if possible more than the
amount of the tax assessment; since he had no vested interest in
the province concerned, he did not mind if the burden of taxation
caused its level of prosperity to decline. In the second place, this
policy weakened the state militarily in the long term, particularly
under ‘Abbas’s successors, Shäh Safi ( 1629—42) and ‘Abbäs II
(1642—66), who accelerated the process of the conversion of
mamälik into khässa provinces. Ultimately, even the frontier
provinces were made “ crown” provinces, except in time of war,
when qizilbäsh governors were reappointed. The fact that qizilbäsh
governors were reappointed in times of crisis was in itself an
admission that they were better able to defend them. The qizilbäsh
chief to whom a province had been assigned as a fief was likely
to have more interest in defending it than a government appointee
with no long-term commitment to the region. An additional
point is that theghuläm troops, although they performed creditably
enough in campaigns against the Ottomans and elsewhere, and
Safavid empire under Shah ‘Abbäs the Great 81

although some outstanding military commanders emerged from


their ranks, did not in the last analysis possess that irresistible
fighting élan, based on a strong tribal esprit de corps, which had
made the qizilbäsh the only troops in the Middle East to win the
grudging admiration of the Ottoman janissaries. The qizilbäsh, in
fact, despised the ghuläms, whom they dubbed qarä-oghlii, or sons
of black slaves. In the long term, then, the policy of converting
“ state” into “ crown” provinces impaired the economic health
of the country and weakened it militarily.
The reduction of the number of qizilbäsh provincial governor­
ships was by no means the only measure devised by ‘Abbäs to
curb the power of the qizilbäsh. He embarked on a systematic
policy of transferring groups of qizilbäsh belonging to one tribe,
to an ulkä, or tribal district, held in fief by another tribe. This was
just one of a number of ways in which ‘Abbäs sought to weaken
the close tribal bonds which were the source of qizilbäsh strength:
in some cases, he would deliberately place an officer in charge of
a tribe who was not himself a member of that tribe ; in other cases,
he would allege that the tribe did not possess an officer capable
of leading it, and would appoint a ghuläm to act as chief of the
tribe. Such measures succeeded in their short-term objective, but
the continuance of these policies by his successors ultimately
undermined the military strength of the Safavid empire.
The effect of these policies on the Safavid polity should not be
underestimated. Within a short time, Georgians, Armenians and
Circassians were appointed to the highest offices of state. Minorsky
has calculated that, by the end of the reign of Shäh ‘Abbäs, they
filled one-fifth of the high administrative posts. In some cases,
notably that of the celebrated AllähverdT Khän, these nouveaux
riches of Safavid society attempted to found their own family
dynasties. By 1595, AllähverdT Khän, a Georgian, had become one
of the most powerful men in the Safavid state. He held not only
the office of qullar-äqäsi, or commander of the ghuläm regiments,
an office which was one of the five principal offices of the state
at that time, but he was Governor-General of the rich province
ofFärs. This appointment signalled a radical change of policy on
the part of Shäh ‘Abbäs I. Hitherto, all important provinces had
been governed by qizilbäsh amirs. By his appointment as Governor-
General ofFärs, AllähverdT Khän achieved equality of status with
the qizilbäsh amirs, and became the first representative of a new
82 Iran under the Safavids
ghuläm aristocracy. His power reached its peak in 1598, when he
was appointed commander-in-chief of the armed forces. His rise
to such eminence in so short a time can only be described as
meteoric. One has only to contrast the situation which obtained
ten years earlier to be amazed at the rapidity with which ‘Abbas
had brought about this transformation. These new ghuläm aristo­
crats were subject to the same risks in regard to their lives, the
lives of their families and their property, as were the members of
the old qizilbäsh aristocracy. On the death of AllähverdT Khän in
16x3, Shäh ‘Abbas appointed his son, Imäm QulT Khän, to succeed
him as Governor-General of Färs, but in 1633 Imäm Qulï Khän
and his whole family were executed by Shäh Safi (see Chapter
io)-
Before any of these policies could be formulated, ‘Abbas had
to meet an immediate challenge to his authority by the qizilbäsh.
In the first place, the powerful qizilbäsh chief Murshid QulT Khän,
the head of the Ustäjlü tribe which had been decimated by Shäh
Ismâ‘ïl II and the man responsible for placing ‘Abbäs I on the
throne, assumed that, as in the past, he would be able to bend the
young Shäh to his will. As an indication of the role he intended
to play, he arrogated to himself the title of vakil-i shäh, or vakil-i
saltana, i.e. vicegerent of the shah, or vicegerent of the state. This
was a clear echo, ifnot of the original concept of vaktl-i nafs-i nafxs-i
humäyün, the vicegerent of the shah in both his spiritual and
temporal capacity, at least of the vakils of the period of qizilbäsh
supremacy between 1524 and 1533- Murshid QulT Khän no doubt
intended to return to the “ excessive prerogatives” of a viceroy,
and to establish a special relationship with the Shäh. ‘Abbäs had
never liked Murshid QulT Khän as his guardian, nor had he
enjoyed being among the Ustäjlü tribe. After his accession, ‘Abbäs
liked even less his vakiVs ever-increasing power. He was not alone
in his dislike of the vakiVs power; within a short time a group
of qizilbäsh chiefs had formed a conspiracy to assassinate the vakil.
Murshid QulT Khän was forewarned of the plot, and took refuge
in the palace with the Shäh. The conspirators stormed past the
palace guards and into the audience-hall, with their weapons,
riding-boots and all. ‘Abbäs, much as he would have liked to rid
himself of the vakil, realised that if he failed to visit condign
punishment on the conspirators for their effrontery in breaking
into the palace fully armed, he would condemn himself to the
Safavid empire under Shah 6Abbas the Great 83

same sort of subordinate position as had been endured by his


father. It was a test case. ‘Abbäs made an appeal for assistance to
“ those who love the shah” (shähi-sevän), and a number of
qizilbäsh rushed to the palace. The conspirators demanded that
‘Abbäs establish a council of amirs, similar to the one which had
existed in the time of Sultän Muhammad Shäh. ‘Abbäs would
have none of it. When one of the conspirators lost his temper and
started abusing Murshid QulT Khän, the Shäh flew into a rage:
“ You seditious little man!” he shouted. “ You, and people like
you, are thorns in the side of the body politic! ”2The thorns were
speedily removed ; invoking the aid of the shähi-seväns, ‘Abbäs had
all the ringleaders of the plot executed. Having survived this test,
‘Abbäs felt strong enough to rid himself of the vakil as well, and
he had him assassinated on 23 July 1589, nine months after his own
accession. These displays of summary royal justice caused some
qizilbäsh to desert in fear of their lives, but ‘Abbäs had made his
point. “ Now that I am king,” he said, “ we are going to forget
about the practice of Sultän Muhammad Shäh; the king is going
to make the decisions now.”
The reorganisation and rebuilding of his armed forces could not
take place overnight, and the situation on the eastern front
continued to deteriorate. The Özbegs overran the province of
SIstän, lying to the south of Khuräsän, which was normally
immune from their attacks. Qandahär, which had been in Safavid
hands intermittently since 1537, was lost to the Moguls in 1590.
‘Abbäs took an army to Khuräsän, but hesitated to commit his
forces to a pitched battle. From the beginning, he displayed as a
military commander that caution which was to be one of his
outstanding characteristics in later campaigns. It was not until
1598, ten years after his accession, that the death of the formidable
Özbeg leader ‘Abd Alläh II precipitated dynastic struggles and
gave ‘Abbäs his opportunity in the east. He marched from Isfahän
on 9 April 1598, the Özbegs abandoning city after city as he
advanced into Khuräsän. On 29 July the Shäh made a pilgrimage
to the shrine of the 8th Shï‘ï Imäm, ‘Ali al-Rizä, at Mashhad. He
found the shrine in a bad way. It had been stripped of its gold
and silver chandeliers, and nothing remained of the ornaments
donated to the shrine except the gold railing round the tomb of
the Imäm. Leaving Mashhad on 1 August, the Shäh marched
toward Harät in the hope of bringing the Özbegs, now led by
84 Iran under the Safavids
Dïn Muhammad Khän, to battle. This was never an easy task. The
Özbegs preferred to avoid pitched battles, and to retire across the
Oxus into the trackless wastes of Transoxania, into which a
regular army pursued them at its peril. Biding their time until the
royal army retired, they would then resume their traditional
pattern of warfare, bottling up the Safavid garrisons in the cities
and ravaging the countryside. In the event, ‘Abbäs used the same
ruse which had been employed by IsmäH I at his great victory
over the Özbegs at Marv in 1510. He ordered his advance guard
to retire, and to spread word that the Shäh had been forced to
return to the west because of a crisis there. Dïn Muhammad Khän
was lured out from behind the fortifications of Harät, and the
Shäh, covering ten days’ journey in four and a half days, caught
the Özbegs in the open on 9 August 1598. The horses of many
of the Shah’s men were jaded, and in his forced march he had so
far outstripped his main army that he had no more than 10,000
men with him; the Özbegs numbered 12,000. The battle was
fierce, and the outcome still hung in the balance when the Shäh’s
bodyguard of 200 men suddenly saw the gleam of the helmets,
chain-mail and breastplates of riders advancing through a reed-
bed; it was Dïn Muhammad Khän himself with 1,000 picked men
he had kept in reserve. A wave of panic went through the Shäh’s
bodyguard. “ Attack like men,” the Shäh shouted, “ for a valiant
death is preferable to a life of shame! ”3 A determined charge by
his bodyguard broke the Özbeg ranks and, when Dïn Muhammad
Khän was wounded by a spear-thrust, the Özbegs began a general
retreat. The Safavid forces pursued them until their horses
foundered under them, and the Ozbegs lost 4,000 men. Dïn
Muhammad Khän, faint from loss of blood, seems to have been
set upon and murdered by tribesmen in the course of his retreat.
By his victory at Rabät-i Pariyän, ‘Abbäs not only liberated Harät,
but was able to stabilise the north-east frontier with a reasonable
measure of success through a series of alliances with local Özbeg
chiefs. This enabled him, in 1602, to begin a series of campaigns
against the Ottomans in the west.
Shortly before his expedition to Khuräsän, ‘Abbäs had trans­
ferred his capital from Qazvïn to Isfahän. The more central
location of Isfahän made it easier to move troops to any part of
his dominions. The imaginative exercise in town-planning which
transformed Isfahän into one of the world’s most beautiful cities
Safavid empire under Shäh ‘Abbas the Great 85
will be described in a later chapter. On his return to Isfahan after
his victory over the Özbegs, the Shäh signalled the event by
remitting taxes to the value of 100,000 ‘Iraqi tumäns. This tax
remission was made up as follows: tax on sheep and goats
(chüpän-begt) : 20,000 tumäns. In consideration of the fact that
the people of Khuräsän, throughout the period of the Özbeg
occupation, had assisted with their lives and property the troops
of the royal army, their fellow-Khuräsänis and all manner of
official guests, and had suffered great hardship in so doing, the
Shäh ordered a permanent remission of the tax on flocks in
Khuräsän; abolition of fees illegally collected by governors in
excess of the tax assessment: 50,000—60,000 tumäns ; remission of
all taxes at Isfahan for one year, as a reward for the loyal services
of the people of that city : 20,000 tumäns.4
In 1589/90, ‘Abbäs had signed away large areas of Iranian
territory in order not to have to fight on two fronts, and in order
to have his hands free to deal with urgent problems at home. In
1602, with the eastern front stabilised at least for the time being,
and with internal security restored, the Shäh’s thoughts turned to
the recovery of Äzarbäyjän and Shîrvân, two of the most im­
portant provinces which had been conquered by the Ottomans.
Whenever he had discussed with his advisers the possibility of
recovering his lost territory, they had reminded him of the power
of the Ottoman sultäns, and the numerical superiority of their
armies. ‘Abbäs’s first act was to raze the fort at Nihävand, which
had been left by the Ottomans as an advance base for future
invasions of Iran. The Shäh did his best to allay Ottoman
suspicions that he was planning an attack on Äzarbäyjän, by
announcing that he was going on a hunting expedition to
Mâzandarân. Nevertheless, rumours reached the commandant of
the Ottoman garrison at Tabriz, Vakil Pasha. The story goes that
Vakil Pasha was discussing the matter with an astrologer, and they
decided to refer to the poems of Häfiz for an augury. At the top
of the right-hand page was the following line:
O Häfiz! You have captured ‘Iräq and Färs by your poetry;
N o w it is the turn o f Baghdäd and Tabriz!5

The Shäh leftlsfahän on 14 September 1603, and marched north


to Käshän, as though he were going to Mâzandarân. From
Käshän, he doubled back to Qazvïn, and then marched from
86 Iran under the Safavids
Qazvïn to Tabriz in six days. When the Shäh’s troops were some
12 miles from the city, the local inhabitants donned their dis­
tinctive Safavid headgear, which they had kept hidden during
the Ottoman occupation, and rushed to greet them. When the
Safavid vanguard entered Tabriz, some of the Ottoman garrison
had left the citadel and were busy making purchases in the market.
Hearing the cheering of the townsfolk, they rushed back into the
citadel and closed the gates.
The city presented a desolate sight, because the populace had
initially fled at the time of the Ottoman occupation, and the
Ottomans had done much damage to buildings and houses.
During the twenty years of Ottoman occupation, people had
gradually trickled back into the city, many of them having lost
all their possessions, but the physical destruction remained. O f
every hundred houses, scarcely a single house was in even a third
as good a condition as formerly. The inhabitants of Tabriz were
implacable in their reprisals. If an Ottoman soldier had taken a
Tabriz! girl into his house and had had children by her, the girl’s
relatives would make no allowances for that, but would drag the
Ottoman off and kill him.
'All Pasha, the commandant of the Ottoman garrison, had been
absent from the city with 5,000 men when the Shah’s forces
reached the city. He marched back to Tabriz but his force was
routed by a Safavid force which, for once, had superiority of
numbers. The Ottoman garrison in the citadel then surrendered.
Many of the garrison took advantage of double the pay and
allowances they had received in Ottoman service, and entered
the Safavid army. From Tabriz, the royal army marched to
Nakhchivän, which they captured; this caused all Ottoman forces
south of the Aras river to withdraw and congregate at Erïvân.
The Ottoman forces in the area numbered about 12,000, and the
fortifications at Erïvân, consisting of three separate forts, con­
stituted one of the strongest defensive positions in the area. The
three forts, supporting each other and well garrisoned with
seasoned troops and amply stocked with provisions and supplies,
constituted a formidable problem, particularly as the Safavids, in
their wars with the Ottomans, had rarely succeeded in taking a
fortress by storm. The siege proceeded throughout the winter of
1603/4, but made little progress because of the extreme cold; the
ground was so hard that it was impossible to dig trenches. The
Safavid empire under Shäh cAbbas the Great 87
fort finally surrendered in June 1604, and Safavid forces made
several forays into Qaräbägh, An Ottoman diversionary attack
from Baghdäd was repulsed, and its commander taken prisoner.
The news that the Ottomans were mounting a major counter­
attack from Istanbul led the Shäh to devastate the area of Qärs
and Erzerüm in eastern Anatolia, and to transfer to ‘Iräq-i ‘Ajam
some 2,000-3,000 Armenian families who normally spent the
summer in that area. Jeghäl-oghlü Pasha, in command of the
Ottoman army, marched as far as the river Aras but, because of
the lateness of the season, retired to Van for the winter. The Shäh’s
reputation for making forced marches had the effect of making
the Ottoman force nervous about moving too far from its base
at Vän, and a year passed in manoeuvre and counter-manoeuvre.
Eventually, the Shäh sent AllähverdT Khän against Vän; the
commander-in-chief scored some brilliant successes against both
Jeghäl-oghlü and a relief force sent from SIväs, and Jeghäl-oghlü
Pasha had to slip away across Lake Vän in a boat to mobilise a
new army. The decisive battle in this campaign was fought at
Süfiyän, near Tabriz, on 6 November 1605. In this battle, ‘Abbäs
displayed his outstanding talents as a commander in the field.
Before the battle, he had not intended to risk everything on one
pitched battle, but had planned rather to wear down the enemy’s
strength by daily, but limited engagements. However, the faithful
adherence to his orders not to precipitate an action, on the part
of another of his brilliant ghuläm commanders, Qarchaqäy Beg,
was interpreted as a sign of weakness by the Ottomans, who
launched an attack which led to a general action which ended in
an overwhelming victory for the Shäh’s forces. By 1607, less than
five years since the Shäh began his counter-offensive against the
Ottomans, the last Ottoman soldier had been expelled from
Iranian territory as defined by the Treaty of Amasya in 1555.
The Ottomans were not yet ready to negotiate a new peace
settlement on the basis of that Treaty, and sporadic clashes
between Ottoman and Safavid forces continued for some years.
When Nasüh Pasha succeeded Muräd Pasha as Ottoman com-
mander-in-chief on the eastern front, serious peace negotiations
were resumed. The Safavid ambassador, QäzT Khän, who held
the office of sadr, was received in audience by Sultän Ahmad I.
After a lot of discussion, it was agreed to negotiate peace on
the basis of the Treaty of Amasya. During the sixty years that
88 Iran under the Safavids
had elapsed since the signature of that Treaty, many changes had
taken place in the frontiers. For example, the Meskhia region of
Georgia, and the forts in the Akhesqa district, which under the
Treaty of Amasya had been defined as Iranian territory, had in
the meantime been occupied by the Ottomans; on the other hand,
some forts in the ‘Arabistän and Baghdäd regions which had been
defined as Ottoman territory, were now in Safavid hands. It was
recognised that it was going to be hard for either side to surrender
the territory it had occupied, and so it seemed easier for each side
to keep the territory actually in its possession at the time the new
peace treaty was signed. To demarcate the new frontiers in
Äzarbäyjän and ‘Iräq-i ‘Arab, each side appointed plenipotentia­
ries. The work of these officers was frustrated by the activities of
the Georgians and Kurds, and border incidents provoked by them
„ led to a resumption of hostilities between the Ottomans and the
Safavids. In 1616, a large Ottoman force laid siege to Erïvân ; when
the attack failed, the Ottoman commander, Muhammad Pasha,
once again raised the question of peace talks. The Shäh replied
that he was willing at any time to reopen talks on the basis of the
preliminary agreement worked out between QäzT Khän and
Nasüh Pasha, and on the basis of the work of the two boundary
commissions, the authenticated text of whose report was in the
hands of both parties. At Erzerüm, the preliminary peace treaty
was reaffirmed on the same basis as before, and the Ottoman army
withdrew. The preliminary treaty was renounced by Sultän
Ahmad I, who accused Muhammad Pasha of dereliction of duty,
and dismissed him. His successor, Khalil Pasha, was ordered to
prepare to invade Iran, once again in co-operation with the
Crimean Tatars. The Shäh ordered Qarchaqäy Khän, an Armenian
ghuläm who had risen rapidly in the Shäh’s esteem and had been
appointed commander-in-chief after the death of AllähverdI
Khän in 1613, to devastate the whole of the Erïvân—Van region
through which the invasion army would have to march. This
action delayed the Ottoman advance, and, before Khalil Pasha
could bring up his main force, the death of Sultän Ahmad I and
the accession of the less belligerent Sultän Mustafa again opened
up possibilities of peace talks ; although no definitive peace was
concluded, there was a lull in the warfare between the two sides
until 1623, when ‘Abbäs, taking advantage of internal discord in
the Ottoman province of Baghdäd, invaded it and captured the
Safavid empire under Shah ‘Abbas the Great 89
city of Baghdad, which had been taken from Shäh Tahmäsp by
Sultän Süleymän in 1534. The Safavid historian Iskandar Beg
MunshI, recording the fall of the city on 14 January 1624, uttered
the pious hope: “ May Baghdäd remain in Safavid hands until the
end of time!”6 This hope was not fulfilled, for the city was
recaptured by the Ottomans only fourteen years later, under
‘Abbäs’s incompetent successor, Shäh Safi.
The fall of Baghdäd destroyed the morale of the Ottoman
garrisons at Mosul, Kirkuk and Shahrazür, and the troops began
to desert; all three forts were captured by the Safavids. The Shäh
visited the ShTï shrines at Karbalä, Najaf, Käzimayn and Sämarrä.
Häfiz Ahmad Pasha was appointed Grand Vizier and commander-
in-chief of the Ottoman forces along the Iranian frontier, with
orders to recover Baghdäd. After ordering that the land along the
Ottoman line of march from Vän be stripped of all supplies, the
Shäh reinforced the Safavid garrison at Baghdäd and himself
marched to defend it. Häfiz Ahmad Pasha’s army reached the
city in November 1625, and blockaded the citadel on three sides.
The Ottoman lines extended along the east bank of the Tigris
for a distance of some 4 miles, and a force had thrown a bridge
across the Tigris near the tomb of Abü Hanïfa and had occu­
pied Old Baghdäd. The Ottoman besieging force was well pro­
visioned, because the harvest had just been gathered in. A task force
of 1,000 Safavid volunteers slipped through the Ottoman lines
carrying supplies of gunpowder and lead for shot for the garrison.
Nevertheless, the Ottomans were prosecuting the siege with
vigour, and the Shäh’s relief force, approaching from Härünäbäd,
had been held up by the necessity of bridging numerous water­
courses which were in spate. Häfiz Ahmad Pasha’s aim was to
take the city by assault before the Shäh could arrive. Working
night and day, his men charged through the breach, only to
be confronted by inner defence walls which the Safavid garrison
had constructed against this eventuality. The Ottomans lost 5,000
men in this abortive assault.
When ‘Abbäs finally reached Baghdäd, the siege was in its
seventh month. The Ottoman plan was not to give battle to the
Shäh, but to sit tight behind their lines, which were protected not
only by a ditch, but also by barricades of gun-carriages and by
palisades, behind which were stationed the cannon and musketeers.
While refusing to give battle to the Shäh’s relief force, they could
90 Iran under the Safavids
continue to lay siege to the citadel. ‘Abbäs decided that a frontal
attack on the Ottoman lines would be too costly, and he deter­
mined to try and cut the Ottoman supply-lines both by land
and by water. He sent a force to intercept supplies reaching the
Ottomans by boat from Diyär Bakr and Mosul; another force
crossed the Diyila river and constructed a fortified camp west
of the river; a third force crossed the Tigris south of the city on
rafts and in boats, and established another bridgehead on the west
bank. This last force was able to intercept supplies reaching the
Ottomans from the south, from Hilla and Basra. Yet another force
was dispatched to block the main Ottoman supply-route from
Aleppo to Fallüja. These moves were highly successful, and a
whole caravan from Aleppo was captured. Byjune 1626, however,
the Safavid garrison in the citadel was running short of food. A
daring body of men from the garrison ferried boats down the
Tigris to the Shah’s camp under cover of darkness. There, they
were loaded with flour, wheat, barley, rice, cooking-fat, chickens,
sheep and other foodstuffs including desserts, sherbets, sugar,
sugar-candy and the like. This cargo had to run the gauntlet of
Ottoman troops who, for a distance of about 2 miles, lined both
banks of the Tigris as a result of their occupation of Old Baghdäd.
Part of the cargo was sent up by boat, and the rest by camel
caravan along the west bank, the way for this caravan being
cleared by a strong escort of Safavid troops.
The re-provisioning of the citadel was a major setback to
Ottoman plans, and Häfiz Ahmad Pasha decided to risk a pitched
battle against the relief force. The Shäh’s forces drove the
Ottomans back behind their defences with heavy losses. The
Safavid blockade of the Ottoman supply-lines was now having
its effect; not only were the besiegers short of food, but sickness
had broken out in their camp. On 4July 1626, Häfiz Ahmad Pasha
was forced to withdraw his forces, abandoning his cannon because
of a lack of animals to pull them. Several thousand sick and dying
men were abandoned in the Ottoman lines. The relief of the siege
of Baghdäd, like the battle of Süfiyän in 1605, was an example
of Shäh ‘Abbäs’s brilliant tactical sense. A letter written by a senior
Ottoman officer to a friend of his at Istanbul gives a vivid account
of what conditions were like for the Ottoman besiegers when the
Safavid blockade of their supply-lines took effect:
Safavid empire under Shah ‘Abbas the Great 9i
Those o f delicate constitution w ho were dainty in their food, n ow are
thankful when they see horse-flesh ! Those elegant and dandified fellows
w ho were ashamed to wear a shirt o f Egyptian cotton, now are glad
to get shirts o f old tent canvas which do not cover their knees ! Those
conceited heroes w ho in the coffee-houses have mocked at the qizilbäsh
for their cowardice, n ow when they behold the most insignificant o f
them three miles away on the road, compare him with Rustam the son
o f Zäl!7

The last comment illustrates very well the military achievement


of ‘Abbäs I. Early in his reign, he had been forced to surrender
to the Ottomans the richest provinces of Iran. By the end of his
life, the Ottomans no longer looked for easy conquests of Safavid
territory.
We have seen that the period from the establishment of the
Safavid state in 1501, up to the accession of Shäh ‘Abbäs I in 1588,
was one of change and experiment. An attempt was made to
incorporate the original Süfï organisation of the Safavid Order
in the administrative structure of the state. An attempt was made
to prevent the Turcoman elements in the state from assuming a
dominant position at the expense of the Tâjïk elements. Both these
attempts failed. The failure of the first attempt meant a steady
movement away from the theocratic origins of the Safavid state
and toward a greater separation of religious and secular powers.
The failure of the second attempt led Shäh Tahmäsp to introduce,
as a “ third force”, elements which were neither Turcoman—
qizilbäsh nor Tâjïk—Iranian; these Caucasian Christian elements,
termed ghuläms or qullar, were a major factor in the administrative
reorganisation of the state, and in the concomitant social revolu­
tion, brought about by Shäh ‘Abbäs I. In the new social order,
loyalty and obedience to the shah, and not membership of the
qizilbäsh élite, were to be the sole criterial for advancement.
The changed social and political basis of the Safavid state under
‘Abbäs I was naturally reflected in its administrative structure.
After the initial attempt by the kingmaker Murshid QulT Khän
Ustäjlü to revive the outmoded concept of vakil, the offices of vakïl
and amir al-umarä, relevant to a situation which no longer ob­
tained, both lapsed. The amir al-umarä was commander-in-chief
of the armed forces at a time when the qizilbäsh were, to all intents
and purposes, the armed forces. Once the qizilbäsh regiments
92 Iran under the Safavids
became only part of the total armed forces, the term qürchî became
the common term to denote the old qizilbäsh tribal cavalry, and
their commander, the qürchïbâshï, whose authority in both the
political and military fields had steadily increased under Ismä'Tl
II and Sultän Muhammad Shäh, continued to be one of the
principal officers of state under 'Abbäs I, and his counsel carried
great weight in public affairs. The fall of the qizilbäsh from their
dominant position meant the rapid increase of the power of the
vazïr, the head of the bureaucracy and traditionally an Iranian.
The greater centralisation of the administration under 'Abbäs I
gave the bureaucracy even more work to do than it had before,
and the enhanced status of the vazïr was indicated by the titles
now commonly conferred on him : itimäd al-dawla (trusty support
of the state), and, less frequently, sadr-i a‘zam (exalted seat of
honour, which was also the title of the Ottoman Grand Vizier).
To replace the vakil and the amïr al-umarä in the top echelon of
the Safavid administration, we find the commanders of two
of the new corps: the qullar-âqâsï, or commander of the corps of
ghuläms; and the tufangchï-âqâsï, or commander of the musketeers.
Neither of these two officers, however, replaced the amïr al-umarä
as commander-in-chief of all the Safavid armed forces. To serve
this function, Shäh ‘Abbäs created a new office, sardär-i lashkar,
and later the ancient Iranian title sipahsälär was revived in the same
sense. These names suggest the triumph of the TäjTk elements in
the state, but, ironically, the office went first to a Georgian ghuläm,
AllähverdT Khän, and then to an Armenian ghuläm, Qarchaqäy
Khän. By this policy, ‘Abbäs avoided the dissension which would
inevitably have resulted from the appointment of either a Turk
or an Iranian to the office of supreme commander, and was able
to weld his now heterogeneous forces into a cohesive body. It is
interesting to note that the tüpchï-bâshï, or commander of the
artillery corps, is not listed among the principal officers of state,
and this undoubtedly reflects the general Safavid antipathy toward
artillery. The last member of the reconstituted group of principal
officers of state was the ishïk-âqâsï-bâshï, or Grand Marshal, whose
duties were largely ceremonial, but who nevertheless was influ­
ential in the councils of state because of his inside knowledge of
the royal household; this office was usually filled by a qizilbäsh.
The administrative reforms o f‘Abbäs I gave the Safavid state new
strength and vigour. He placed the administration on such a firm
Safavid empire under Shah ‘Abbas the Great 93
footing that the machine continued to function for nearly a
century after his death, despite the fact that most of his successors,
with the exception o f‘Abbäs II, were incompetent rulers. Toward
the end of the Safavid period, the machine was running more or
less under its momentum. The secret o f ‘Abbas’s success was that
he maintained a delicate balance between the various elements of
the system —Turks, Iranians and Caucasians. The failure of his
successors to maintain this balance led ultimately to the decline
of the dynasty.
The increasing secularisation of the state under ‘Abbäs I was
reflected in the eclipse of the sadr, the head of the religious classes
and, during the early period of the Safavid state, one of the
principal officers of state. The influence of the sadr, who was a
political appointee, decreased once doctrinal uniformity had been
imposed throughout the Safavid empire. As a corollary, the
power of the mujtahids, the most eminent doctors of Shï‘ï law
and theology, tended to increase. The Safavids had used institu­
tionalised Sufism to attain power; once in power, they used
institutionalised Ithnâ ‘Asharl Shi‘ism to maintain it. As Sanson
somewhat cynically, but nevertheless realistically, declared: “ The
care that Chiek-Sephi (Shaykh Safi al-Dïn) took to establish a
particular sect, which was so very different from the other
Mahometans, was an admirable invention to prevent the people
from revolting, through the solicitations of either the Turks,
Tartars, or Indians, who are all their neighbours.”8 With the
increasing crystallisation of Ithnâ ‘Asharl theology, the mujtahids
became the most powerful members of the religious classes. This
necessarily posed a threat to the position of the Shäh himself,
because, as will be recalled, the Safavid shahs claimed to be the
representatives on earth of the Mahdï or Hidden Imäm. In making
this claim, they had usurped the prerogatives of the mujtahids, who
were the real and legal representatives. They had allowed the shahs
to usurp this prerogative (although grudgingly), because the
establishment of a state in which Shi‘ism was the official religion
had enormously enhanced the power of the religious classes in
general. There were, however, during the reign of Shäh Tahmäsp,
several instances of friction between the sadr, who represented
political authority, and the mujtahids, and, as the influence of the
sadr declined, it was only the authority of the Shäh himself which
kept the power of the mujtahids within bounds. During the last
94 Iran under the Safavids
half century of Safavid rule, when the shahs were weak, the
potential danger that the religious classes would acquire a position
of dominance in political affairs became a reality. Under a strong
ruler like ‘Abbäs I, the mujtahids knew their place.
Reference has already been made to the way in which the haram
emerged as a source of political power during the succession
struggles before and after the death of Shäh Tahmäsp, and after
the death of Sultän Muhammad Shäh. During the reign of Shäh
‘Abbäs I it began to exert its influence on the future of the Safavid
state in a way which was even more pernicious than the fostering
of dynastic intrigue. To begin with, ‘Abbäs I had followed the
traditional Safavid practice of appointing the royal princes to
provincial governorates, in the care of a qizilbäsh chief who, while
the prince remained a minor, was the de facto governor of the
province and also, as lala, the guardian and tutor of the prince,
responsible for his welfare and physical and moral education.
Under this system, the royal princes received a thorough training
in administrative skills and the art of statecraft. Their physical
training was taken care of by a programme of lessons in such
manly pastimes as archery, horsemanship and swordsmanship.
The revolt of one of his sons, however, caused ‘Abbäs to abandon
this traditional policy, and to give orders that henceforth the royal
princes should be closely confined within the haram, where their
only companions were the court eunuchs and the women of the
haram. They were cut off from all access to the outside world, and
to cultivate their friendship was to risk one’s life. They left the
capital only to accompany the Shäh on his campaigns, and then
only because ‘Abbäs feared that, if they remained in the capital,
they might become the centre of a plot against him. The event
which soured the Shah’s relationship with his sons was the revolt
in 1589 of the qizilbäsh chief who was the guardian of his second
son, Hasan, who was Governor of Mashhad. This event seems to
have awakened dark memories of his own youth in Khuräsän, and
the way in which he had been used by the qizilbäsh as a pawn
in the coup against his father. He went to extraordinary lengths
to segregate his sons from political and military leaders in the state,
and his morbid suspiciousness caused him to lend too ready an
ear to informers. In 1614/15, his eldest son, Muhammad Bäqir,
was alleged to be the centre of a plot against the Shäh involving
certain Circassian elements at court. When the Shäh executed
Safavid empire under Shah 6Abbäs the Great 95
some of the Circassians who were under suspicion, other Circassian
chiefs came out openly in support of Muhammad Bäqir, and in
February 1615 the Shäh had his son assassinated. Muhammad
Bäqir may well have been the innocent victim of Circassian
intrigue, and ‘Abbäs was filled with remorse at his action.
Unhappily, this second plot against him merely increased ‘Abbäs’s
fears of assassination. In 1621, when ‘Abbäs fell ill, his third
son Muhammad, known as Khudäbanda after his grandfather,
prematurely celebrated his death, and openly solicited support
among the qizilbäsh. When ‘Abbäs recovered, he had Muhammad
blinded. A similar fate befell his fifth son, Imäm QulT MTrzä, in
1626/7. As his second son, Hasan, and his fourth son, Ismä‘Tl,
predeceased him, ‘Abbäs I had no son capable of succeeding him.
Apart from the personal tragedy of this situation for the Shah,
his policy of confining the royal princes to the haram gave rise
to the degeneration of the dynasty which later became a principal
cause of its decline. Moreover, control of the royal princes by the
court eunuchs and the women of the haram gave the latter an
undue and altogether pernicious influence in political affairs, as the
mothers of royal princes, aided and abetted by court officials,
intrigued endlessly to secure the succession of their particular
candidate for the throne.
The military and political achievements of ‘Abbäs I, great
though they were, represent only one aspect of this multi-faceted
ruler. His reign marks a high point in that remarkable flowering
of the arts which occurred in Safavid times. Under his patronage,
carpet-weaving was elevated from the status of a cottage-industry
to that of a fine art. The textiles produced during his time at the
great weaving centres of Isfahän, Yazd, Käshän and Rasht were
never excelled in brilliance of colour and design, and Persian silks,
damasks and brocades were equally renowned. It was Shäh ‘Abbäs
who made the manufacture and sale of silk a royal monopoly. The
“ art of the book” —the illumination and illustration of manu­
scripts, calligraphy and bookbinding - reached a peak during
the reign of ‘Abbäs. In the markets of Europe, Safavid ceramics
rivalled the products of China. Safavid mosques, madrasas (theo­
logical seminaries), shrines and other buildings, were clad in
glazed polychrome and mosaic tiles of incomparable beauty.
Safavid artistic achievements will be discussed in greater detail in
Chapter 6.
96 Iran under the Sajavids
Isfahan, which ‘Abbäs I made his capital in 1598, was essentially
his creation. Not since the development of Baghdäd in the eighth
century a.d . by the Caliph al-Mansür had there been such a
comprehensive example of town-planning in the Islamic world,
and the scope and layout of the city centre clearly reflect its status
as the capital of an empire. The core of the new city was theNaqsh-i
Jahän, a magnificent piazza seven times the size of the Piazza di
San Marco. Grouped round this piazza were the ‘Ä1TQäpü palace,
the vast Qaysariyya, or Royal Bazaar, and two of the greatest
masterpieces of Safavid architecture, the Masjid-i Shäh, or Royal
Mosque, and the Shaykh Lutf Alläh Mosque. From the south, the
broad, tree-lined avenue known as the Chahär Bägh (Four
Gardens), approached the city, bisecting an extensive area of
luxurious residences belonging to court officials and other dig­
nitaries, set in terraced gardens; the avenue then crossed the
Zäyanda-rüd by the AllähverdT Khän bridge, and became the
main commercial and residential thoroughfare of the city. Shäh
‘Abbäs’s Isfahän will be discussed at greater length in Chaper 7.
‘Abbäs’s building activities were by no means confined to Isfahän.
The extension and restoration of the shrine of the 8th ShT‘TImäm
at Mashhad, and the construction of the celebrated stone causeway
along the marshy littoral of the Caspian Sea, were among his more
notable achievements. All over the country, he build caravanserais
along the main highways for the convenience of merchants and
travellers, and numerous bridges, hospitals and public baths were
other examples of his energy in the field of public works. One
of his most celebrated engineering projects, which unfortunately
ended in failure because of the inadequacy of the technology then
available, was his attempt to link the headwaters of the Zäyanda-
rüd and Kührang rivers (see Chapter 7).
Shäh ‘Abbas’s love of the Caspian province of Mâzandarân,
which Thévenot thought “ the only lovely Province of all
Persia” ,9 led him to build there two winter palaces: Ashraf and
Farahäbäd. As he grew older, he spent more and more time at
these retreats, and each spring he returned with greater reluctance
to his state duties and the rigours of military campaigns. Formerly
known as Tähän, the site of Farahäbäd was renamed by ‘Abbäs
I when, in 1611 or 1612, he ordered the construction of a royal
palace there. Around the palace were built residences, gardens,
baths, bazaars, mosques and caravanserais. Farahäbäd was linked
4- Özbeg ambassador to Shäh Sultän Husayn, 1700

to the town of Sârï, 17 miles away, by ‘Abbas’s famous stone


causeway. Pietro della Valle, who visited Farahäbäd in 1618,
declared that the circuit of the walls was equal to, if not greater
than, that of Rome or Constantinople, and that the town
contained streets of more than a league in length. The new town,
he said, was peopled by the Shäh with colonies of different
5. Royal travel, 1671
J • ■*>

1 r - ;
v.'A
£%
/ . \
* * ■* î
Vfcï*^. , 'i
S ‘. y 1 / ;
* i r■
ip iÂ
/* X
/■■■.
111111
«. - t

-'4
>'
3*
iV jp

v,

to? f ' t ? ; ___ ___ - î— Sr.L ^.-vsäisSsiA

g
.1 *
r\
IOO Iran under the Safavids
nationalities, including Christians from Georgia, which had been
moved there from territory overrun by Safavid forces. The
buildings were destroyed by the Cossacks in the course of a raid
by the latter in 1668. Ashraf lay some 26 miles to the south-east,
at the foot of a wooded spur of the Alburz range and commanding
a fine view over the bay of Astaräbäd to the north. The new town
of Ashraf was founded by ‘Abbäs I about 1612. Intended initially
to be a simple rural retreat, it consisted of a group of farmhouses
surrounding the royal palaces, but eventually the royal residences
extended over a considerable area. Spacious accommodation was
provided for guests and travellers. The gardens were laid out with
walks bordered by pines and by orange and other citrous trees,
and were watered by an elaborate system of reservoirs, cisterns
and channels fed by a spring which also supplied numerous
fountains and cascades. Ashraf was severely damaged by the
Afghans and during the Zand-Qäjär civil war which followed the
collapse of the Safavid dynasty and the death of Nadir Shäh.
Farahäbäd in particular became a sort of second capital. When the
Shäh was not actually on campaign, he would retire to Farahäbäd ;
from this base he carried on the affairs of state, and foreign envoys
who wished to see him had to visit him there.
Under ‘Abbäs I, Isfahän became a prosperous city. Merchants
from China, India, Central Asia, Arabia, Turkey and Europe
flocked to Isfahän to buy the luxury items produced by Safavid
craftsmen. Thousands of skilled Armenian artisans were trans­
ferred from Julfa on the present Irano-Soviet border in Äzarbäyjän
to “ New Julfa”, a suburb of Isfahän on the right bank of the
Zäyanda-rüd. In addition to merchants seeking trading privileges,
many other Europeans came to Isfahän: ambassadors from Spain,
Portugal and England; representatives of foreign monastic orders
such as the Carmelites, the Augustinians and the Capuchin friars,
who were given permission to proselytise and establish convents
in Iran; gentlemen-adventurers such as the Sherley brothers, one
of whom, Sir Robert, distinguished himself in the Shäh’s service
against the Ottomans, and was appointed “ Master General against
the Turks” ; and travellers such as Pietro della Valle, who left
valuable accounts of Safavid Iran. Intense commercial rivalry in
the Persian Gulf and the Indian Ocean between the Dutch, the
Portuguese and the English meant the development of diplomatic
relations between Iran and the west (see Chapter 5). In all things
Safavid empire under Shah ‘Abbäs the Great IOI

a pragm atist, ‘A bbäs I realised that an attitude o f religious


tolerance to w a rd C hristian fathers w o u ld establish a clim ate in
w hich trade w ith E urope could flourish. Sim ilarly, his develop­
m en t o f M ashhad as a m ajor centre o f Shi‘T pilgrim age kept in
Iranian coffers large sum s o f m oney w hich m ig h t otherw ise have
been spent at the o th er principal Shï‘ï shrines, K arbala, N ajaf,
K äzim ayn and Säm arrä, all o f w hich are located in M esopotam ia
and w ere for a large p art o f ‘A bbas’s reign in O tto m a n hands. T he
restoration and em bellishm ent o f ShI‘I h o ly places such as
M ashhad, and the constituting o f lands and o th er p ro p erty as
awqäf or p ro p erty held in m o rtm ain , fo r the benefit o f the shrine,
also enhanced the prestige and w ealth o f the religious classes, and
m ade th em m o re prepared to acquiesce in the usurpation by the
Safavid rulers o f their o w n prerogative o f acting as the general
agency o n earth o f the MahdT o r Shï‘ï messiah.
This is n o t to say that ‘A bbas’s personal p iety was n o t genuine.
W hen ev er he was in K hurasan, he w ould visit the shrine o f the
8th Im am and keep vigils and p erfo rm various m enial tasks, such
as sw eeping the carpets and snuffing the candles, to indicate his
devotion. In 1601, he m ade his celebrated pilgrim age on foot from
Isfahan to M ashhad in tw en ty -eig h t days. T h e Shäh decreed that
any o f the amirs, principal officers o f state and co u rt attendants
w h o w ished to m ake the pilgrim age w ith him , could ride, since
the v o w to m ake the jo u rn e y on foot applied to h im self alone;
several o f his attendants, how ever, accom panied h im the w hole
w ay on foot. I f these w ere gestures indicative o f the im portance
‘Abbäs I attached to fostering the Shï‘ï elem ent o f Safavid
ideology, he was equally concerned, in his capacity o f murshid-i
kämil (perfect spiritual director) o f the Safavid O rd er, to m aintain
the cult o f the Safavid shaykhs at Ardabîl. H e invariably m ade
a visit to the tom bs o f his ancestors at A rdabîl before em barking
on a m ilitary expedition or taking a decisive step o f any sort; on
these visits, he w o u ld enlist the spiritual aid o f the h oly shaykhs
o f the Safavid O rd e r th ro u g h prayer and supplication.
Shäh ‘A bbäs I possessed in abundance qualities w hich entitle
him to be styled “ the G re a t” . H e was a brilliant strategist and
tactician w hose chief characteristic was prudence. H e preferred
to obtain his ends by diplom acy rather than w ar, and show ed
im m ense patience in pursuing his objectives. A charism atic leader,
his presence in the field induced his m en to p e rfo rm feats beyond
Safavid empire under Shah ‘Abbas the Great 103
the lim its o f their endurance; a spectacular exam ple o f this is his
fam ous forced m arches w ith small bodies o f troops, in the m anner
o f Julius Caesar, w hich frequently gave h im the advantage o f
surprise. Im placable in his punishm ent o f disloyal officers, his
affection for old and trusted retainers was strong and lasting. H e
ordered that special acts o f heroism in battle should be reported
to him so that the m en concerned m ight be suitably rew arded.
T o m en he trusted, ‘A bbäs was ready to delegate a large degree
o f independence o f action. A bove all, he was beloved by his people
because he possessed the com m on touch. H e spent m uch tim e
w alking incognito th ro u g h the streets and bazaars o f Isfahan,
and conversing w ith people in tea-houses. H e had a strong sense
o f h u m o u r. His m anner o f dress was sim ple and unadorned.
M alcolm , after describing the richness and lu x u ry o f the state
apartm ents and the royal audience hall, says: “ ‘A bbäs was clothed
in a plain dress o f red cloth. H e w o re no finery about his person;
his sabre alone had a gold hilt. T hose high nobles w h o sat nearest
h im w ere also plainly attired; and it was evident that the king,
surrounded as he was w ith w ealth and grandeur, affected
sim plicity.” 10 As to his personal appearance, M alcolm again has
the best description: ‘Abbäs
had a fine face, of which the most remarkable features were a high nose
and a keen and piercing eye. He wore no beard, but had large
mustachios, or whiskers. In his stature he was rather low, but must have
been uncommonly robust and active, as he was celebrated throughout
life for the power o f bearing fatigue, and to the last indulged in his
favourite amusement o f hunting.11
Perhaps C h a rd in ’s verdict is the m ost fitting epitaph for ‘Abbäs
I: “ W h en this great prince ceased to live, Persia ceased to
p ro sp e r!” 12

6. Shäh ‘Abbäs I: portrait by Bishn Das


5

R ela tio n s w ith th e W est d u rin g th e Safavid


p erio d

F ro m earliest times, relations betw een Iran and the W est have
existed on a n u m b er o f different levels: diplom atic, political and
m ilitary contacts; trade relations; and the m u tu al interchange o f
religious ideas. U n d er the first head, the contacts betw een the
Greeks and the A chaem enids, betw een the Parthians and the
R om ans and betw een the Sasanids and the R om ans are well
k n o w n . U n d er the second head, Iran, as the land-bridge betw een
E urope, Asia M in o r and the M editerranean lands on the one hand,
and C entral Asia, the Indies and the Far East on the other, was
fro m ancient times involved in the transit trade betw een East and
W est; for exam ple, the fam ous silk route fro m C hina passed
th ro u g h Iranian territory, and the transit dues charged on this
trade w ere a lucrative source o f incom e to the rulers o f Iran. U n d er
the third head, the traffic was initially all east—west. In Parthian
times, the cult o f M ithras exerted an influence on the R om an
legionaries and, as a result, spread to R om e and further west. By
Sasanid times, how ever, C hristianity began to penetrate Iran from
the west. T he process was accelerated w hen Shäpür I transplanted
to Iran large num bers o f the inhabitants o f Syria and o th er eastern
provinces o f the R om an em pire ; m any o f these people w ere
Christians. A fter C hristianity becam e the state religion o f the
R om an em pire, the loyalty o f the C hristian inhabitants o f Iran
becam e suspect and they w ere subject to persecution. In return
for C hristianity, Iran ex p o rted to the W est the dualistic religion
o f M ani, in w hich elem ents o f C hristianity and Z oroastrianism
w ere blended. T h o u g h suppressed in Iran as a heresy, M anichaeism
penetrated w estw ards as far as France, and even the great Bishop
o f H ippo, St A ugustine, was a M anichaean in his early years.
In the seventh century a . d ., the Arabs conquered Iran, and
gradually the w hole o f Iran adopted the new religion o f the

104
Relations with West during Safavid period ros
conquerors, Islam. Iran, from being a w o rld -p o w e r (in term s o f
the then k n o w n w orld), w ith m any centuries o f im perial history
behind it, was relegated to the position o f being ju st one p a rt o f
a vast Islamic em pire w hose centre o f p o w er was at first M edina,
then Damascus, and finally B aghdad. As the A rabs rapidly
extended their control over the eastern M editerranean and N o rth
Africa, and as the T urks, from the eleventh century onw ards,
gradually b ro u g h t Asia M in o r u n d er their control, this Islamic
em pire placed an im penetrable barrier betw een Iran and the W est.
As a result, Iran becam e a forgotten land. T he Crusaders, filled
w ith zeal for the conquest o f the H oly Land, had little interest
in the countries w hich lay further to the east. T h e strength and
persistence o f the legend o f Prester Jo h n , the pow erful C hristian
potentate living som ew here in C entral Asia, w h o , it was th o u g h t
in the W est, w o u ld be a useful ally against the Saracens, indicates
the extent o f W estern ignorance o f Asia in m ediaeval times.
T he invasion o f the eastern Islamic w o rld by C hingiz K han in
1219, and the subsequent establishm ent o f the pax Mongolica from
C hina to the Balkans, b ro u g h t Iran back into contact w ith the
W est, and the M o ngol rulers o f Iran m ade repeated b u t u n p ro ­
ductive attem pts to form an alliance w ith E uropean m onarchs
against the M am lük sultans o f E gypt and the Levant. A fter 1335,
the M o n g o l state in Iran broke up into a n u m b er o f small units
w hich in m ost cases follow ed old provincial boundaries. T here
was a general lessening o f cohesion and security, and at tim es a
situation n ot far rem oved fro m anarchy; these conditions w ere
naturally n ot attractive to m erchants, and the Venetians and
Genoese w h o w ere rash enough to venture into Ä zarbäyjän w ere
usually robbed and in m any cases lost their lives. T he cam paigns
o f TTmür (Tam erlane) in Iran (1381—1405) again b ro u g h t Iran to
the notice o f the W est, but, shortly after his death in 1405, the
w hole o f n o rth -w est and central Iran cam e u n d er the control
successively o f tw o T u rco m an dynasties, the Q arä Q u y ü n lü , or
B lack Sheep T urcom ans, and the Ä q Q uy ü n lü , or W hite Sheep
T urcom ans. B o th dynasties m ade T abriz their capital, and, under
the great Äq Q u y ü n lü ruler U zü n Hasan (died 1478), internal
security so far im p ro v ed as to encourage the Italian city-states to
resum e diplom atic and com m ercial contacts w ith Iran. A decade
after the death o f Ü zü n Hasan, the Portuguese sea-captain B ar­
tolom eu Dias ro unded the C ape o f G ood H ope, and ten years
io6 Iran under the Safavids
after that, his fellow -countrym an Vasco da G am a reached India.
T he sea-route fro m w estern E urope to the East, for so long the
dream o f Prince H en ry the N avigator, had thus been opened three
years before the establishm ent o f the Safavid dynasty in Iran. T he
Portuguese had outflanked n o t only the intervening Islamic
countries w hich had for so m any centuries virtually cut Iran off
fro m contact w ith the W est, b u t also the V enetians and other
E uropean m ercantile pow ers w hich had traded w ith Iran via the
M editerranean ports.
T he Portuguese w ere n o t long in follow ing up their advantage.
In 1507, a Portuguese fleet under the com m and o f A fonso de
A lbuquerque arrived o ff the island o f H u rm ü z in the Persian
Gulf. T he Portuguese V iceroy im m ediately perceived the im ­
m ense strategic and com m ercial im portance o f the site, w hich
com m anded the entrace to the Persian G u lf and from w hich
Portuguese com m unications w ith India could be protected. T he
Portuguese captured the island, and the tw elve-year-old K ing o f
H u rm ü z becam e a vassal o f the K ing o f P ortugal and agreed to
pay an annual tribute. This caused friction w ith Shäh IsmäTl I,
w hose envoy reached H u rm ü z shortly afterw ards also to dem and
tribute. A threatened m u tin y on the p art o f his captains forced
A lbuquerque to sail fro m H u rm ü z in 1508, b u t he fully intended
to recover it as soon as an o p p o rtu n ity arose, and in 1513 he sent
the envoy M iguel Ferreira to Shah Ism â‘ïl w ith a friendly message.
In 1515, A lbuquerque returned to H u rm ü z, w here he was m et
by M iguel Ferreira and an envoy fro m Ism â‘ïl. T he Shäh, n o t
possessing a navy, and w ith an arm y m uch w eakened by his
disastrous defeat at C häldirän the previous year, had to accept the
occupation o f H u rm ü z as a fa it accompli. A lbuquerque concluded
a treaty w ith IsmäTl w hich confirm ed the K ing o f H u rm ü z as a
Portuguese vassal. T o sw eeten the pill, A lbuquerque sent the
Shäh’s envoy back w ith gifts w o rth double the ones he had
received fro m IsmäTl. T h e Portuguese also contracted under the
treaty to help the Shäh recover the B ahrein islands fro m the A rab
Jab rid dynasty; to enter in to an alliance w ith Iran against the
O tto m an s; and to help Iran to p u t d o w n a revolt by a B alüchï
tribe in M ak rän .1 Som e years later the Portuguese occupied the
B ahrein islands but, instead o f handing them over to Iran as they
w ere b o u n d to do under the 1315 T reaty, they retained possession
o f them for eighty years.
Relations with West during Safavid period 107

T he Portuguese soon tightened their grip on H u rm ü z by


occupying and fortifying the coastal strip on the m ainland n o rth
and n o rth -w est o f the island. A second Portuguese embassy in
1523, under Balthasar Pcssoa, was w ell received by Shäh Ism â‘îl,
and an O tto m a n challenge to Portuguese naval suprem acy at the
approaches to the Persian G u lf probably led the Portuguese to
supply Shah T ahm äsp in 1548 w ith cannon and m en at the tim e
o f Sultan Süleym än’s second invasion o f Iran.2 In the second h a lf
o f the sixteenth century, an A ugustinian mission fro m Portugal
established itself at H urm üz. A Jesuit nam ed Francisco da Costa
encouraged Pope C lem ent VIII to believe that there was som e
hope that Shäh ‘Abbäs I m ig h t becom e a C hristian, and the P o p e
p ro m p tly despatched Costa w ith a laym an nam ed D iego de
M iranda to express his jo y at the Shäh’s “ ready inclination to w ard
the C hristian relig io n ” . T he Pope also m ade an eloquent plea for
jo in t action against “ the unceasing and m ost hostile enem y the
T u rk , w h o w ith unbearable pride and insatiable desire to rule,
longs m ost eagerly to oppress all kingdom s and all territories and
to lay them u n d er the yoke o f m ost h ard slavery” .3 This p art o f
the P o p e’s message at least m ig h t have evoked a sym pathetic
response fro m the Shäh, had n o t m ost unseem ly quarrels betw een
Costa and M iranda, in the course o f w hich Costa stole M iran d a’s
clothing and M iranda got Costa p u t in chains, b ro u g h t the w hole
mission in to disrepute.4 In 1602, three A ugustinian fathers arrived
in Iran from G oa; all three m ade an excellent im pression on Shäh
‘Abbäs, w h o gave them perm ission to establish a convent at
Isfahän and also to build a church there; the Shäh even offered
to defray part o f the cost o f decorating the church. T he P rio r o f
the A ugustinians at Isfahän, in addition to his religious duties,
represented the K ing o f Spain (betw een 1580 and 1640 the thrones
o f Portugal and Spain w ere united u nder the K ing o f Spain), and
thus becam e the first perm anent diplom atic representative o f the
W est in Iran. Also in 1602, ‘Abbäs I show ed his determ ination
to be m aster o f his o w n house b y expelling the Portuguese
garrison fro m the B ahrein islands. T he expulsion o f the Portuguese
fro m H u rm ü z had to w ait for tw en ty years, until he was able to
persuade the English to provide the requisite naval assistance.
T he Portuguese had been first in the field in regard to
developing a political em pire and com m ençai interests in the
Persian Gulf. T heir discovery o f a sea-route to the East had
io8 Iran under the Safavids
severely dam aged V enetian and Genoese trade w ith the East, and
Italian com m ercial contacts w ith Iran during the sixteenth century
consequently declined. T he accounts o f various Italian m erchants
w h o w ere in Iran betw een 1500 and 1520, w hich w ere published
by the H akluyt Society in A Narrative of Italian Travels in Persia
in the Fifteenth and Sixteenth Centuries, contain m any inaccuracies
b u t are valuable as giving som ething o f the “ fla v o u r” o f the
period. O f m ore interest are the attem pts by a nu m b er o f
E uropean pow ers to conclude an alliance w ith the Safavid shahs
against their m utual enem y, the O tto m a n T urk. D espite a con­
siderable am o u n t o f goodw ill on b o th sides, the slowness o f
com m unications proved an insurm ountable difficulty. As in the
thirteenth century, w hen the M ongol rulers had sim ilarly tried
to conclude alliances w ith W estern rulers against the M am lüks,
it p ro v ed impossible to synchronise any jo in t activity. It took a
m in im u m o f tw o years for an exchange o f diplom atic notes to
take place, and it was im possible to project jo in t plans far enough
ahead to allow for this tim e-lag. It was also quite probable that
circum stances, either in Iran, o r in the E uropean country, o r in
b o th , w ould have changed d uring the interval. For exam ple, in
1529 the E m peror Charles V sent a letter to Shäh Ism äH I,
apparently unaw are that the latter had died fiv e years previously!
B o th parties rem ained incurable optim ists, how ever, and the
tem po o f diplom atic activity increased during the sixteenth
century.
T he first E uropean m onarchs to suggest an alliance w ith the
Shäh against the Sultän w ere K ing Charles I o f Spain and Ludovic
II o f H ungary. In 1523, IsmäTl I sent a letter in L atin to Charles,
n o w the E m peror Charles V, in w hich he expressed astonishm ent
that the E uropean pow ers, instead o f com bining to crush the
T urks, w ere fighting am ong each other. T he policy o f the French
g o v ern m en t at this period was to be on friendly term s w ith the
T urks. In 1548, the French am bassador to the Sublim e Porte,
B aro n et Seigneur d ’A ram on et de Vallabrègues, accom panied
Sultan Süleym än on the latter’s expedition to Iran; at the siege
o f Vän, M . d ’A ram on interpreted his ambassadorial function
rather liberally by giving advice to the T urkish gunners directing
fire against the fo rt; his advice on the placing o f the guns,
follow ed by the T urks, proved so effective that the Safavid
garrison surrendered. A fter the establishm ent o f the Levant
Relations with West during Safavid period 109

C o m p an y in 15 81, England, too, w ished to further her com m ercial


enterprises by im p ro v in g relations w ith the O tto m a n Sultan.
In 1598, w hen ‘Abbäs I returned to QazvTn after his great
victory over the Özbegs, he found w aiting for h im a party o f
tw enty-six Europeans, headed by tw o English soldiers-of-fortune,
Sir A n th o n y and Sir R obert Sherley. T he Shäh took these
brothers w ith h im to Isfahän, his new capital, and in M ay 1599
he dispatched Sir A n th o n y Sherley to E urope, bearing letters o f
friendship from the Shäh to the Pope and to various E uropean
princes, including the H o ly R om an E m peror R u d o lf II, K ing o f
B ohem ia (1552-1612), K ing H enry o f France (1589-1610), Philip
III o f Spain (1598-1621), the K ing o f Scotland, the K ing o f
Poland, the Q ueen o f England, the Seigneur o f Venice and the
G rand D u k e o f Tuscany. Sir A nthony was charged w ith enlisting
the support o f these princes against their com m on enem y, the
O tto m a n s; he was accom panied b y a qizilbäsh officer, H usayn ‘All
B eg B ayât, and by another Iranian, w ho was to rem ain in M oscow
as am bassador to the court o f T sar Boris G odunov. Sir R obert
Sherley rem ained behind at the Safavid court as a hostage for Sir
A n th o n y ’s good behaviour; in view o f the latter’s subsequent
conduct in E urope, it says m uch fo r Shäh 4A bbäs’s sense o f justice
that he to o k no retaliatory action against Sir R obert.
O nce again, hum an frailties w ere to be the undoing o f a
diplom atic mission. Sir A nth o n y Sherley was also accom panied
by a Portuguese A ugustinian friar nam ed N icolao de M elo, w ho
was on his w ay to R om e. T hey had hardly entered Russian
territo ry before violent quarrels bro k e o u t betw een Sir A nthony
and M elo, and it is alleged that Sir A nth o n y tried to d ro w n the
friar in the Volga. A fter six unproductive m onths in M oscow ,
m arked by quarrels over precedence betw een Sir A nth o n y and
his Iranian colleagues, Sir A nthony and H usayn ‘All Beg B ayât
em barked at A rchangel early in 1600, sailed to E m den, and in
O cto b er 1600 reached Prague by a som ew hat circuitous route
dictated by the existence o f the O tto m a n em pire. A t Prague, the
mission was w ell received by the E m peror R udolf, b u t at R om e,
w hich was reached in A pril 1601, a disastrous quarrel over
precedence betw een Sir A nthony and H usayn ‘AIT B eg B ayat led
to the latter’s dissociating him self from Sherley and going on alone
to Spain. In M arch 1602, Sir A nth o n y w en t to Venice, and carried
on a correspondence w ith the K ing o f Spain. Som e o f his letters
no Iran under the Safavids
w ere intercepted by English agents, and w ere held to be treason­
able. H e was refused perm ission to retu rn to England, and
English ambassadors abroad were instructed to repudiate him . In
A pril 1603, he was arrested in Venice and im prisoned —w hether
as an insolvent d ebtor or as a seditious person is n o t clear. A fter
the accession o f K ing Jam es I, he was released from jail and
granted a licence to 11rem ain beyond the sea som e tim e lo n g e r” .5
A n th o n y ’s failure either to retu rn to Iran o r rep o rt the progress
o f his mission led Shäh £Abbäs tem porarily to w ith d raw his favour
fro m A n th o n y ’s b ro th er R obert, b u t the latter was soon reinstated
and, in 1608, nearly ten years after Sir A nth o n y had left Iran,
was sent to E urope by the Shäh on a similar mission, w ith the
additional task o f finding his b ro th er and rep o rtin g to the Shäh
on the success o r otherw ise o f his mission.
A fter parting fro m Sir A nthony, H usayn ‘AIT Beg B ayât
proceeded to Valladolid, w here he was received by Philip III.
T here, the Safavid ambassador, w ho had already experienced the
em barrassm ent o f having three o f his servants announce their
conversion to the C atholic faith in R om e, suffered a far worse
shock, w hen his o w n nephew , ‘AIT QulT Beg, and one o f his
secretaries, b o th adopted C hristianity. K ing Philip and Q ueen
M argarita acted as their godparents, nam ing them respectively
Felipe and Ju a n .6 T he am bassador was so upset by this develop­
m en t that he tried to have D on Juan assassinated. H istory does
n o t record the fate o f H usayn ‘AIT Beg B ayât w hen he returned
to Iran and related this disgraceful state o f affairs to the Shäh.
Sir R obert Sherley caught up w ith his b ro th er in 1611 at
M adrid, w here Sir A nth o n y was living in abject poverty. A fter
fruitless recrim inations w ith his brother, R o b ert w ent on to
England, w here he was received by Jam es I. H ow ever, all his
efforts to establish trade relations betw een E ngland and Iran w ere
frustrated by the p ow erful lobby m ou n ted by the Levant
C o m p an y, then engaged in a bitter struggle w ith the English East
India C o m pany, founded in 1600, for control o f trade w ith the
M iddle East and Indies. R obert returned to Iran in 1615, and the
same year was sent back to E urope on a second mission w hich
lasted until 1627. This long absence from Iran enabled his enemies
there to underm ine the Shäh’s confidence in h im and, w hen he
retu rn ed to Iran from his second mission, he found him self out
o f favour, and he eventually died in Iran in a state o f poverty.
Relations with West during Safavid period Ill
In term s o f the concrete results obtained by W estern nations
fro m contact w ith Iran, the sixteenth century m ust be conceded
to the Portuguese. T he English m ade a determ ined attem pt to
tu rn the n o rth ern flank o f the O tto m an em pire, ju st as the P o rtu ­
guese had tu rn ed its southern flank by rou n d in g the Cape, b u t
the attem p t ended in failure. Early in 1553, “ the M ysterie and
C om panie o f the M erchant A dventurers for the D iscoverie o f
Regions, D om inions, Islands and Places U n k n o w n ” was form ed
in L ondon w ith Sebastian C abot as its first G overnor. T he original
object o f this com pany was to discover a north-east passage to
C hina, but, after the discovery o f the route to A rchangel, the
com pany was renam ed successively “ T he M uscovy C o m p a n y ”
and “ T h e Russia C o m p a n y ” . It was the first o f the English
jo in t-sto ck com panies form ed for foreign trade. T w o o f the three
ships sent o u t in 1553 w ere lost in storm y w eather n o rth o f
N o rw a y , b u t the third, under the com m and o f R ichard C han­
cellor, reached A rchangel. C hancellor w en t to M oscow , and
obtained trading privileges from Ivan the Terrible. O n his return
from his second trip to Archangel, C hancellor him self and his
ship w ere lost.
Despite this discouraging beginning, in 1557 A nthony Jen-
kinson and tw o brothers, R ichard and R obert Johnson, m ade
another attem pt. T hey reached A rchangel safely, and w ere also
received affably by Ivan the T errible. T hey travelled to A strakhan,
and crossed the Caspian Sea to B ukhara. A lthough Jenkinson was
m istaken in thinking that he and his band w ere the first Christians
to sail on the Caspian Sea —the Genoese had done so some tw o
and a h a lf centuries earlier —it was nevertheless a pioneering
effort, and they had discovered a ro u te to C entral Asia. In 1561,
Jenkinson m ade a second voyage, bearing letters from Q ueen
Elizabeth to Tsar Ivan the T errible and to Shah T ahm äsp, w h o
was addressed as “ the G reat S o p h ie” .7 In 1562, Jenkinson again
to o k ship to cross the Caspian, this tim e landing on Safavid
territo ry on the west coast, in Shïrvân. T here, he was hospitably
received by the governor, ‘A bd A llah K han U stäjlü, w h o was the
Shah’s b ro th er-in -law and cousin, and sent on to QazvTn. O n 20
N o v e m b er 1562, Jenkinson was received in audience by Tahm äsp,
and handed to the Shäh the Q u een ’s letter, the purpose o f w hich
was “ to treate o f friendship, and free passage o f o u r M erchants
and people, to repaire and traffique w ithin his dom inions, for to
112 Iran under the Safavids
bring in our com m odities, and to carry aw ay theirs to the h o n o u r
o f b o th princes, the m utual com m oditie o f b o th Realmes, and
w ealth o f the Subjects” . All w ent well until the Shäh discovered
that Jenkinson was a C hristian: “ O h thou unbeleever,” he said,
“ w e have no neede to have friendship w ith the unbeleevers.”
Jenkinson was abruptly dismissed from the royal presence, and
was disconcerted to notice that, as he left, a servant follow ed him
“ w ith a bassinet o f sand, sifting all the w ay th at I had gone w ithin
the said pallace ” .8 All w as n o t lost, how ever, fo r ‘A bd A llah Khan
n o t only interceded w ith the Shäh, w ho so far relented as to give
Jenkinson a handsom e gift w hen he left, b u t the K hän him self
granted im p o rtan t trading privileges to the M uscovy C om pany.
T he hazards o f this route proved too great, and in 1581 it was
abandoned ; apart fro m the appalling risks involved in the sea-route
ro u n d the n o rth o f Scandinavia to the W h ite Sea, attacks by T atar
bandits in the V olga region, and o th er troubles, resulted in too
great a loss o f lives and goods.
A few years after Jenkinson’s visit to the court o f Shäh
T ahm äsp, Ivan the T errible him self was considering the possi­
bilities o fjo in t m ilitary action w ith the Shäh against the O ttom ans.
In 1569, he sent an envoy nam ed D o lm et K arpivicz to T ahm äsp;
as gifts for the Shäh, the Russian envoy b ro u g h t 30 cannons o f
varying sizes, and 4,000 m uskets; accom panying him w ere 500
“ goo d m usketeers “ w ho w ou ld be able to instruct and drill his
subjects in m arksm anship If the Shäh liked those cannon and the
m usketeers, the Tsar prom ised to sell him all kinds o f guns w hich
he (the Tsar) could obtain from G erm any. Shäh T ahm äsp was
very satisfied w ith this embassy and these gifts, and offered to aid
the Tsar to the best o f his ability. A lth o u g h M oscow was less
rem ote than w estern Europe, nothing came o f this démarche,9
In the same year that the decision was taken to abandon the
north-east passage route, an English m erchant nam ed Jo h n
N ew b erie arrived at H u rm ü z: he was the first Englishm an to
travel the overland-route to the Persian Gulf. O n his return to
L ondon, he contacted other m erchants such as E dw ard O sborne,
w h o in 1581 had becom e the first G o v ern o r o f the Levant
C o m p an y, w hich had ju st obtained a royal charter w hich gave
it the exclusive right to trade w ith T u rk ey for seven years. O n
hearing N e w b e rie ’s news, the Levant C o m p an y m erchants de­
cided to extend their operations to Iran and India, using the
Relations with West during Safavid period 113
ov erlan d -ro u te th ro u g h Syria and M esopotam ia. In 1583 N e w -
berie set off again w ith a group o f other m erchants, intending to
set up a factory at H u rm ü z as the Venetians had succeeded in
doing. A few days after their arrival at H urm üz, how ever, their
V enetian rivals denounced them to the Portuguese C apitäo as spies
and heretics; they w ere th ro w n into jail, and shipped to Goa to
stand trial, b u t w ere eventually released on the intercession o f an
English Jesuit and tw o D utchm en.
In 1600, a L ondon m erchant nam ed John M ildenhall, accom ­
panied b y a Protestant m inister nam ed Jo h n C artw rig h t, set out
fro m A leppo for India. C artw rig h t did n o t go further than Iran,
b u t M ildenhall w ent on to India. T he English attem pt to establish
an overland trade route to the Persian G u lf had m et w ith no m ore
success than had the route via the north-east passage and overland
across Russia. C learly, if the Portuguese hold on the Persian G u lf
trade was to be broken, naval pow er superior to that o f the
Portuguese w o uld be required. It was shortly to be p rovided by
the English East India C om pany and the D u tch East India
C om pany, w hich at first co-operated to defeat the Portuguese,
and then becam e b itter rivals.
In 1615, the English East India C o m p an y m ade its first attem pt
to break into the Iranian m arket. A factor o f the C om pany,
R ichard Steele, had noticed that Iranian w inters are cold, and
th o u g h t th at there w o u ld be a m arket for good English broadcloth.
T he C o m p an y sent him and Jo h n C ro w th e r to Isfahan, w here
they obtained a farm ân10 from ‘Abbäs I, in w hich the Shäh
instructed his subjects

unto what degree soever. . . to kindly receive and entertaine the


English Frankes or Nation, at what time any o f their ships or shipping
shall arrive at Jasques [Jäsk], or any other o f the Ports in our Kingdome:
to conduct them and their Merchandize to what place or places they
themselves desire: and that you shall see them safely defended about
our Coasts, from any other Frank or Franks whatsoevere.11

Steele and C ro w th er, after exam ining several ports, chose Jäsk,
on the M akrän coast east o f H urm üz. In D ecem ber 1616, the
C o m p an y sent E dw ard C onnock in the James w ith a cargo o f
cloth; the James reached Jäsk despite Portuguese attem pts to
intercept her. C o n n o ck to o k the cloth to Shïrâz, and opened
factories b o th in that city and in Isfahän. ‘Abbäs issued another
114 Iran under the Safavids
farmän in m ore specific terms, giving the English East India
C o m p an y the rig h t to trade freely th ro u g h o u t the country. A n
English am bassador was to reside perm anently in Iran, and was
em pow ered to appoint agents and factors as and w here neces­
sary. English nationals w ere guaranteed free exercise o f their
religion; in legal m atters, they w ere to be under the jurisdiction
o f their ambassador. M oreover, the Shah prom ised to supply the
C o m p an y w ith betw een 1,000 and 3,000 bales o f silk annually at
a given rate, and the C o m p an y m ig h t ship this silk from Jâsk free
o f duty.
T h e East India C o m p an y m ight w ell be gratified by this display
o f royal liberality. T here was, how ever, a small string attached.
In retu rn for these concessions, ‘Abbas I expected the English to
assist him in expelling the Portuguese from H urm üz. 'A bbäs I
had always, quite naturally, regarded the Portuguese forts on
the island o f H urm üz and on the m ainland, and the fact that the
K ing o f H u rm ü z was a P ortuguese tributary, as infringem ents on
his o w n sovereignty. In default o f a navy, how ever, he, like his
predecessors, had been powerless to drive the Portuguese o u t o f

7. House and garden; the East India Co. director’s residence


Relations with West during Safavid period 115
H u rm ü z Island, although, as already m entioned, he had expelled
the m uch smaller Portuguese garrison from the B ahrein islands
in 1602. T he advent o f the English East India C o m p an y ’s fighting
ships seemed to give him the oppo rtu n ity he was seeking.
Relations betw een ‘Abbas and the Portuguese had been deteri­
orating for a n u m b er o f years. In 1608, ‘Abbäs had sent the
Portuguese A ugustinian A ntonio de G ouveia on a mission to K ing
Philip o f Spain, accom panied by the qizilbäsh officer D engïz Beg
R üm lü. A part from the usual presents for K ing Philip, the Shäh,
w ho was never one to miss the chance o f a good deal, sent w ith
them $0 bales o f silk, the proceeds o f w hich w ere to be b ro u g h t
back for the royal coffers. As usual, the objectives o f the mission
w ere part political, to persuade K ing Philip to w age w ar on the
O ttom ans, and p art com m ercial, to p ro m o te trade relations
betw een Iran and Spain and Portugal. T h e mission was a com plete
failure, and w hen its m em bers returned to Iran in 1613, Shäh
‘Abbäs had D engïz Beg sum m arily executed. ‘Abbäs had various
causes for com plaint against this officer: the m ost serious w ere
that he had bro ken the royal seal on the letter he was bearing to
the K ing o f Spain —a sacrilegious act —and had com m unicated
its contents to the g overnor o f C adiz; that he had paid some
m erchant a sum o f m oney to deliver the letter from the Shäh to
the Pope w hich he was com m issioned to deliver in person; and
that certain m em bers o f his staff had em braced C hristianity and
rem ained in Europe. It was considered that the only possible
reason w h y they w ould have renounced Islam was the ill-treatm ent
accorded to them by D engïz Beg. Gouveia, w h o had been
appointed A postolic D elegate to Iran w hile he was in Spain, was
charged w ith having given the bales o f silk to K ing Philip instead
o f selling th em on the Shäh’s behalf. Gouveia, in fear o f his life,
fled to Shïrâz, w here he was detained for a tim e by the G overnor-
General o f Färs, Im äm Q u lï K hän; the latter, n o t receiving
instructions on the m atter, allow ed G ouveia to proceed to
H urm ü z. T he Shäh’s orders com m anding Im äm Q u lï K han to
detain G ouveia at Shïrâz arrived too late. ‘Abbäs was angry w ith
the G overnor-G eneral for allow ing G ouveia to escape,12 and
Im äm Q u lï K hän, in order to regain the Shäh’s favour, decided
to attack the territo ry on the m ainland held by the Portuguese
opposite H urm üz. T o w a rd the end o f 1614, he captured the small
p o rt o f Jarü n (later renam ed B andar ‘Abbäs), landed troops on
116 Iran under the Safavids
the island o f Q ishm , and thus effectively cut off the supply o f fresh
w ater from the Portuguese garrison at H urm üz (there was no fresh
w ater on the island o f H urm üz), and drove the Portuguese from
their pied-à-terre at R a’s al-K haym a on the southern shore o f the
Persian G u lf
Shäh 4Abbäs had let it be k n o w n that he was tired o f receiving
friars as ambassadors, and he had asked the K ing o f Spain to send
h im som e gentlem an o f note; b y such a gentlem an, he considered,
the K ing o f Spain’s interests w o u ld be better served, because 44a
religious m an o u t o f his cell was like a fish ou t o f w a te r” .13 In
1613, therefore, K ing Philip sent as his am bassador to Iran D on
Garcia de Silva y Figueroa, w ho reached G oa in O ctober 1614.
A lthough the Spanish grandee had som e Portuguese blood in his
veins, he was persona non grata to the Portuguese authorities at Goa,
w ho detained him there on one pretext or another for m ore than
tw o years. W hen he eventually reached H urm üz in A pril 1617,
again he encountered strong hostility from the Portuguese auth­
orities. D ue to the further delay at H u rm ü z, he had am ple tim e
to inspect the Portuguese defences, on w hich he com m ented
unfavourably. D o n Garcia reached Isfahan in the sum m er o f 1617,
b u t did n ot receive an audience w ith ‘Abbäs I until the sum m er
o f 1619, m ore than five and a h a lf years fro m the tim e he left
Spain. W hen he did m eet the Shäh, his arrogant and tactless
dem ands infuriated the latter, w ho dismissed him . D o n Garcia had
dem anded the restitution o f the B ahrein islands and o f the coastal
strip n o rth o f H urm üz, recently seized by Im äm Q u lï K hän; he
also dem anded the expulsion fro m Iran o f the English East India
C o m p an y factors. H aving ruined his chances o f achieving
anything in Iran, D o n Garcia set sail for Spain, b u t died on the
return voyage.
T he Shäh’s experiences w ith the G ouveia mission and w ith D on
Garcia had soured his relationship w ith the Portuguese (he did n o t
m ake any clear distinction betw een them and the Spaniards and
indeed, there was no g ood reason w h y he should, for the thrones
o f Spain and P ortugal w ere still united). In June 1620, a Portuguese
squadron under R uy Freyre de A ndrade reached H urm üz w ith
the intention o f ejecting the English from the Persian Gulf, bu t
was defeated in tw o naval battles w ith ships o f the English East
India C o m p an y on C hristm as D ay 1620 and 7 January 1621. In
M ay 1621, R uy Freyre de A ndrade landed a force on the island
Relations with West during Safavid period 117
o f Q ishm w ith the object o f regaining control o f the wells w hich
p rovided the w ater-supply for the Portuguese garrison on
H u rm ü z island. H ardly had R uy Freyre com pleted a fort designed
to p ro tect the wells before it was attacked b y a Safavid force and,
in February 1622, was captured. R uy Freyre becam e the prisoner
o f the English. Portuguese attacks on Iranian coastal tow ns and
villages had caused so m uch dam age that in 1621 Im äm Q u lï
K hän had requested the English East India C o m p an y captains,
B lyth and W eddel, to assist h im in expelling the Portuguese from
the island o f H u rm ü z ; should they refuse, their trade privileges
in Iran and the Persian G u lf w ould be cancelled.
T he English captains w ere reluctant to agree, because Portugal
and E ngland w ere officially at peace, b u t they allow ed themselves
to be persuaded by E dw ard M onnox, w h o had been the C o m ­
p a n y ’s A gent in Iran. T he m ain points o f the agreem ent w ith
Im äm Q u lï K hän w ere: the spoils to be equally divided; the
English to have the fo rt at H u rm ü z; the English to be allow ed
to im p o rt or ex port goods via H u rm ü z free o f d u ty ; the English
to receive h a lf the custom s dues levied on other m erchandise
passing th ro u g h H u rm ü z; the Christian captives to be handed
over to the English; Im äm Q u lï K hän to pay h a lf the cost o f the
provisions consum ed b y the C o m p an y ’s ships w hile in service
against the Portuguese. T he first jo in t action by the English and
Im äm Q u lï K h än’s forces was the capture o f the Portuguese
fo rt at the eastern end o f the island o f Q ishm . O n e o f the few
English casualties was C aptain W illiam Baffin, the discoverer
o f Baffin’s Bay. As the chirurgeon w ith the flotilla w ro te:
“ M aster Baffin. . .received a small shot from the Castle into his
belly, w h erew ith he gave three leapes, by report, and died
im m ediately.” 14 T he landing on the island o f H u rm ü z itself
follow ed. Im äm Q u lï K h än ’s m en w ere transported to the island
in English ships. T he Portuguese and the vassal K ing o f H urm üz,
M ah m ü d Shäh, retreated inside the fort. T he English flotilla
anchored on the side o f the fort w here the fortifications ran dow n
to the w ater, and the Safavid troops began the w o rk o f digging
trenches and pushing their breastw orks forw ard up to the walls
o f the fo rt; they then began m ining operations. C harges o f
g u n p o w d er destroyed p art o f the tow er, and a general assault
began. W h en the attackers began to get the upper hand, the
Portuguese laid d o w n their arms and w ere taken on board the
ii8 Iran under the Safavids
English ships. T he fort surrendered on 3 M ay 1622. A m ong the
w eapons w hich fell into the hands o f the besiegers w ere several
large cannon, and siege guns o f various sizes, “ cunningly w ro u g h t
by skilled Portuguese craftsm en. Each one was a m asterpiece o f
the art o f the Frankish cannon-founders” .15
T h e unique experim ent in A nglo-Iranian co-operation at
H u rm ü z in 1622 was follow ed by the dispatch by Charles I in
1627 o f the first official English am bassador to the Iranian court,
Sir D o d m o re C o tto n , a gentlem an o f K ing Charles Ts Privy
C ham ber. Sir D o d m o re was accom panied by Sir R obert Sherley,
w h o had been aw ay in Europe since 161$, and w hose position
high in the Shah’s favour had been underm ined during his absence
by enemies at the royal court. B o th envoys reached the Shah’s
palace at Farahäbäd in M ay 1627. Publicly repudiated by the Shäh,
Sir R obert retired to Isfahan w here he died on 13 July 1627, a
b roken m an. O n ly ten days later, Sir D o d m o re C o tto n also “ bade
the w o rld A d ie u ” ; in the w ords o f Sir T hom as H erbert, a m em ­
ber o f his suite: “ Like discontents, long conflict w ith adverse
dispositions, and fourteen days consum ing o f a flux (occasioned,
as I th o u g h t, by eating to o m uch fruit, o r sucking in too m uch
chill air u p o n T aurus), b ro u g h t that Religious G entlem an, Sir
D o d m o re C o tto n , o u r A m bassadour, to an im m ortal h o m e .” 16
T h e fall o f H u rm ü z m arked the beginning o f the end o f
Portuguese dom inance in the Persian Gulf. T he Portuguese
attem p t to recapture H u rm ü z in 1625 failed, and the English East
India C o m p an y w ere able n o t only to m aintain their factories on
the coast bu t to expand their com m ercial operations in the
interior. As the Portuguese V iceroy A lbuquerque had shrew dly
observed in the early sixteenth century, H u rm ü z was one o f three
strategic points possession o f w hich w ould give their ow ner
control over the w hole o f the Persian Gulf, Indian O cean and R ed
Sea, and thus o f the East Indies trade. T he Portuguese developed
M uscat, on the southern shore o f the Persian Gulf, to com pen­
sate for the loss o f H u rm ü z, b u t M uscat was vulnerable fro m the
rear w here it was open to attack by the A rab tribes o f O m an.
A lthough Portuguese p o w er had been broken, a new rival to the
English appeared on the scene, in the form o f the D u tch East India
C o m p an y w hich had been founded in 1602, having g ro w n out
o f “ T h e Society for T rade to D istant C o u n trie s” form ed in 1597.
Im m ediately, there was conflict w ith the English over the spice
Relations with West during Safavid period 119
trade from the East Indies, and by the m iddle o f the seventeenth
century the D utch had driven the Portuguese out o f Malacca and
C eylon and had established a colony on the Cape o f G ood Hope.
In 1635, the D utch had helped the English defeat the Portuguese
attem p t to recapture H urm üz, b u t from then on they began to
challenge the English position in Iran. U n d er the agreem ent
betw een the English East India C om pany and Im am Q u lï Khän,
the English w ere to receive h a lf the custom s dues levied on
m erchandise passing thro u g h H urm üz. T he D utch refused to pay.
T he death o f Shäh ‘Abbäs I in 1629 gave the D utch their chance
to obtain a share o f the silk trade. T he privileges o f the English
East India C om pany w ere not renew ed and confirm ed until 1632,
and m eanw hile the D utch established a factory at B andar ‘Abbas
for the im p o rt o f pepper, nutm eg, cloves and other spices. In 164$,
the D utch attacked the island o f Q ishm , and extorted from ‘Abbäs
II a licence to purchase silk in any part o f Iran and export it free
o f customs duty, thus effectively breaking the royal m onopoly o f
the silk trade w hich had been established by ‘Abbäs I. D utch
pressure became so great that the English m oved their factory
from B andar ‘Abbäs to Basra in 1645, but the D utch im m ediately
sent ships to Basra and alm ost ruined the new factory. T he value
o f D utch trade in the Persian G u lf in the m iddle o f the seventeenth
century has been estim ated at ^100 ,0 0 0 ; English com m erce had
been alm ost swam ped.
T he rivalry betw een the English and D u tch in the Persian Gulf,
Indian O cean and the East Indies, was ju st p art o f the w orld-w ide
struggle betw een the tw o pow ers for com m ercial pre-em inence.
T he 1651 N avigation Act, designed to destroy the D utch carrying
trade, precipitated w ar in Europe, and the celebrated D utch
admirals Van T ra m p and R uy ter fought it o u t w ith the equally
fam ous English adm irals Black and M onk. In 1653 and 1654,
vessels o f the English East India C om pany w ere captured or sunk
in the Persian Gulf. W hen peace was concluded later in 1654, the
English East India C om pany was aw arded £85,000 damages.
T he faÜure o f the Stuart kings to support com m ercial enterprises
in the Indies contrasted strongly both w ith the previous policies
o f C rom w ell and w ith the strong support given by the D utch
governm ent to its m erchants. T hévenot, Fryer and C hardin all
testify to the suprem acy o f D u tch trade in the Persian G u lf during
the second h a lf o f the seventeenth century. In 1664, another rival
120 Iran under the Safavids
appeared on the scene in the shape o f the French East India
C om pany. France, w hich hitherto had had little contact w ith Iran,
decided that it m ust follow the exam ple o f the D utch and the
English and obtain overseas interests as well as being a E uropean
pow er. B oth Cardinal Richelieu and Père Joseph disliked the fact
that the Augustinians in Iran w ere exclusively Portuguese, and
that there was a preponderance o f Spaniards and Italians in the
C arm elite missions there. In 1627, Richelieu sent a mission to
Iran to obtain perm ission from ‘A bbäs I for the establishm ent
o f C apuchin missions at Isfahan and elsewhere. T he mission was
successful, and C apuchin missions w ere founded at Isfahan and
B aghdad, the latter city recently taken from the O ttom ans. The
Superiors o f the Capuchins w ere considered to represent the King
o f France, and to constitute a diplom atic counterw eight to the
Augustinians. T he m ost fam ous o f them was Père Raphael du
Mans, w ho w ent to Iran in 1644, spent the rest o f his life there,
and died at Isfahan in 1696 at the age o f ninety-three. H e learnt
Persian well, and was m uch esteemed as a m athem atician by
‘Abbäs II and Shäh Sulaym än. H e w ro te Estât de la Perse en 1660
for the guidance o f the French m inister C olbert, w ho, w ith
characteristic thoroughness, was collecting inform ation on Iran
p rio r to form ing the C om pagnie Française des Indes in 1664.
French influence in Iran was also increased by the establishment
in 1653 o fjesu it missions at Julfa, the Christian suburb o f Isfahan,
and Shiraz, headed by P ère François R igordi. This b ro u g h t to five
the n u m ber o f foreign religious O rders operating in Iran:
D om inicans, Franciscans, A ugustinians, Carm elites and Jesuits.
Im m ediately after the form ation o f the French East India
C om pany, three representatives o f the C o m pany and tw o envoys
to the Shäh from Louis X IV set out for Iran. O n reaching Isfahän
in N o v em b er 1665, they at once indulged in the quarrels o f the
type w hich had plagued m ore than one diplom atic mission.
Despite the bad im pression created by these squabbles, and the
even w orse impression created b y the failure o f either Louis X IV
or the C om pany to send gifts to the Shäh, the Shäh granted the
C om p an y exem ption from tolls and customs dues for three years,
and trading privileges similar to those already granted to the
English and D utch. T o w a rd the end o f the seventeenth century,
the French East India C om pany stepped up its activities in Iran,
and de Châteauneuf, the French am bassador to the Sublim e Porte,
Relations with West during Safavid period 121
sent a capable m erchant from Marseilles nam ed de Canseville to
Isfahän. O stensibly acting as secretary to the C apuchin mission
there, he was actually engaged in gathering inform ation on
econom ic m atters for the C om pany. A fter returning briefly to
France in 1705 to report, he w ent back to Iran. In M arch o f
that year, the French governm ent sent a mission to Iran w ith the
hope o f concluding a com m ercial treaty, b u t its choice o f a head
o f mission, Jean-B aptiste Fabre, was a curious one. Fabre was so
short o f funds that he had to b o rro w m oney from his mistress,
w ho kept a gam ing-house in Paris, before he could m ake his pre­
parations for the voyage. W h en the expedition got under w ay in
M arch 1705, one o f its m em bers was a “ cavalier” w ho turned
o u t to be Fabre’s mistress in male attire. O n arrival at Istanbul,
the Fabre mission was subject to m uch delay, because the
O tto m a n G rand Vizier failed to see h o w his country Wpuld
benefit fro m an increase in trade betw een France and Iran. The
party had to split up ; Fabre and his mistress, M arie Petit, w ent
on ahead w ith som e servants, and reached Erlvan, then in Safavidx
hands, in 1707. T he subsequent history o f the Fabre mission is pure
farce interspersed w ith tragedy. M arie P etit seems rapidly to have
w o n the heart o f the Iranian G overnor-G eneral, w ho, w hen one
o f Fabre’s French servants attem pted to m u rd er M arie because she
had th ro w n an orange at him , had the m an arrested at her request.
Père M osnier, a Jesuit living at Erlvan, w h o m Fabre had appointed
his alm oner, was scandalised by the affair, and ^ent w o rd o f w hat
had happened to the rest o f the mission, then nearing the Iranian
frontier. W h en the rem aining m em bers arrived, they m arched to
the jail and released the prisoner, tw o Iranians being killed and
several w ounded in the incident. T he G overnor-G eneral then
arrested all the m em bers o f the mission, including T ère M osnier,
w h o m he proposed to pu t to death, b u t all w ere released from
im prisonm ent on the intercession o f M arie Petit. T he G overnor-
General then received instructions from the Shäh to send the Fabre
mission on to Isfahän. Before it left, he invited everyone to a
farewell h u n tin g -p arty ; Fabre fell ill o f a fever and died a few days
later. T h e G overnor-G eneral was naturally suspected o f having
m urdered h im because o f his infatuation w ith M arie Petit.
Differences o f opinion at once arose as to w ho should succeed
Fabre as head o f mission. Pcrc M osnier w ro te off to the Bishop
o f B abylon, then resident at ITamadän, to invite him to com e and
122 Iran under the Safavids
take charge, b u t the G overnor-G eneral intercepted his letter.
Finally, w ith the support o f the G overnor-G eneral, M arie Petit
declared herself the head o f the mission, took charge o f Fabre’s
papers and the gifts for the Shah, and set off for the Safavid court,
then in cam p near T ehran. T he French ambassador at Istanbul,
horrified by these events, sent one o f his secretaries, Pierre V ictor
M ichel, post-haste to Iran to try and intercept M arie P etit’s party.
H e overtook them at N akhchivän but, because he had n o pro p er
credentials, was unable to prevent them from proceeding. O n
arrival at the royal cam p, M arie Petit was courteously received
b y the vazïr, w h o conducted her to the royal baram, w here she
received all possible attention. O n her return jo u rn ey , M arie Petit
g o t b o th M ichel and the Bishop o f B abylon, w ho had jo in ed
M ichel, th ro w n into prison for a short period. M ichel then gained
the upper hand, and ordered M arie P etit to return to France; he
gave her a small am ount o f cash, and a bond draw n on A leppo
w hich p roved to be w orthless. W h en she arrived in France, M arie
P etit was tried and im prisoned; w hen she em erged from jail her
health was broken and she was penniless.17 W ith M arie Petit out
o f the way, and belatedly equipped w ith letters o f credence,
M ichel was able to negotiate, despite strong opposition fro m the
English and D utch, the first official treaty betw een France and Iran
(Septem ber 1708). In addition to granting certain trade privileges,
the treaty gave protection to the C hristian religious orders in Iran.
Shäh Sultan H usayn decided to send a return embassy, and he
selected the kalantar (m ayor) o f Erïvân, M uham m ad Rizä Beg, as
his am bassador: this was alm ost as odd a choice as that o f Fabre.
M uham m ad Rizä Beg experienced the usual difficulties o f any­
one trying to cross O tto m a n territory, from east or west, and
spent some tim e in a T urkish jail. H e left Erïvân in M ay 1714,
and reached Paris in February 1715. T he am bassador’s eccentric
behaviour —he was given to sudden and unaccountable fits o f
rage —together w ith the m ediocre value o f the gifts he brought,
caused m any highly placed Frenchm en, including M ontesquieu,
to suspect he was an im postor. In view o f the fact that Louis X IV ’s
envoys to the Shäh in 1665 had b orne no gifts at all, the latter
gro u n d for suspicion seems unreasonable. H ow ever, M arie Petit,
interrogated in jail, confirm ed the bona fides o f M uham m ad Rizä
Beg. Louis X IV nom inated three negotiators o f the highest rank
to confer w ith M uham m ad Rizä B eg: the Secretary o f State for
Foreign Affairs; the Secretary o f State for the M arine; and the
C om ptroller-G eneral o f Finance. T he Iranian am bassador was
enjoying his luxurious life in Paris, spiced as it was by a n u m b er
o f am ato ry adventures, and he protracted the negotiations until
13 A ugust 1715, w hen a n e w treaty was signed. It w as extrem ely
124 Iran under the Safavids
favourable to France: im p o rt and ex p o rt duties in Iran w ere
w aived, and all lim itations on French trade w ith Iran w ere
rem o v ed ; the French am bassador was to take precedence over all
others. (Despite the prom ise o f preferential treatm ent, French
trade w ith Iran did no t flourish; the Safavid dynasty fell in 1722,
and the 1708 and 1715 agreem ents w ere n o t binding on later
rulers.)
It is impossible to escape the conclusion th at Iran’s diplom atic
and com m ercial relations w ith France during the seventeenth and
eighteenth centuries w ere on a quite different basis fro m its
relations w ith the D u tch and the English; once m ore the elem ents
o f farce and tragedy enter into the story, in roughly equal
proportions. M u h am m ad Rizä Beg em barked at Le H avre, on
the first stage o f his jo u rn e y back to Iran. In M u h am m ad Rizä
B eg ’s cabin was placed a large box w ith holes in it, w hich was
said to contain his devotional books; in fact, it contained the
M arquise d ’Epinay, w h o had arranged to elope w ith the am bas­
sador. U nfortunately, M u h am m ad Rizä B eg realised belatedly
that he had far exceeded his m andate in negotiating the 1715
T reaty, and decided to anticipate his possible fate on his retu rn
to Iran by co m m itting suicide. T he M arquise d ’Epinay w en t on
to Iran, becam e a M uslim , and m arried M uham m ad Rizä B eg’s
b ro th e r.18 In 1717, the C hevalier A nge de G ardane, Seigneur de
Sainte-C roix, travelled to Iran w ith his b ro th er François and to o k
up his duties as French consul at Isfahän. T he tw o brothers w ere
still in Isfahän at the tim e o f the siege and capture o f the Safavid
capital b y the Afghäns in 1722.
T h e English East India C om pany, in o rd er to m aintain its
position in face o f this strong D utch and French com petition,
fo u n d itself gradually forced to assume a m ore political role. For
a tim e, the m ultiplicity o f m erchant com panies threatened the ruin
o f all, b u t in 1708 they sank their differences and am algam ated
into “ T he U n ited C o m p an y o f the M erchants o f England trading
to the East Indies” . T he presidents o f this C o m p an y w ere invested
w ith consular pow ers and rank. T he English East India C o m p an y
succeeded in m aintaining its favoured position in Iran until the
end o f the Safavid period. In 1699, Shäh Sulaym än visited the
C o m p an y ’s factory at Isfahän, accom panied by his harem . T he
C o m p an y ’s A gent spent ^ 1 2 ,0 0 0 on the reception o f his royal
visitors; in return, the Shäh paid one year’s arrears o f the B andar
Relations with West during Safavid period 125
‘Abbas custom s dues, and conferred other m arks o f royal favour
on the C om pany. As the political p ow er o f the Safavids declined,
so did the internal security on w hich the foreign trading com panies
so m uch depended. In 1721, a force o f 4,000 B alüchï tribesm en
attacked the English and D u tc h factories at B andar ‘A bbäs; they
w ere beaten off, b u t the D utch w arehouse was plundered and
goods valued at £ 2 0 ,0 0 0 w ere stolen. F rom the beginning o f the
eighteenth century, piracy in the Persian G u lf m ade com m ercial
enterprises increasingly hazardous for the foreign companies.
Piracy in the area was no th in g n ew ; it is m entioned by the classical
w riters, such as Pliny and P tolem y, and in m ediaeval tim es by
M arco Polo. T o w ard the end o f the seventeenth century, how ever,
attacks on the English East India C o m p an y ’s m erchantm en
increased. T he pirates w ere n o t all Arabs, th o u g h the O m anis w ere
p robably the w orst offenders, bu t included Englishm en and
A m ericans; even the celebrated C aptain K idd is said to have
operated in Indian waters. T he m enance to m erchantm en becam e
so serious th at the three rivals, E ngland, France and H olland, w ere
forced to co-ordinate their counter-m easures against the pirates
about the year 1700, and France was given the prim ary respon­
sibility for the security o f the Persian Gulf. T o w ard the end o f
the Safavid period, the D u tch began to lose g round to the English
in the Persian Gulf, and in the nineteenth century the English
suppressed piracy and established that pax Britannica so eloquently
lauded by L o rd C urzon: “ betw een all parties intervenes the
sw orded figure o f G reat B ritain, w ith firm and ju st hand holding
the scales” .19
A lth o u g h D u tch influence in the Persian G u lf and Indian O cean
declined during the last quarter o f the seventeenth century, the
D u tch East India C o m p an y had no t given up all hope o f retaining
its privileged trading position in Iran, and in 1717 it sent a mission
there led by Joan Josua Ketelaar, one o f its high-ranking officials.
A t the end o f M ay 1717, K etelaar’s m ission arrived at Isfahän w ith
the six elephants w hich w ere gifts to the Shäh. A fter protracted
negotiations w ith Shäh Sultän H usayn’s vazxr, Fath ‘A ll K hän
DäghistänT, Ketelaar m anaged to secure the renew al o f m ost o f
the D u tch trading privileges, bu t his difficulties w ere no t over.
T he vazTr, no doubt harking back to Shäh ‘Abbäs Ts success in
enlisting English assistance against the Portuguese at H u rm ü z in
1622, dem anded D utch naval help against the Arabs fro m M uscat
126 Iran under the Safavids
w h o had seized the Bahrein islands and w ere threatening B andar
‘Abbäs. Sim ilar requests already m ade by the Shäh to the English
and French had been refused. K etelaar evaded the issue, and tried
to b o ard a D utch vessel at B andar ‘Abbäs in January 1718, bu t
the local Safavid com m ander tried to com m andeer the ship for
action against the Arabs. W hen K etelaar refused to allow this, the
Iranians surrounded the D utch factory and cut o ff all its supplies.
K etelaar becam e seriously ill w ith a high fever, and died.
T h e Russian am bassador V olynksy was at Isfahän at the same
tim e as Ketelaar. T he intervention o f the Russians in Iranian affairs
portended a new era in Iran ’s relations w ith the W est. B y the end
o f the eighteenth century, Russia and B ritain had em erged as the
m ost pow erful W estern nations in the area, and there began the
period o f a century and a h alf d uring w hich they struggled for
political and com m ercial suprem acy in Iran, w ith Iran trying to
preserve its existence as an independent nation b y playing the tw o
rivals o ff against each other. It was undoubtedly V olynsky’s report
to Tsar Peter the G reat w hich encouraged the latter to adopt an
expansionist policy in regard to Iran; V olynsky described the
extrem e weakness o f Iran, and prophesied that, unless Shäh Sultän
H usayn w ere replaced b y a strong and capable ruler, the Safavid
dynasty w ould fall. His prophecy was fulfilled only a few years
later. O n e o f Peter the G reat’s principal objectives had been to
give his landlocked country access to the oceans o f the w o rld ; he
had already, b y m aking w ar on the Swedes, acquired access to
the Baltic, and b y attacking the T urks he hoped to obtain access
to the Black Sea also. V olynsky’s rep o rt encouraged him to dream
o f control over a w arm -w ater p o rt on the Persian G u lf T he fall
o f the Safavid dynasty in 1722, the capture o f Isfahän by the
A fghäns and thé appeal for assistance against the latter fro m the
roi fainéant Tahm äsp II, gave P eter the G reat the o p p o rtu n ity
in 1723 to acquire possession o f D arband and B äkü on the west
coast o f the Caspian Sea. T he death o f Peter the G reat in 172$,
and the rise o f N äd ir Q ui! Afshär (from 1736, N äd ir Shäh) in
Iran, postponed bu t by no means term inated Russian pressure
fo r expansion to the south at the expense o f Iran.
T he A fghän occupation o f Isfahän and the resulting breakdow n
o f law and order th ro u g h o u t Iran naturally posed alm ost insup­
erable difficulties for the agents and staffs o f the English, D utch
and French East India C om panies, som e o f w h o m lost their lives
Relations with West during Safavid period 127
either d uring the six-m onth siege o f Isfahän, during w hich m any
people perished from fam ine and disease, or at the hands o f the
Afghans after the occupation o f th e city on 12 O cto b er 1722.
Som e m anaged to save their lives by bribing the A fghan au th ­
orities. As O w en Phillips, the English A gent, w ro te to L ondon on
30 N o v e m b er 1722: “ T hank G od, w e have escaped by a tim ely
Precaution, b u t by a vast Expence o f Cash for w hich w e cannot
tax o u r C o n d u ct w ith P rudence. . .W e hope no one w ho hears
o u r C o n d u ct w ill w ant h u m an ity enough to approve the Purchase
o f o u r Lives on the T erm s w e have subm itted to .” 20
6

T h e f lo w e r in g o f t h e arts u n d e r t h e S a fa v id s

Som e o f the architectural achievem ents o f the Safavids are


described in C hapter 7. In this chapter an attem p t w ill be m ade
to give an idea o f their achievem ents in the fine and applied arts.
In Iran, art has always been aristocratic art, “ in the sense that it
was royalty and the upper classes o f society w hich created the
dem and fo r w orks o f art and thus stim ulated the activity o f artists
and craftsm en, and also in the sense that these aristocratic patrons
frequently dictated w hat kind o f art and w h at type o f objects
should be p ro d u c e d ” .1

P A I N T I N G A N D T H E “ A R T OF T H E B O O K ”

In m an y respects, the Safavids w ere the heirs o f the brilliant artistic


traditions o f the T im u rid court at H arät in Khuräsän. The
T im u rid ruler Shährukh (1405-47) and his son B äysunqur w ere
patrons o f the arts and bibliophiles, and some o f the finest Islamic
m anuscripts in existence w ere com m issioned by them . Sultan
H usayn B äyqarä (1470—1505) was the p atro n o f the outstanding
H arät school o f painting o f w hich Bihzäd was the leading
m em ber. In 1507, tw o years after the death o f Sultan H usayn
B äyqarä, the Ö zbegs sw ept across K huräsän and entered H arät
unopposed. T hree years later, in 1510, the Ö zbeg arm y was
annihilated at the battle o f M arv by Shäh Ism ä4!! I, w h o annexed
K huräsän to the Safavid em pire. A lthough Shäh IsmäTTs capital
was at T abriz, in north-w estern Iran, he m ade H arät the second
city o f his em pire and the seat o f the heir-apparent. H e thus
inherited the artistic traditions o f the city w hich has been dubbed
the “ A th en s” o f Iran.2 O n e o f his first m oves was to take the artist
B ihzäd back w ith him to T abriz; Bihzäd took charge o f a group
o f artists w h o had fled from H arät a few years previously, and

128
Flowering of the arts under the Safavids 129
established the T abriz school o f painting. Shäh Ism ä ‘11 was ap­
parently so solicitous for B ihzäd’s safety that, at the tim e o f the
battle o f C häldirän in 1514 against the O ttom ans, he concealed
B ihzäd and his favourite calligrapher, Shäh M ah m ü d , in a cave
o u t o f h a rm ’s w ay .3 In 1522, Bihzäd was appointed by Shäh
Ism ä‘Il director o f the royal library. His letter o f ap pointm ent was
penned b y the em inent historian G hiyäth al-D In K hvändam lr, a
personal friend o f the artist and author o f the Habib al-Siyar, one
o f the best histories o f the reign o f Ism ä‘Tl I. In Safavid times, the
royal library was n o t so m uch a library as w e understand the w o rd
as a w orkshop under royal patronage in w hich a variety o f
craftsm en laboured to produce superb m anuscripts characterised
by the excellence o f their calligraphy, illum ination, illustration
and b o o k binding —the principal skills w hich together constituted
the “ art o f the b o o k ” .4
D u rin g the long reign o f Shäh T ahm äsp (1524—76), the various
skills w hich constituted the “ art o f the b o o k ” w ere b ro u g h t to
the ultim ate pitch o f perfection. This was in large p art due to the
fact that T ahm äsp was n o t only a keen patro n o f the arts b u t had
him self devoted a lo t o f tim e in his y o u th to the study o f painting.
Several o f the leading artists o f the tim e had been his intim ate
com panions, and he had acquired proficiency in illum inating
sarlawhas, or the decoration on the title-pages o f m anuscripts.5
Shäh Tasmäsp was a “ gifted, exacting p a tro n w ho follow ed his
artists’ w o rk as closely as if it w ere his o w n ” .6 G iven the degree
o f interest in the “ art o f the b o o k ” exhibited by b o th Ismä ‘11 I
and Tahm äsp, it is n o t suprising that the nonpareil o f Safavid
m anuscripts should be a w o rk com m issioned in 1522 by Shäh
Ism ä‘H for his son T ahm äsp b u t n o t com pleted until after IsmäTTs
death. T his w o rk is the Shähnäma-yi Shäh Tahmäspi, or King's Book
o f Kings.7 T he unique nature o f this w o rk m ay be ju d g e d by the
fact that, w hereas no other extant contem porary m anuscript
contains m ore than fourteen m iniature-paintings, the King's Book
o f Kings contains m o re than tw o hu n d red and fifty. It constitutes
a “ portable art g a lle ry ” since m ost o f the m ost illustrious court
artists o f the period contributed to it.8 T h e individual paintings
are n o t necessarily all the w o rk o f one artist. “ A t tim es w e find
m iniatures designed and largely painted by very distinguished
m asters, b u t w ith parts, such as distant m o u n tain crags or an entire
battalion o f soldiery, executed b y carefully controlled, alm ost
i3o Iran under the Safavids
m iraculously discreet follow ers w ho w ere only slightly less senior
artists them selves.” 9 In other instances,
lesser masters or assistants painted pictures either entirely alone or with
some degree o f aid from their betters. Sometimes a master sketched in
the design and left its amplification and completion to the assistants. The
master’s participation varied from a scrawled hint suggesting the
disposition o f figures or architecture to an elaborate under-drawing
requiring little beyond coloring to complete. W hen an assistant had
done his work, a master would sometimes return to add a few
improving strokes, or perhaps even a complete figure or tw o.10
A lm ost every characteristic o f Persian painting is present in
these m iniatures : the reduction o f the three-dim ensional w o rld to
tw o dim ensions and the use o f various devices to circum vent the
problem s caused b y this; the sure and exquisite use o f harm onious
colour ; and the filling o f every inch o f the background w ith birds,
anim als, trees, vignettes depicting action subsidiary to that o f the
central them e o f the picture. “ G olden skies and silver w ater,
black-green cypresses against w hite-blossom ing trees, th e autum n
foliage o f the spreading plane, dappled horses in taw n y deserts,
clustered figures in raim ent o f scarlet, crim son and azure, diaper
tiles and dainty frescoes, b rig h t gardens behind slender fences o f
cinnabar red: these to gether com pose the gayest o f all possible
sym phonies.” 11
T h e King's Book o f Kings is n o t, how ever, m erely a treasury o f
the p ain ter’s art; it is also a m o n u m e n t to the calligrapher’s skill,
since FirdawsT’s Shähnäma, w h ich form s the vehicle for this w ealth
o f illustration, consists o f over 60,000 verses. In the Islamic w orld,
o f course, the dogm a that the Q u r’an is the W o rd o f G od had,
fro m the earliest days o f Islam, given a theological justification
for the veneration o f calligraphy. This fact, to gether w ith the
Islamic ban on the representation o f the hu m an fo rm (a ban w hich
in Iran was m ore often h o n o u red in the breach), com bined to give
calligraphy a h igher status in M uslim culture than it achieved in
any o th er civilisation. T h e cult o f calligraphy w en t far beyond
the confines o f the pro d u ctio n o f books and m anuscripts, and the
A rabic script, in a natural or stylised form , played a m ajor role
in the decoration o f m osques and other religious buildings. In
o th er w ords, religious feeling found an outlet b o th in penm anship
and in the abstract illum ination o f m anuscripts. M anuscripts w ere
em bellished by one or m o re w hole pages o f illum ination, and the
Flowering of the arts under the Safavids 131
pages o f the text w ere adorned w ith illum inated and gilded
borders and o ther ornam entation. T he chapter headings w ere
frequently contained w ith in panels w hich w ere little m asterpieces
o f artistry. T he skills o f the m iniature-painter w ere transferred
to the tooling and em bossing o f leather for bookbindings, and
co u rt painters extended their technique to lacquering, w hich was
applied n o t only to bookbindings b u t to such item s as trays, dishes,
pen-cases, m irror-cases and je w e l- and trinket-boxes.
As A n th o n y W elch has pointed out, Shäh ‘Abbäs I (1588—1629)
did n o t have the intense and single-m inded dedication to the art
o f p ain tin g displayed b y his grandfather Shäh Tahm äsp. “ In
general, ‘A bbäs w o u ld appear to have been m ore concerned w ith
the arts o f official conviction (architecture and city planning) and
econom ic utility (exportable ceramics, textiles and carpets) than
w ith the far m o re private and personal a rt o f the precious b o o k .” 12
N evertheless, ‘Abbäs I’s patronage o f artists was on an extensive
scale, and he seems to have had a w arm h u m an relationship w ith
his artists w hich was typical o f the m an. O n one occasion, Rizä
painted a p o rtrait w hich m oved the Shäh so m uch that he kissed
the artist’s h a n d .13 O n other occasions, the Shäh is said to have
held the candle w hile his favourite calligrapher ‘A ll Rizä was at
w o r k ;14 ‘A ll Rizä’s superb calligraphy adorns the entrance portal
o f the M asjid-i Shäh at Isfahän, the M asjid-i Shaykh L u tf Alläh
and the d om e over the tom b in the shrine o f the Im äm Rizä at
M ashhad.
D u rin g the reign o f ‘Abbäs I, at least tw o divergent styles o f
painting em erged. O n the one hand, Rizä ‘A bbâsï crow ned the
achievem ents o f his predecessors in the art o f m anuscript
illustration, and m ade “ a full, final sta te m en t” in this genre o f
paintings.15 O n the other, the aggressive and irascible genius
Sâdiqï B eg Afshär, w ho rose to the high position o f director o f
the royal library, displayed in his paintings an astonishing realism
w hich m ark ed a new departure in Safavid art and presaged the
increased realism o f the late seventeenth and eighteenth centuries.
His character is w ell told by the Safavid poet G h u rü rî and
illustrated b y an anecdote recorded by A n th o n y W elch:
I wrote a qastdah in praise o f Sâdiqï and went to recite it in a coffee house.
The qasïdah had not yet come to an end, when Sâdiqï seized it from
me and said, “ I don’t have the patience to listen to more than this!”
Getting up after a moment, he tossed down five tomans bound in a
Flowering of the arts under the Safavids 133
cloth, along with two pieces o f paper on which he had executed
black-line drawings. He gave them to me and said: “ Merchants buy
each page o f m y work for three tomans. They take them to Hindüstän.
D on’t sell them any cheaper!” Then he excused himself several times
and went out.16
A characteristic o f the great m ajority o f paintings p roduced in
the royal ateliers fro m the tim e o f ‘Abbas I onw ards is that they
are n o t designed as m anuscript illustrations b u t are single-page
paintings and draw ings, intended probably for inclusion in album s
belonging to m em bers o f the royal fam ily o r the nobility, or
possibly for sale to persons o f lo w er ra n k .17 A n o th er departure
is that these single-page paintings and draw ings are n o t necessarily
linked to traditional literary them es. B y 1596/7, w hen Sâdiqï B eg
Afshâr was dismissed fro m his position o f director o f the royal
library, Rizä ‘Abbas! had em erged as an innovative artist o f genius,
and he rapidly established h im self as a m aster o f the n o w preferred
single-page painting, ju st as form erly he had been an acknow ­
ledged m aster o f the m iniature. “ His w o rk revolves around the
idealized p o rtray al o f beautiful people, usually unidentified and
perhaps actually non-existent. T h e sem i-canonized secular content
o f traditional Iranian painting —based on the great them es o f the
Shähnämah, the Khamsah o f N izam i, the Haft Aurang o f Jam !, and
other w o rk s —was largely abandoned u n d er Shäh ‘A bbäs.” 18
O th e r artists, such as M Irzä ‘A ll and Shaykh M uham m ad,
follow ed his exam ple: “ elegant youths stand in wistful awareness
o f n o th in g at all, w hile other beautiful people graciously hold or
proffer delicate w ine cups and flasks. Couples em brace each other,
their feelings seem ingly turned less to w ard each other than coyly
to w ard adm iring connoisseurs” .19 T h e trend to w a rd the p roduc­
tion o f single-page paintings resulted in a relative paucity o f fine
Safavid m anuscripts in the early seventeenth century. A n thony
W elch suggests that the collectors o f these single-page paintings
w ere m em bers o f the aristocracy, b o th qizilbäsh and T äjlk, and
m em bers o f the new landed and m oneyed classes; he suggests
fu rth er that the aesthetic taste o f these new patrons o f the arts was
to som e extent at variance w ith that o f the artists’ royal patron,
Shäh ‘Abbäs I, and he sees this as an indication that ‘A bbäs I,
enthusiastic p ro m o te r o f the arts th o u g h he was, did n o t determ ine
the course o f the developm ent o f art in the w ay in w hich Shäh

9. Painting by Riza ‘Abbäsl, ca 1610-20


io. Riza ‘A bbisï: portrait by M u in Musavvir

T ahm äsp had determ ined it in the second and th ird quarters o f
the sixteenth century.20
As the seventeenth century w o re on, the strains o f sensuality
and eroticism w hich could be clearly perceived in the later w o rk
o f Rizä ‘Abbäs! w ere blatantly displayed in the w o rk o f his
Flowering of the arts under the Safavids 135
successors such as M uham m ad Q äsim , M ïr Afzal and M uTn
M usavvir. “ M u ‘in has left a n u m b er o f erotic pictures o f a type
unsuitable for public e x h ib itio n ” , state the authors o f Persian
Miniature Painting prim ly (w riting, it should be noted, in I 9 3 3 )-21
A n th o n y W elch is in no d o u b t that later Safavid p ainting is
decadent :
The sublety of Riza’s early work, still reminiscent o f the previous
generation of Safavi painters, was altered into surface values in his later
pages: curves are less volumetric; pigment is less rich; expressions
coarsen and become less winning. In the w ork o f his many students and
followers these trends are emphasized. There is a narrowing rather than
an expansion o f subject matter, which comes to rely heavily on images
o f external beauty —delicate young men and wistful young women
who seem to assume the role o f secular icons. Svelte in appearance but
vapid in content, they are the evident ideals of the new social order.
Where they are explicitly erotic, as they often are, their activity conveys
an unreal feeling, titillating rather than passionate. . .It is, largely, an
a-spiritual art, requiring not an eye searching for meaning but one
receptive to beauty.22

R ichard Ettinghausen argues on the other hand th at


the stylistic changes o f the period o f Shäh ‘Abbäs, and continued by
his successors, were not just signs o f decadence which indicated a rapid
artistic and technical decay o f Iranian sensibilities and capabilities.
Instead it appears that the interest in reality and the life o f ordinary
people as well as in space and movement actually represents a revolu­
tionary turn in the Iranian approach to the world. All o f a sudden the
old mold was broken and something new appeared which may have
been harsh and unbeautiful, but presented the world as it was, instead
o f an idealized concept o f the past.23

I suggest that b o th these jud g em en ts are aspects o f the total


picture. It seems to m e undeniable th at there is a fin de siècle quality
about som e o f the languorous y o u n g m en, languidly sniffing the
perfum e o f a flower, about w h o m W elch com plains. O n the other
hand, E ttinghausen is u ndoubtedly rig h t in insisting that an artistic
rev o lu tio n had taken place. Instead o f the conventional them es o f
heroes and lovers o f a legendary past, w e have a preoccupation
w ith reality, w ith the depiction o f ordinary m en and w o m en as
they are. E ttinghausen lists som e o f them : “ a kneeling cloth
m erchant offering his m erchandise to a custom er ; . . . a m iddle-
aged m an scratching his bald pate ju st after having taken o ff his
13*5 Iran under the Sajavids
volum inous tu rb a n ” . E ven w hen the them e is traditional, its
treatm ent is n o w realistic. T he Shïrïn discovered w hile bathing
by K husraw , a hackneyed them e i f ever there was one, has no
“ delicate, ethereal b o d y ” but is an “ earthy, m ore ord in ary figure
p ro b ab ly similar to the fem ale persons w ith w hich the painter,
R izä-i 'A bbäsl, was fam iliar” fro m the w o m e n ’s quarters o f his
o w n h o m e.24 Sim ilarly, E ttinghausen sees the frank treatm ent o f
sexual them es as “ reflections o f ordinary interhum an relation­
ships” , again representing a com plete break w ith past tradition
in w hich relations betw een the sexes w ere usually interpreted
allegorically in term s o f the m ystical longing o f the lover for the
divine B eloved.25 As fo r the foppish young m en, they m ay well
have been, he suggests, “ p in -u p b o y s ” for hom osexuals.26

CARPETS

W h en the exquisite sense o f colour and design w hich had been


developed by the various categories o f artists involved w ith the
art o f the book was transferred to the realm o f the applied arts,
to the w eaving o f textiles and the m aking o f carpets, the results
w ere breathtaking. A lthough the m aking o f carpets is o f ancient
provenance in Iran, it was the Safavids w ho elevated a cottage-
industry to an activity on a national scale and one w hich form ed
an im p o rtan t part o f the econom y. T h e first actual carpet-factory
was probably constructed at Isfahän during the reign o f Shäh
'A bbäs the G reat (1588—1629).
T he origin o f the Persian carpet industry as w e k n o w it today
is the tribal rug, w oven b y the w o m en and children o f the
sem i-nom adic tribes, using the w ool fro m their o w n flocks and
natural dyes. T he tribal rugs w ere usually in bright, gay colours,
w ith bold, fairly simple designs. T h ey w ere (and are) highly
individualistic, frequently irregular in shape, and characterised
by colour changes in the w o o l caused b y the use o f different
dye batches. Shäh T ahm äsp was keenly interested in the carpet
industry, and raised it to the status o f an art. It is well k n o w n that
he had special carpets m ade and donated to the Süleym äniyye
M osque in Istanbul, and he is said to have designed som e carpets
him self; this w o u ld indeed n o t be surprising in view o f his early
artistic training noted above. A. U p h am Pope has pointed o u t the
close identification in Safavid tim es o f artists and rug designers,
Flowering of the arts under the Safavids 137
and has m entioned the nam es o f three o f the m ost em inent in this
connection: B ihzad (died ca 1535/6), Sultan M uham m ad (died ca
1543) and Sayyid ‘AIL
T he continuing prestige o f Persian carpets derives in p art from
their superior quality and in part from their perfection o f colour
and design. T he pred o m in an t colours are blues (indigo and azure),
reds (crim son and rust) and yellow s; brow ns and greens are less
co m m o n ly used. T he pile is o f w ool, and b o th w ool and cotton
are used for the w arp and weft. In the finest antique carpets, the
pile is o f silk, som etim es w ith a gold or silver thread interw oven,
and occasionally the w arp and w eft are o f silk also. Designs are
p red o m in an tly floral or geom etrical, although hum an and anim al
figures appear in som e carpets, especially in the type k n o w n as
“ h u n tin g carpets” . A large central m edallion appears in m any
designs, and all Persian carpets have a border, w hich m ay consist
o f a n u m b er o f parallel bands; often these bands contain a m o tif
o f leaves or blossoms, in m any cases in a conventionalised and
virtually geom etric form . Persian carpets w ere in great dem and
in Europe, and their presence in the hom es o f w ealthy seventeenth-
century burghers is faithfully recorded in the paintings o f Rubens,
V an D yck, B reughel and others.
Since carpets, unlike m etalw ork and ceramics, are by their very
nature perishable, the m useum s o f the w o rld have no exam ples
o f Persian carpets dating from before the sixteenth century.
A m o n g the earliest extant exam ples are the fam ous A rdabïl carpet,
one o f the greatest treasures o f the V ictoria and A lbert M useum
in L ondon, dated 942 (1535/6), that is, tw elve years after the
accession o f Shäh T ahm äsp, and the even earlier M ilan H unting
C arpet dated 929 (1522/3), in the closing years o f the reign o f
T ahm äsp’s father, IsmäTl I. T he A rdabïl carpet presently in the
V ictoria and A lbert M useum in L ondon is one o f a pair o f carpets
w oven in Käshän and com m issioned by Shäh T ahm äsp as a gift
to the shrine o f his ancestors at A rdabïl. E very feature o f the
A rdabïl carpet is a m asterpiece o f the carpet-w eaver’s art. It
belongs to the traditional category o f m edallion carpets, and in
the m edallion
three successive orders o f pattem, three different characters o f movement
and colour are carried out with perfect consistency and appropriateness.
In the centre is a little green flower-enwreathed pool on which float
lotus blossoms. Paired arabesques formed in a pattern o f great quatrefoils
138 Iran under the Sajavids
extend this central m otif into what is in essence a shadowed quatrefoil
medallion, which fits into the outer lobes o f the medallion. Jn counter
movement playing over the same space are formal cloudbands, similarly
arranged on the same axes. These cloudbands are in a lighter blue and
white, and so much nearer in value to the ground that they are far less
conspicuous than the arabesques and quietly take their place in the
second order. The third pattern consists of delicate little vines and
blossoms. The patterning o f the field is beyond praise and beyond
analysis. The ground is a rich lustrous indigo blue with a slightly
fluctuating tonality that sheds an elusive glow over the whole com­
position. A number o f vine systems, each following its own principles,
cross and recross, interweaving and colliding. Owing to the complexity
and mutual interdependence o f the multiple stem systems, the blossoms
seem strewn with a random and lavish hand, giving rise to the happiest
effect o f profusion ; yet actually there is a surprisingly limited number,
and the control of their positions by logical stem arrangements prevents
any disorder.27

T h e equally fam ous M ilan carpet is a m agnificent exam ple o f


an o th er m ajor category o f Persian carpets, the h unting carpet. T he
nisba2S o f the m aster w eaver, G hiyâth al-D ïn Jâm ï, indicates that
he cam e from Jam in Khuräsän. Since there are virtually no
K hurasan! features in the carpet, A. U p h a m Pope surmises, no
d o u b t correctly, that G hiyâth al-D ïn o r his father “ was probably
one o f the group o f superior artists w h o left Khuräsän at the
beginning o f the sixteenth century to profit by the new and
exciting opportunities opened up by the Safavid renaissance, ju st
beginning at the court o f Shäh Ism äTl” at T abriz.29 “ T he carpet
m akes an im m ediate im pression o f grandeur and b eauty.” 30 T he
central m edallion, scarlet in colour, is covered w ith intricate
designs o f lotus buds, blossoms, leaves and pale blue Chinese
clouds. “ T he g ro u n d o f the m ain field is a very deep lustrous
indigo blue,” and is covered w ith a n u m b er o f exceptionally rich
flow er designs. A gainst this variegated background, “ huntsm en
on red or w hite horses dash furiously about, hotly engaged in the
final kill o f a great h u n t, w hile m ost o f the co m m o n anim als o f
N o rth e rn Persia, vividly and naturalistically draw n, in num ber
and variety n o t equalled in any other carpet, scurry hither and
th ith er in confused alarms o f struggle and o f flig h t” .31 T he
n u m b er o f different colours used in the M ilan carpet, approxi­
m ately tw enty, is greater than is used in any oth er early O riental
ru g .32
Flowering of the arts under the Safavids 139
As n oted earlier, it was Shäh ‘Abbas I w ho raised carpet-w eaving
to the status o f a national industry by establishing carpet-factories
at Isfahan, Käshän and elsewhere. Rugs w oven w ith silk and gold
w ere w oven at Käshän, and at Isfahän w ere m ade n o t only the
sum ptuous carpets com m issioned by the shahs, but carpets w o v en
to the o rd er o f private persons by the m aster weavers o f the royal
w orkshops. M any o f these carpets w ere m ade for export, and w e
are fo rtu n ate in having specific details o f one such ex p o rt order
placed by the K ing o f Poland, Sigism und III Vasa (1587—1632),
w hose reign coincided alm ost exactly w ith that o f Shäh ‘Abbäs
I. In 1601, Sigism und sent his “ trusted co u rt pu rv ey o r, the
A rm enian m erchant Sefer M uratow icz, from W arsaw to Persia,
w ith instructions to order several rugs for the king and to
superintend their w eaving personally. T he A rm enian fam ily o f
M u rato w icz had, tw o generations previously, obtained Polish
citizenship for the purpose o f transacting such business.” 33 M u rat­
ow icz w en t to Käshän and placed his order, and was received
in audience b y ‘Abbäs I, to w h o m he explained that he was n o t
an am bassador, b u t only “ a trading m a n ” . Subsequently, K ing
Sigism und gave som e o f the Persian carpets to his daughter as part
o f her d o w ry w hen she m arried the E lector Palatine o f the Rhine
in 1642. Perhaps K ing Sigism und had n o t been am used by the
liberties taken by the Persian w eavers w ith the Polish royal coat
o f arm s, w h ich he w ished to have w oven into the design:
the crown above the cartouche has been enriched by details unknown
in the West, so that the leaves and balls on its circlet remind us o f Eastern
vessels. The heraldic eagle itself has its head turned to the right instead
o f to the left, the feathers o f its wings and tail, which ought to be pure
white, are mixed with black and yellow, the feet are blue instead o f
red, while the heraldic “ sheaf” o f the Vasas has assumed the form o f
a bluish flower resembling a stylized lily.34

TEXTILES

Like carpet-m aking, the w eaving o f textiles is o f ancient origin


in Iran. W e possess specimens o f Sasanid w eaving w hich show
that the w o rk o f that period was brilliant b o th in design and
w orkm anship. Silks and brocades w ere com m on, and the elab­
orate anim al m otifs developed by the Sasanids w ere later copied
by the B yzantines and in countries as far afield as C hina and
140 Iran under the Sajavids
G erm any. N e w designs, m aking use o f arabesques and floral
m otifs and in m any cases show ing traces o f Chinese influence,
reached Iran in the w ake o f the M ongol invasions o f the thirteenth
century. As in carpet-m aking, how ever, the Safavid period
represents the h ig h -p o in t in textiles also. T h e prosperity o f Iran
u n d er the Safavids stim ulated internal dem and, and
the sumptuous apparel and elaborate pavilions with rich hangings
excited the admiration o f travellers who visited the Persian court, and
a taste for Persian luxury articles arose in Renaissance Europe and in
Russia. The skilful use of complicated weaves, the combination of
brilliant colours in variegated designs, and an apparently unfailing
inventiveness in the use of arabesque and floral ornament, enabled the
Persian to produce textiles o f a unique richness and variety.35
As in the case o f carpets, it was Shäh ‘Abbäs I, w ith his overriding
interest in trade, w ho developed the textile industry to an
astonishing degree. Krusinski, in his account entitled “ C oncerning
the raim ent and w ardrobe o f the royal Persian c o u rt,” says that
ir . Length o f woven polychrom e velvet, early 17th century

■JR
f. ■*

0 Ml

WË0M «S3, .i
¥ &
s *
A
/ \\
WÊiÊmÈÈm
..V-* .. % .. y Vat-
. V.H , I jf
•* ■ 1,1

' I f .
* %#

V
A-

J» I 4 -
y /'■ . ï
4 j< .! * H
</
*
:
,.J
§ ■> ’
... ^ -

$ )
Flowering of the arts under the Safavids 141
the foresight o f Shäh ‘Abbäs the Great caused numerous and manifold
factories to be established in the provinces of Shlrvän, Qarä-bägh, Gflän,
Käshän, Mashhad, Astaräbäd, as well as in the capital Isfahän itself, in
which, under a strict supervision o f overseers, silk textiles and sashes
[turbans], as well for common use as royal ones. . .are woven in a
magnificent and wonderful way, while rugs and all kinds o f woven
fabrics are constantly made for the royal court.
In this account, Krusinski does n o t m ention one o f the principal
textile centres, Y azd; there w ere also o th er subsidiary centres o f
the industry at Rasht, A rdistän, Säva and K irm än. Krusinski adds
that, in order to preserve the “ specific characteristics o f artistic
w eaving o f each lo cality ” , the Shäh gave orders that each factory
should “ w eave in its o w n m a n n e r” .36 A significant p ro p o rtio n
o f textile p ro d u ction was for e x p o rt:
those factories not only produce what is necessary for the court and the
courtiers with small expense to the Treasury, beyond the cost o f the
silver thread, but they also enrich not a little the royal Treasury, for
the more precious silk weavings and the textiles that are enriched with
gold and silver threads are sent with government salesmen for sale to
Europe and even more to India by whole shiploads.37
In addition to producing w oven fabrics, brocades and velvets
o f the finest quality, Safavid craftsm en also excelled in em broidery
and printed cottons (<qalam-kär) w hich w ere block p rinted in an
infinite variety o f designs. A t Isfahan, the textile industry was on
a huge scale. In the bazaars, there are said to have been stalls for
25,000 w orkers, and “ the chief o f the textile guild was one o f the
m ost pow erful m en in the country. Even the g overnor feared
h im .” T he court loom s are said to have covered the w hole
distance betw een the M aydän and the C hihil Sutün, a distance
o f about a quarter o f a m ile.38 As in the earlier Safavid period,
leading artists such as Rizä ‘Abbäsi placed their designs at the
disposal o f the textile-w eavers. “ T he increasing anthropocentric
interest o f the tim e w hich saw the beginning o f individual p o r­
tra itu re ” 39 m eant that, instead o f the small and rather incidental
figures on earlier textiles, m ore and m o re one found hangings on
w hich the design o f a hum an figure w o u ld take up a w hole panel.
A lth o u g h some experts consider that the velvets and other
textiles o f the period o f ‘Abbäs I do n o t quite m easure up in
quality to the productions o f the earlier Safavid period, there is
no d ou b t th at the range o f designs and colours o f the textiles o f
‘Abbas Ts period is infinitely greater. In addition to all the usual
12. Kâshan
e r.-
144 Iran under the Safapids
colours, there is “ a w ide g am u t o f delicate greys, m auves, violets,
and aubergine [sic] so num erous that the very inventory o f names
is exhausted. T he colour com positions are pro p o rtio n ately varied
and ingenious, and the pattern m akers had at their com m and
the limitless resources o f the gardens o f Isfahan and her wide,
flow er-spangled m eadow s.” 40 Indeed, m otifs from the anim al
and floral w orld are com m on: leopards, gazelles and hares
abound, and the p arro t is the com m onest b ird ; o f flowers, the
tulip, rose, hyacinth and iris appear m ost frequently, bu t m any
other varieties w ere used by the w e a v e r s - “ a m ore extensive
array than has ever been depicted in any oth er textile a r t ” .41 It
is n o t surprising th at there was a brisk m arket in Europe for
Persian velvets, silks, damasks, satins, taffetas. T he Yazd brocades
in particular m ade use o f the ubiquitous buta (the so-called pear
or palm -leaf design). W h en one adds to this bew ildering array o f
textiles the m any types o f em broidered fabrics, one can assert
positively that textiles o f the Safavid period have never been
surpassed in design and technique.

CERAMICS

Persian p o ttery has strongly influenced p o ttery in b o th East and


W est and, in the general history o f ceramics, stands second only
to the p o ttery o f C hina. W hile Persian p ottery reached its peak
during the Seljuq and M ongol periods (tw elfth to fourteenth
centuries), the w o rk o f Safavid potters was o f high standard, and
their ceramic tiles are unsurpassed. T he Persian w o rd for faience
tile, kâshï, is derived fro m the nam e o f the city o f K ashin, w hich
since early Islamic tim es was renow ned as a centre o f the ceramics
industry. B y Safavid times, Isfahan and M ashhad had also becom e
m ajor centres o f the industry, and a renaissance o f the ceram ic art
was u nder w ay. Safavid potters did n o t slavishly copy the patterns
and styles o f earlier periods, b u t developed n e w types o f ceramics
and displayed b o th im agination and invention. “ Perhaps the m ost
distinguished o f the n ew po tteries” was
a group o f vessels of a particularly beautiful shade o f blue, with designs
o f great elegance and simplicity reserved in a perfect milk white. The
ornaments of arabesques o f purest type o f stellate medallions are drawn
with remarkable precision and elegance. The mildness o f the tones, the
simplicity o f colour and drawing and the quiet glaze give them a high
quality o f dignity.42
Flowering o f the arts under the Safavids 145
T here was also “ an interesting developm ent o f certain highly-
glazed green wares, principally bottles and flasks, w ith relief
figures, frequently in E uropean co stu m e” . “ A nother large class
o f wares o f w hich only a few exam ples have survived in g ood
condition has a rich foliage decoration in light blue and rose on
a w hite ground. This style was carried into a great variety o f
wares, plates, bow ls, flasks, pitchers.”43 Safavid potters achieved
striking effects w ith quiet colours and pastel shades: light slate
colour; greens, m odulated th ro u g h a w ide variety o f shades to
a yellow ish cast, or from deep em erald to pale w hitish green;
blues, in addition to the traditional deeper shades o f lapis lazuli,
cobalt and turquoise, a w hole range o f pastel shades such as
p o w d er blues, sky blue, light grey blues and lavender. T he potters
o f Isfahan w ere especially fond o f yellow , and the flasks and jars
w hich they p roduced ranged in colour from deep saffron to a light
lem on yellow .44
T he m ost significant fact about the history o f ceramics during
the Safavid period is the large-scale interchange o f techniques and
designs betw een Iran and C hina w hich took place at that tim e.
P rio r to the fifteenth century at the earliest, “ the Iranian potters
apparently rem ained unaffected by the Chinese im ports o f blue
and w h ite ” .45 Shäh ‘Abbäs I, w h o adopted a pragm atic approach
to the ceramics industry as to everything else to w hich he set his
hand,
could see no reason why Europeans should buy all o f their porcelain
in China when it could with a little effort be supplied from Persia, and
thousands o f miles o f transit and time thereby saved. To assist the
development o f a ceramic style which could take advantage of the
Chinese vogue in Europe, he had three hundred Chinese potters and
their families brought to Persia and settled there. They seem to have
been established principally at Isfahan. Some o f the characteristic
Chinese formulae were maintained for a long time, but the Persians,
as usual, soon contributed some o f their own stock of decorative ideas,
and little by little these porcelains took on more and more a Persian
character.46

T h e p ro d u ct o f this Irano-C hinese co-operation was a distinctive


blue underglaze-painted w hite w are, o f a pseudo-porcellanous
quality, im itating the Chinese blue-and-w hite o f the M ing
period.47 G enuine Chinese porcelain had been highly prized in
Iran for centuries, and had been assiduously collected by rulers
in C entral and W estern Asia. T he fam ous collection donated to
13- Blue-and-white porcelain plate, Iran, 16th century

the Safavid shrine at A rdabîl b y Shäh ‘Abbäs I in 1611 consisted


o f over 1,000 pieces, w hich had probably found their w ay to
Iran over a period o f tw o and a h a lf centuries.48
T he m anufacture o f Chinese porcelain in Iran itself was well
established by the early sixteenth century. O learius reports that
tw o Chinese m erchants had a shop for selling porcelains at A rdabîl
at that period, and m any Persian potters tried to im itate it, but
w ith indifferent success until ‘Abbäs I im p o rted the Chinese
experts m entioned above. U n d er their tutelage, the Persian
blue-and-w hite w are was accepted on som ething like equality in
E urope w ith the Chinese originals, w hich they greatly resembled.
“ T he blue o f the Persian blue-and-w hite is often o f fine quality,
and even on the com m on specimens it is in no w ay inferior to
Flowering of the arts under the Safavids H7

the Chinese. It is slightly purplish in tone, resem bling in this


quality the M oh am m edan blue o f the M ing p e rio d ” .49 Som etim es
the Persian and Chinese styles w ere blended in the Persian
b lu e-an d -w h ite w are; Pope m entions a plate at the V ictoria and
A lbert M useum on w hich “ a typical Chinese landscape is
em bellished w ith exaggerated leopards in the Persian m a n n e r” .
This w are was m ade in m any parts o f the c o u n try : Shiraz,
M ashhad, Y azd, K irm än and Z arand, and the earliest piece
recorded b y P ope is dated 1616.50 In 1682, the English East India
C o m p an y regarded M ashhad and K irm än as the tw o places in
Iran w here really good im itations o f Chinese porcelain could be
obtained.51
A lth o u g h the blue-and-w hite w are is the m ost fam ous type o f
Safavid p o ttery , there w ere m an y others equally fine. Examples
o f several types w ere found b y the Russians in the late nineteenth
century at the rem ote m ountain village o f K ubachi in D äghistän.
Since the D äghistän! tribesm en, like m any oth er m ontagnards,
m ade a living b y raiding caravans, and never had been potters,
scholars fo r long speculated h o w such a large collection o f fine
p o ttery cam e to be there. T he answ er seems to be that the p ottery
was used as a b arter co m m o d ity by the Safavids in retu rn for the

14. C ity gate o f Shiraz


148 Iran under the Sajavids
superior quality knives and daggers m ade at K ubachi, T he m ain
types o f p o ttery found at K ubachi, described in detail by Pope,
are a black-painted w are w ith either a turquoise o r green glaze,
and a polychrom e underglaze-painted ware. T he origin o f the
fo rm er type is a m ystery, since n o th in g like it has been found in
central Iran, yet the designs are unm istakably Safavid; Pope
suggests T abriz as a possibility. T he latter type m ay have been
m anufactured at Säva, since the w ares discovered there, though
o f inferior quality, strongly resemble it.52 U nderglaze-painted
w are was, o f course, m anufactured in m any places in Iran during
the Safavid period, as was lustre-painted w are; there was also a
revival in Safavid times o f the celebrated celadon w are, again
originally a copy o f the Chinese w are w hich had been k n o w n in
the W est since the n in th century. M onochrom e relief w are, often
o f superb quality; m onochrom e incised w are, m aking use o f
m o n o ch rom e glazes in colours such as m elon green, lavender and
p o w d er blue, w hich w ere developed in Iran under the tutelage
o f the Chinese m asters im ported by Shah ‘Abbas I; the w hite
pseudo-porcelain k n o w n as “ G om b ro o n w a re ” b u t probably
m anufactured at N ä ’In; and a large range o f local wares such as
the sixteenth-century turquoise and cobalt V arâm ïn w are, all
contributed to the alm ost infinite variety o f Safavid p o tte ry .53
I f the w ares o f Safavid potters, despite their great variety and
beauty, are held to fall ju st short o f the finest products o f the Seljuq
and M o ngol periods, in the other m ajor branch o f the p o tte r’s art,
the m anufacture o f faience tiles, Safavid potters w ere unsurpassed.
These tiles w ere o f tw o m ain types: polychrom e (.haft-rang) w hole
tiles used in the w all revetm ents o f mosques, madrasas and other
buildings; and m osaic (mtfarraq) tiles in w hich the design was
painstakingly assembled from individually fashioned pieces cut
fro m w hole tiles o f the required colour; mosaic tile was used
particularly in calligraphic decoration, the interior o f dom es, and
so on.
T h e haft-rang tiles m easure approxim ately 16.51 centim etres
square, and consisted o f pure clay w ith a small adm ixture o f sand.
T he tiles w ere glazed w ith a m ixture o f pulverised w hite stones
and sodium carbonate, fired, and trim m ed at the edges to ensure
a perfect jo in t. T he design was then stencilled on to the tile, and
the m aster p otter applied the pigm ents. A ccording to one
tradition the “ seven co lo u rs” from w hich the haft-rang tiles
Flowering of the arts under the Safavids 149
derived their nam e w ere black, b ro w n , red, yellow , w hite, cobalt
blue and turquoise; another tradition gives yellow , blue, orange,
red, violet, green and indigo. T he fact that the colours o f Persian
ceram ic tiles have resisted the fierce Persian sun for centuries
w ith o u t fading is due in part to the skill used in the glazing and
firing processes, b u t also to the use o f only m ineral pigm ents.
V arious blues w ere obtained fro m cobalt oxide; black fro m
m anganese and b ro w n from m anganese m ixed w ith lead oxide;
turquoise and green from copper oxide; yellow fro m lead oxide.
M osaic w o rk was built up in fram es o f the required shape (flat,
concave, convex), w ith the glazed surface face dow nw ards; w hen
the panel was com plete, liquid plaster was poured over the back
to b o n d all the individual pieces.54

METALWORK

In the realm o f intellectual activity, the w hole field o f Safavid


literature, including p oetry and historiography, and the rich and
im p o rtan t o u tp u t o f the Isfahan school o f philosophy, for a variety
o f reasons w hich do n o t redound to the credit o f either Iranian
or W estern scholarship, has been ignored until very recent times.
Safavid arts and crafts and architecture have fared better, b u t even
here there is a glaring omission —m etalw ork —and this despite the
fact there w ere significant innovations in Safavid m etalw ork.
“ T he history o f Iranian m etalw ork has yet to be w ritte n . . .b u t
no period has been so blatantly neglected as the Safavid period
and the h a lf century o f T im u rid rule d uring w hich the foundations
o f m uch o f Safavid art w ere laid.” 55 A. S. M elikian-Shirvani,
from w hose w o rk this quotation was taken, is the first person
either to attem p t a com prehensive study o f Safavid m etalw o rk
o r to relate it to the tradition o f the preceding period.
It was n o t until 1939, w hen A. U p h a m Pope published the
m o n u m en tal Survey o f Persian A rt, that any substantial b o d y o f
Safavid m etalw ork had appeared in any publication. T here was
then a gap o f over fo rty years before another group o f bronze
and tinned copper vessels appeared in A. S. M elikian-Shirvani’s
Le Bronze iranien (1973). K. A. C. Cresw ell, in his A Bibliography
o f the Architecture, Arts and Crafts o f Islam, published in 1961, listed
only one article on a specifically Safavid subject.56 In the course
o f his research to date, A. S. M elikian-Shirvani has reached three
15- Bronze candlestick, late 16th century

m ain conclusions regarding Safavid m etalw ork: first, it represents


a continuation o f the T im urid, and especially Khuräsäni, tradition ;
second, in the tim e o f Shäh ‘Abbäs I, there w ere tw o distinct
schools o f m etalw ork in Iran - one in Khuräsän, and the other in
Ä zarbäyjän; third, b oth Sufi and ShT‘T tendencies can be detected
in Safavid production, and the Khuräsän! school had a “ trem en­
dous and unsuspected im pact on the classical school o f w estern
Ira n ” .57 In this connection, it is possible that m etalw orkers from
Khuräsän m igrated w estw ards to the Safavid capital at T abriz ju st
Flowering of the arts under the Safavids 151

as did artists and other craftsmen skilled in various aspects of the


art of the book.
Safavid innovations in metalwork included
a type of tall octagonal torch-holder on a circular plinth, a new type
of ewer of Chinese inspiration, and the almost total disappearance of
Arabic inscriptions in favour of Persian poetry. Dense arabesques and
floral designs were more to contemporary taste than figure motifs,
perhaps because they provided a more low-key background for
inscriptions, which were allotted a greater surface area than ever before,
in bold zigzags and cartouches as well as the more conventional
encircling bands. A few pieces commissioned by Armenian patrons
juxtapose lines from Persian mystical poets with Armenian inscriptions.
Brass was apparently often tinned to simulate silver, though the most
luxurious metalwork. . .was inlaid with gold incrusted with jewels.58
In regard to the inscriptions on Safavid metal vessels, mystical
themes from the great classical poets such as Häfiz and Sa‘dT were
naturally favourites for wine bowls and other drinking vessels.
Mystical verses were also an obvious choice for torch-stands
and the like, since the metaphor of the moth hovering round
the candle, willing to achieve union with it at the cost of
being consumed in its flame, had long since become part of the
stereotyped and hackneyed imagery of mystical poets. The
“ revolutionary” trend in Safavid metalwork detected by A. S.
Melikian-Shirvani was the use of inscriptions of a ShT‘T nature:
with the emergence of Safavid power, inscriptions of a militantly Shi‘ite
content appeared on metalwork, for which I know no precedent. These
were of three categories: litanies calling God’s blessing on the names
of the twelve imams, or more often on the fourteen pure ones;59 a
prayer naming ‘AIT; and, less often, poems celebrating ‘AIT sometimes
with burning extremist accents.60
Some of these poems come perilously close to identifying ‘AIT
with God, and appear on vessels not only of the revolutionary
period of the establishment of the Safavid state, but even on a bowl
dated 1620/1, during the reign of Shäh ‘Abbäs I.61
A major branch of Safavid metalwork, of course, was the
production of arms and armour. Unfortunately, no detailed study
of Safavid arms and armour has yet been made, but we do know
that both were of a high standard. The finest steel for the making
of swords was imported from India, and Safavid swordsmiths
were particularly skilled in the art of damascening. Chardin
i6. Helmet of Shah ‘Abbäs I, 1625/6
Flowering of the arts under the Safavids 153
comments that “ Their Cimiters are very well Damask’d, and
exceed all that the Europeans can do.”62 In the seventeenth
century, the finest blades were made at Qum, but by the
eighteenth century those of Khurasan took pride of place. Few
of the names of the swordsmiths are known to us; Asad Allah
Isfahan!, who made several swords for Shäh ‘Abbas I, is an
exception. The sheaths and pommels of both swords and daggers
were highly decorated; some were enamelled, others (especially
ceremonial weapons and those designed as gifts) were jewelled.
In the sixteenth century, a new type of armour called chahär
a ma (four mirrors) appeared. It consisted of four iron plates joined
by hinges or straps with removable pins; two plates covered the
chest and back, and the other two were worn on either side with
an armhole cut out. Such armour was usually worn over a mail
shirt. The other components in a complete set of armour were
a pair of vambraces (bäzüband), a circular steel shield (sipar), and
a helmet (khüd). Safavid helmets were usually conical pointed
casques. The helmet and vambrace of Shäh ‘Abbäs I are in the
British Museum; the helmet is dated 1035 (1625/6), and is
decorated with verses from the Büstän of Sa‘dl. “ The surface of
the bowl is yellow watered steel with burnished frames to the
diamond-shaped cartouche on four sides, each containing an
inscription in gold.”63 The central point of the helmet was usually
forged in one piece with the bowl, and into it was screwed a long
quadrangular spike. To the lower edge of the helmet was attached
the aventail or mail curtain, which sometimes reached to the
wearer’s shoulders. Double plume tubes were a characteristic
feature of Safavid helmets. The steel shields, which gradually
replaced the older cane shields as the use of firearms became
more common, naturally gave the metalworker great scope
for decoration. “ Real and false damascene in gold and silver,
chiselling, engraving, and piercing, and a wide variety of
contrasting colours were employed —ranging from straw to
black —for the watered surface of the steel.”64 In general, armour
was light and designed not to impede the movements of its
mounted wearer; the heavy armour of mediaeval European
knights was unknown in Iran. During the sixteenth century, horse
armour also seems to have been used.
7

“ Isfahan is h alf the w o rld ” —Shäh ‘Abbas’s


Isfahan

Unlike Shiraz, Isfahan has had no Häfiz to sing its praises, and the
people of Isfahan have an unenviable reputation among their
fellow-countrymen for stinginess and a lack of what Sir Winston
Churchill used to call “ intestinal fortitude”. Laurence Lockhart
pointed out that jealousy lay at the root of many of the satires
and attacks on Isfahânïs, and drew attention to the fact that the
fourteenth-century Muslim traveller, Ibn BattGta, who was a
Moor and therefore presumably impartial, gave quite a different
picture:1 “ their dominant qualities are bravery and pugnacity,
together with generosity”.2 At all events, Isfahânïs must be well
satisfied with the accolade bestowed by history on their city, for
nearly everyone who knows anything at all about Iran has heard
the jingle Isfahan nisf-i jahän: “ Isfahan is half the world” —the
poet wishing us to understand that paradise constitutes the other
half. This proud boast derives from the achievements of one man,
Shäh ‘Abbas the Great. As Wilfrid Blunt truly says: “ Isfahan is
Shäh ‘Abbäs’s memorial: Si monumentum requiris, circumspice.”3
Rarely in the course of history has an entire city been planned
or replanned at one time by a master mind. In recent times, Paris
was doubled in size by Baron Haussmann in the time of Napoleon
III; the Washington of L’Enfant is another example which springs
to mind; the Isfahän of Shäh ‘Abbäs I is a much earlier example.
“ In a real sense Safavid architecture begins in the reign of Shäh
‘Abbäs.”4
There were few novel elements in the architecture itself. The
originality of the urban planning of Shäh ‘Abbäs lay in the
boldness of its conception and in the colossal scope of the
programme, embracing the building of a great capital city “ with
avenues, palaces, public offices, mosques and madrasas, bazaars,
baths, forts and gardens”.5 The Shäh’s right-hand man in the

154
66Isfahan is half the world ” 155

work of planning this ambitious ensemble was that truly re­


markable man Shaykh Bahâ al-Dïn Muhammad ‘ÄmilT, known
as Shaykh Baha’i: eminent theologian, philosopher, Qur’än-
commentator, jurisprudent, astronomer, teacher, poet and en­
gineer, he was the very epitome of Safavid society of the time of
Shäh ‘Abbas the Great: urbane, sophisticated, learned and pious.
On his death on 30 August 1621, those nobles who were in the
capital
took up their station around the bier, and men of all classes vied with
one another for the honour of acting as pall-bearers. The throng in the
Maydän-i Naqsh-i Jahän was so great that, despite the size of the square,
men were pressed tightly against one another, and the pall-bearers could
only with difficulty make progress through the crowd.6

One of the chronograms devised to commemorate the date of his


death was particularly appropriate : “ Alas for the Exemplar of the
Âge!”
Isfahan is, of course, a city of ancient origin, but its greatness
dates from the year 1597/8, when Shäh ‘Abbas made it the capital
of the Safavid empire in place of Qazvln. Isfahän lay at the natural
geographical centre of an empire which now stretched from
Georgia to Afghänistän. Shäh ‘Abbäs I, by choosing Isfahän as his
new capital, at once made it easier to conduct operations against
the Özbegs on the north-east frontier and at the same time
demonstrated his confidence that that frontier would ultimately
be made secure. In addition, the more central location of Isfahän
enabled him to exert greater control over affairs in the Persian
Gulf, an important consideration in view of the great increase in
commercial and diplomatic activity in that area during his reign.
Isfahän, lying at an altitude of about 1,585 metres, is an oasis
of intense cultivation in the midst of a vast plain of almost
unrelieved aridity. Shäh ‘Abbäs and his master planner, Shaykh
Bahä’T, provided a sound agricultural basis for the new capital city
by laying out comprehensive systems of irrigation and commu­
nication, and by founding the thriving market town of Najafabäd,
15 miles west of Isfahän, to supply the city with food. The water
for irrigation was and still is supplied by the river aptly named
the Zäyanda-rüd, the “ river which gives life”, which rises in the
Zagros mountains and flows west-north-west to Isfahän. After
passing through the city, the river follows an easterly course until
156 Iran under the Safavids
it loses itself in the Gävkhäna swamp on the edge of the Great
Desert. Even in Safavid times, the flow of the Zäyanda-rüd was
not adequate to meet the needs of the new capital, and Shäh
‘Abbäs attempted to divert some of the waters of the Kührang
river in order to increase the flow of the Zäyanda-rüd. This
necessitated cutting through the mountainside separating the
headwaters of these two rivers, which rise on opposite sides of the
Zagros watershed at one of the highest points in that range, near
the Zarda-Küh (4,548 metres). This grandiose scheme, first
conceived by Shäh Tahmäsp, begun by ‘Abbäs I and continued
by his great-grandson ‘Abbäs II, was completed in 1953 by Sir
Alexander Gibb and Partners, who discovered that the alignment
of the trench dug by Shäh ‘Abbäs’s engineers was only slightly
off true.
The two key features of Shäh ‘Abbäs’s master plan for Isfahan
were the Chahär Bägh and the Maydän-i Naqsh-i Jahän. The
former, said to have taken its name from four vineyards which
the Shäh had to purchase in order to secure the right-of-way, was
an avenue of majestic proportions. Starting from a point near the
Chihil Sutün palace, the Chahär Bägh ran south for about a mile,
crossed the Zäyanda-rüd by the AllähverdT Khan bridge, and
continued south for another mile and a quarter to the huge
expanse of pleasure gardens known as HazärjarTb, where many
notables at court had their residences. Although on crown land,
these pleasure gardens were open to the public. The total length
of the Chahär Bägh was thus about miles, and its width in its
northern section was 48 metres to the flanking walls.
The second key feature of Shah ‘Abbas’s Isfahan was the huge
Maydän, approximately 507 metres in length and 158 metres in
width, which lay to the cast of the northern end of the Chahär
Bägh and at a slight angle to it. Donald Wilber does not see
anything peculiar in the fact that the axis of the Chahär Bägh is
not parallel with that of the Maydän. “ With the concentration
of architectural details and interest upon the interiors of mosques
and shrines which, in most cases, could not be circumambulated,
such devices as the opening of vistas, the climactic arrangement
of successive structures, and a studied relationship between
important structures located in the same general area were rarely
practiced.”7 This great Maydän, known as the Maydän-i Naqsh-i
Jahän (Exemplar of the World), was the place where monarch and
ij. Isfahän —plan of the Royal Square
]I
I

18. Isfahan —the Maydän

citizen met.8 All around the edge of the Maydän ran a water-
channel, 3^- metres wide and 2 metres deep. Along the channel,
a row of plane trees afforded shade for strollers. By day, the piazza
was often covered witji hucksters’ booths, and the merchants’
warehouses surrounding the Maydän were “ stored with all
Merchandizes, chiefly drugs, and to the place daily resort most
Nations, as English, Dutch, Portugals, Arabians, Turkes, Jewes,
Armenians, Muscovians, and Indians” .9 At night, the Maydän
was frequented by a teeming throng of mummers, jugglers,
puppet-players, acrobats, storytellers, dervishes and prostitutes.
From time to time, and especially during the great Iranian
national festival celebrating the New Year (Nawrüz), the gardens
flanking the Maydän were the site of the New Year’s levees held
by the Shäh. A contemporary chronicler describes such an
occasion in 1611 :
The Shah then ordered a great feast to be prepared in the Bägh-i Naqsh-i
Jahän to which all classes of society were invited: emirs, viziers,
moqarrabs of the court; people from various parts of the Shah’s
i6o Iran under the Safavids

19A. Isfahan —the Royal Mosque, main courtyard looking north

dominions who happened to be at court, merchants, and members of


craft guilds. Each group was allotted its own particular place in the park,
and gold tents and canopies of silk and Chinese brocade were set up.
Booths, embellished in various remarkable ways and illuminated with
lamps, were erected in front of each group. Pages plied the assembled
gathering with cheering draughts, and the merrymaking went on for
several days.10

The Maydän was also a polo ground (the marble goal-posts


erected by Shäh ‘Abbäs I still stand at either end of the Maydän),
and was used for other forms of sport as well, including the
archery competitions known as qabaq-andäzT, in which horsemen
at full gallop shot arrows at a gold cup (or a less valuable target)
placed at the top of a high wooden pole.
,vSjïs«>i

‘ - «« -É Saa^
19B. Isfahän-- the Royal Mosque, minarets and dome
162 Iran under the Safavids
An important feature of Shäh ‘Abbas’s urban planning was that
it did not involve the demolition of the old city; the new city
simply started where old Isfahan ended. “ The new plan was
realized on open ground (the royal garden and public lands) away
from the limitations and problems of the old city.”11 It was thus
possible for this royal exercise in town-planning to become a
reality in less than half a century. The magnificent old Masjid-i
JunTa, dating from Seljuq times, and the prosperous bazaars on
which the eleventh-century traveller and IsmäTlI missionary,
Näsir-i Khusraw, had commented so approvingly, were not only
left standing but were closely linked with the new city by the
Great Maydän, which stretched away directly from the main
entrance of the Qaysariyya, or Royal Bazaar. The theme of
commerce was carried into the Great Maydän itself by a two-
storey row of shops which surrounded the entire Maydän, the row
being broken only by the principal buildings fronting on the
Maydän: the Masjid-i Shaykh Lutf Alläh, the Masjid-i Shäh, or
Royal Mosque, and the ‘ÄlT Qäpü palace.
Two of the greatest masterpieces of Safavid architecture were
built during the reign of Shäh ‘Abbäs: the Masjid-i Shaykh Lutf
Alläh, situated on the east side of the Maydän, was begun in 1603
and completed in 1618. It was dedicated to the Shäh’s father-in-law,
who was reputed to be one of the most famous preachers of his
day. The Masjid-i Shäh, located at the south end of the Maydän,
is the second architectural masterpiece commissioned by Shäh
‘Abbäs; it was begun in 1611, but not completed until after the
death of Shäh ‘Abbäs in 1629. The two buildings differ both in
conception and in function. The Masjid-i Shäh was designed as
a public building, and as the Shäh’s “ affirmation of the dynasty’s
adherence to Shi‘ism”.12 Because of the Shäh’s desire to have the
building completed during his lifetime, short-cuts were taken in
the construction; for example, painted hafi-rangt (polychrome)
tiles were largely used in place of the more time-consuming
mosaic tiles. The Shäh had also ignored the warnings of the
architect Abu’l-Qäsim regarding the danger of subsidence in the
foundations, and pressed ahead with the construction ; the architect
subsequently proved to have been justified.13 Nevertheless, the
mosque complex, when completed, was spectacular in its impact.
The entrance ayvän (portal) is almost 27 metres high, the arch
framed by turquoise triple cable ornament and decorated with
“ Isfahän is half the world ” 163

rich stalactite tilework and the superb calligraphy of ‘AIT Rizä


‘Abbasï. Pope considered this portal “ one of the most beautiful
and imposing ever erected in Persia, indeed one of the most
dramatic and satisfying anywhere”.14
The shift and interplay between the sanctuary portal screen and the
dome endow it with a curious living quality and enhance the contrast,
which is such a necessary element in architecture. The rectangular screen
contradicts the hemisphere of the dome. The tall thin minarets cut
vertically across them both. Yet the contour of the arch answers to the
contour of the dome, and the half-dome of the portal repeats its
spherical shape.13

Passing through the entrance portal, one makes, almost without


realising it, the half-right turn which enables the main court
within, and hence the mihräb, or prayer-niche, to be aligned in
the direction of Mecca. L. V. Golombek has been disturbed by
what she calls “ this peculiar, apparently baseless, orientation”,
and has concluded that it was “ the pre-existing patterns of the
city that determined this choice”.16 Donald Wilber, however,
after pointing out that no pre-Safavid structures of any kind are
mentioned by Chardin within the entire area covered by royal
ensemble, suggests a reason for the “ apparently baseless” diver­
gence between the long axis of the Maydän and the Mecca-
orientation of the mihräb. “ Had these axes coincided,” he declares,
“ the dome over the sanctuary of the Masjid-i Shäh would have
been concealed from view by the towering entrance portal of the
mosque, except from a considerable distance to the north on the
maydän. The axial divergence results in the dome and its own
minarets being visible from anywhere in the maydän.”17
By contrast, the Masjid-i Shaykh Lutf Alläh was an oratory
designed for the Shäh’s private worship, and it was virtually
ignored by the European travellers who visited Isfahän during the
seventeenth century because they were unable to gain access to
the interior. Compared with the Masjid-i Shäh, its design is
simple, and consists only of a flattened dome resting on a square
dome chamber. There is no courtyard, there are no interior
ayvans. Yet in its construction the finest materials were used, and
the most talented craftsmen employed, and I know of no finer
example of the Persian Islamic genius than the interior of the
dome:
20. Isfahan —the Shaykh Lutf Allah Mosque

The dome is inset with a network of lemon-shaped compartments,


which increase in size as they descend from a formalised peacock at the
apex and are surrounded by plain bricks; each is filled with a foliage
pattern inlaid on plain stucco. The walls, bordered by broad white
inscriptions on dark blue, are similarly inlaid with twirling arabesques
“ Isfahän is half the world ” 165

or baroque squares on deep ochre stucco. The colours of all this inlay
are dark blue, light greenish-blue, and a tint of indefinite wealth like
wine. Each arch is framed in turquoise corkscrews. The mihräb in the
west wall is enamelled with tiny flowers on a deep blue meadow.
Each part of the design, each plane, each repetition, each separate
branch or blossom has its own sombre beauty. But the beauty of the
whole comes as you move. Again, the highlights are broken by the play
of glazed and unglazed surfaces ; so that with every step they rearrange
themselves in countless shining patterns; while even the pattern of light
through the thick window traceries is inconstant, owing to outer
traceries which are several feet away and double the variety of each
varying silhouette.
I have never encountered splendour of this kind before.18
The third of the principal buildings fronting on the Maydän
was the ‘AIT Qäpü, or Sublime Porte, which was “ at once a
lodging, a grandstand, and audience chamber, and a state gateway
leading to the Palace grounds”.19 Shäh ‘Abbäs developed and
extended an existing Timurid building and added to it three
additional storeys. The beauty of the ‘AIT Qäpü, dismissed con­
temptuously by Robert Byron as “ that brick boot-box”,20 lies
not so much in its exterior architecture, which is undistinguished,
as in its interior, in the charm of the small rooms designed for
informal gatherings, in the exquisite design and colour of the
frescoes etched in the stucco walls and ceilings and in the effects
of light and shade created by the delicate tracery of the windows.
The main feature of the ‘AIT Qäpü is the tälär, or covered balcony,
from which ‘Abbäs I and his successors used to watch games of
polo and other forms of entertainment in the Maydän.
At the north end of the Maydän, linking the new capital with
the old city, lay the Qaysariyya, or Royal Bazaar, of Isfahän. Over
the main entrance was located the naqqära-khäna, or musicians’
gallery, where music was played at sunrise and sunset whenever
the Shäh was in residence at Isfahän. To the right of the main gate
lay the Royal Mint. The bazaar itself consisted of endlessly
repeated groupings of hammäms (public baths), caravanserais,
mosques and madrasas (theological seminaries). The caravanserais
were the areas in which goods were received, weighed, assessed
and stored; adjacent to them were the timchas, or shopping
arcades, where goods were on display. In general each section of
the bazaar was devoted to a single trade, and each section was
virtually self-contained, having its own gates, its own security
166 Iran under the Safavids
arrangements and fire guards, and its own trade guild which
administered its own section of the bazaar and arbitrated in
disputes. Some of the bazaar mosques were simple and functional ;
others were exquisitely decorated masterpieces. The madrasas
usually followed the same chahär-ayvän (four-portal) plan as the
mosques and caravanserais; the arcaded sides of the madrasas
afforded shade, and pools of water in the central courtyard kept
the air cool. The bazaar covered a total area of about n |- square
miles.21 Fryer, who visited Isfahän in 1677, was tremendously
impressed by the whole scene in the Royal Bazaar, which he
termed “ the surprizingest piece of Greatness in Honour of
Commerce the whole world can boast of, our Burses being but
Snaps of Buildings to these famous Buzzars ”22 Linking the Great
Maydän and the Chahär Bägh avenue were extensive gardens at
the west end of which stood the Chihil Sutün palace, constructed
by Shäh ‘Abbäs I and completed in 1648 by his great-grandson
‘Abbäs IL Like the ‘Äll Qäpü, the Chihil Sutün has been
disparaged by both contemporary and recent European writers
and travellers. Stevens refers to the “ ungainly bulk of the Ali
Kapu” and to “ the quaint absurdity of the Chehel Situn”. “ It
seems almost incredible,” he says, “ that buüdings on the one hand
so perfectly proportioned [as the two great mosques] and on the
other hand so primitive should have been built at the same time
under the inspiration of the same monarch.”23
Such criticisms, it seems to me, in the first place fail to take
sufficient account of the appalling defacement and destruction of
Safavid monuments perpetrated during the Qäjär period, parti­
cularly during the governorship of the infamous Zill al-Sultän,
the son of Näsir al-DIn Shäh. For example, the twenty wooden
columns supporting the verandah were originally covered with
delicate faceted aîna-kân, or mirror-work. Again, the beautiful
Safavid murals in the great hall and other parts of the building
were obliterated by a layer of plaster on which Qäjär artists
superimposed their own inferior paintings. Curzon, who did
appreciate the extent of the damage done to the Chihil Sutün
during the Qäjär period, was not able to suppress his indignation.
Referring to the obliteration of the marble wainscoting and
mirror-work panels above it by a wash of pink paint, he exclaims
“ Had I caught the pagan, I would gladly have suffocated him in
a barrel of his own paint!”24
Secondly, criticisms of these two buildings are frequently based
on a misunderstanding of their function and also of the life-style
of Shäh ‘Abbäs I. Both buildings, for want of a better word, are
often referred to in English as “ palaces”, but this term automati­
cally conjures up something much more splendid and grandiose.
Neither building was the official residence of the king in the
European sense. The varied functions of the ‘Alï Qäpü have
already been mentioned ; the Chihil Sutün was the building where
the king gave formal audience to ambassadors, held levees and
gave state banquets. Both buildings are, in fact, not so much
palaces as kiosks or pavilions, and, in summer, they served as
“ open banqueting houses”.25 Compared to the massive palaces
of the Mogul emperors in India, they are insignificant, but Shäh
‘Abbäs I did not want buildings the mere size and magnificence
of which would overawe the people and cut him off from them.
His personal style of dress was simple and his style informal; he
eschewed excessive ceremony, but he appreciated the pleasures of
life: good food, good wine, good company, and he appreciated
them all the more in beautiful surroundings. The ‘ÄlT Qäpü and
the Chihil Sutün reflect these tastes. Building on the grand scale
was restricted to the glory of God, as is exemplified by the Masjid-i
Shäh, and his successors followed the pattern he had established.
22. Isfahan —the Madrasa-yi Mädar-i Shäh

The most imposing building erected in Isfahan by any of his


successors is the Madrasa-yi Mädar-i Shäh (Theological Seminary
of the Mother of the Shäh), built between the years 1706 and 1714
by Shäh Sultan Husayn.
Moving west from the Chihil Sutün, one reaches the northern
end of the Chahär Bägh. In Safavid times, both sides of the avenue
as far as the river, a distance of almost a mile, were lined with
gardens; on the east side lay the Nightingale Garden, the
Mulberry Garden and Garden of the Dervishes; on the west,
the Vineyard, the Throne Garden and the Octagonal Garden.
“ Isfahan is half the world ” 169

23. Isfahan —the Chahär Bägh


The lattice work walls of the gardens which bordered on the
Chahär Bägh gave views of the animated scene in the avenue to
those within the gardens, and glimpses of the gardens to those
promenading in the avenue. As Wilber observes, such a feature
was “ surely a far cry from the traditional house of the country
which presented a blank wall to the world and featured an
enclosed court”.26
In the gardens were situated residences for members of the court
and the haram, and pavilions which were sometimes placed at the
disposal of foreign ambassadors and other dignitaries. Some of
these pavilions were constructed during the time of Shäh ‘Abbäs,
others such as the famous Hasht Bihisht (Eight Paradises), at a later
date. Describing it, the usually sober Chardin indulges in flights
of fancy :
When one walks in this place expressly made for the delights of love,
and when one passes through all these cabinets and niches, one’s heart
is melted to such an extent that, to speak candidly, one always leaves
with a very ill grace. The climate without doubt contributes much
i7o Iran under the Safavids
towards exciting this amorous disposition ; but assuredly these places,
although in some respects little more than cardboard castles, are
nevertheless more smiling and agreeable than our most sumptuous
palaces.27
During the nineteenth century the philistine Zill al-Sultän stabled
his horses in the Hasht Bihisht and all but destroyed it, but it is
now being restored along with many other Safavid buildings in
Isfahän.
The Chahär Bägh, like the Great Maydän, was a meeting-place
and a centre of commercial and social life. Four parallel rows of
plane trees extended the whole length of the Chahär Bägh, both
north and south of the river, a distance of 2^ miles.
Water, conducted in stone channels, ran down the centre, falling in
miniature cascades from terrace to terrace, and was occasionally
collected in great square or octagonal basins, where cross roads cut the
avenue. On either side of the central channel was a row of chenärs
[plane-trees] and a paved pathway for pedestrians. Then occurred a
succession of open parterres, usually planted or sown. Next on either
side was a second row of chenärs, between which and the flanking walls
was a raised causeway for horsemen.28
Some of the pavilions flanking the avenue “ were places of public
resort and were used as coffee-houses, where, when the business
of the day was over, the good burghers of Isfahän assembled to
sip that beverage and to inhale their kalians [hookahs]”.29 The
nobility would sally forth in the evening to take the air. As Fryer
puts it: “ Night drawing on, all the Pride of Spahaun was met
in the Chaurbaug, and the Grandees were Airing themselves,
prancing about with their numerous Trains, striving to outvie
each other in Pomp and Generosity.”30
As one neared the river bank, one could see the quays lining
the banks, and further mansions belonging to the nobility, and
then one crossed the Zäyanda-rüd by the magnificent bridge
which bore the name of Allähverdi Khän, the Georgian ghulâm
who was appointed commander-in-chief of the Safavid armed
forces in 1598 and retained that post until his death in 1613. The
paved roadway of the bridge is 9 metres wide, and the length of
the bridge with its approaches is almost a quarter of a mile. On
either side of the bridge there is a covered arcade, 76 centimetres
wide; the inner wall of this arcade is pierced by frequent arches
.71 :

?y *
: V£ £

i f ÿ S 3 f ! | ÿ ^ '" '■
ïQ ifP
<#1111
■ •'• --. - >i %ill%%%\\KKi.y» W A ttM l
•j . ^

^ \ * 7- -o.:
.:*>
“.".V- v,
' - >««*.,
« fi? *,
< t* *‘
Ä i .N.1* % *- '? ■ ■ ‘,i- “ ’ • i f * « ? ' ^ Î T»'*17 'ÏS ' ' f t ^ c V ît.^ Ê * * * -SV V V T S

ri "'<'r-r f■','i'VÎ*>-■;i■•
rç fi
.

:“■
;^ "***4
i.i j • * ir à 5 H f/.,v

* ■ ■ *■■■ '' & 4M


> f~. -
fJT- -
24. Isfahän —the Mamän, Allâhverdï Khan and Hasanäbäd (Khväjü) bridges

giving access to the roadway, while the outer wall has some ninety
arches which give views of the river. The bridge has also an upper
and a lower promenade; the upper is reached by staircases in the
round towers at the corners of the bridge; the lower by other
staircases in the basements of the towers and in the main piers.
This lower promenade is a vaulted passage cut through the central
piers of the bridge and raised only slightly above the bed of the
river, which is crossed by stepping-stones set in the river-bed
between the piers. This bridge, constructed about 1620, is
popularly known as the Pul-i Sï-u-Sih, because the main arches
are thirty-three in number. “ One would hardly expect,” says
Curzon, “ to have to travel to Persia to see what may, in all
probability, be termed the stateliest bridge in the world.”31
Other travellers, however, have preferred the Khväjü bridge,
built half a mile downstream by Shäh ‘Abbäs II in 1660. The
Khväjü bridge, 140 metres long, is built on a dam of stone blocks.
Its construction follows the general pattern of the Allâhverdï Khän
bridge, but “ its peculiar charm depends upon the six semi-
octagonal pavilions”.32 These pavilions were originally decorated
with uplifting texts in prose and verse, and later with erotic
?

25- Isfahan —the Hasanabad bridge

paintings which scandalised Sir William Ouseley when he visited


Isfahän early in the nineteenth century. Whichever bridge appeals
more to one’s particular aesthetic taste, it is undeniable that both
are masterpieces of the bridge-building skill of Safavid engineers.
South of the Zäyanda-rüd the Chahär Bägh avenue, as mentioned
earlier, continued for another mile and a half to the royal gardens
of HazärjarTb.33 Like the upper Chahär Bägh, the lower avenue
was “ planted with rows of trees and adorned by channels filled
with water, that fell from tier to tier and at regular intervals
2

expanded into larger basins or pools. On either side were situated


the palaces and mansions of the princes or grandees.”34 The
HazärjarTb gardens at the end of the avenue were terraced, and
provided the two essential ingredients of a Persian garden: shade
and water. Tavernier, failing to understand the appeal of such
simple gardens to the traveller bemused by the heat, glare and dust
of the Persian plains, commented sourly on HazärjarTb as he did
on everything else in Isfahän: “ Si un Persan avoit veu ceux de
Versailles et d’autres maisons Royales, il ne seroit plus d’estime de
174 Iran under the Safavids
ce jardin de Hezardgerib.”35 But Herbert, though he must have
been equally familiar with European gardens, held a different
opinion :
The garden is called Nazar-jereeb [sic], ’tis a thousand paces from North
to South, and seven hundred broad. It hath varieties of fruités and
pleasant trees, and is watered with a streme cut through the Coronian
Mountainc, and is forceably brought hither, the first walke is set with
pipes of Lead and Brasse, through which the water is urged, and gives
varietie of pleasure.
From the entrance to the further end, is one continued open ally,
divided into nine ascents, each mounting higher by a foot then [sic]
other, the space twixt each ascent, is smooth and pleasant. In the midst
is a faire Tancke or pond of water, of twelve equall angles and rowes
set with pipes to spout the water.
At the entrance is a little (but wel-built) house of pleasure, the lower
rooms adorned with Chrystall water, immured with Tancks of rich
white Marble.
The Chambers above, are enricht with pictures, representing sports,
hawking, fishing, archery, wrastling, etc., other places in use very richly
ore-laid with Gold and Azure.
But that which is of most commendation is the prospect it enjoyes,
for by being seated so high, it ore-tops and gives the excellent view of
a great part of the Citie, which cannot be obtained elsewhere.36
South of the river, too, were situated various suburbs inhabited
mainly by non-Muslims. The most important of these was Julfa,
which lay immediately west of the Chahär Bägh along the
southern bank of the Zäyanda-rüd. Here, in 1604, Shäh ‘Abbäs
I settled several thousand Armenian families which he had
forcibly transferred from Julfa on the river Aras in Äzarbäyjän.
His purpose was to enlist the industrious and thrifty nature and
the commercial expertise of the Armenian merchants in the
service of the Safavid state. To compensate them for being
uprooted from their homes, Shäh ‘Abbäs granted the Armenians
special privileges. They were allowed to practise their Christian
religion without let or hindrance, and the Shäh even donated
funds for the decoration of St Joseph’s Cathedral, which was
constructed in 1605. By granting the Armenians the right to be
represented by a kaläntar (mayor) of their own nationality, the
Shäh made them virtually a self-governing community. Having
thus made provision for their spiritual and psychological well­
being, Shäh ‘Abbäs ensured the success of his principal objective,
“ Isfahän is half the world 99 175

that they should contribute significantly to the material prosperity


p f the realm, by making interest-free loans to the Armenian
merchants. In such a favourable climate, it is not surprising that
the Armenians flourished. Their merchants ranged the length and
breadth of Europe, bringing back to Iran such commodities as
items of haberdashery and hardware, small mirrors, enamelled
rings, artificial pearls, cochineal, watches and cloth from Holland
and England. Many merchants became extremely wealthy, and
the office of kaläntar of the Armenians was clearly a lucrative one,
for Tavernier mentions that the estate of one Khväja Petrus, who
held that office, included 40,000 tumäns in silver, not to mention
houses and country properties, jewels, gold and silver plate and
furniture.37 The Armenians were not confined to Julfa, but lived
also in other suburbs and in the city itself.
The principal other non-Muslim minorities in Safavid Isfahän
were the Indians, Jews and Zoroastrians. The last named lived in
a suburb south of the river known as Gabristän, or Place of the
Gabrs,38 situated downstream from Julfa. The great-grandson of
‘Abbäs the Great, ‘Abbäs II, cleared this quarter and constructed
there a haram complex which he named appropriately Sa‘ädatäbäd,
or Abode of Bliss. The Indians were not very numerous at Isfahän
during the time of ‘Abbäs I, but their numbers increased sub­
sequently. Known as “ Banians”, the Indians acted as brokers
for foreign traders and as moneylenders, and they were notorious
for charging exorbitant rates of interest. According to Tavernier,
‘Abbäs I did not allow Indian moneylenders to obtain a foothold
in Iran, and they took up residence in Iran only under his
successors Safi and ‘Abbäs II. Herbert, however, who was in
Isfahän in 1628, the year before the death of ‘Abbäs I, refers to
“ Bannyans, or Indyan Merchants” who, he says, “ are tawny in
complexion, are craftie, faire spoken, exquisite Merchants and
superstitious”.39 Like the members of the other religious minori­
ties resident at Isfahän, the Hindu Banians were granted freedom
of worship, though officials often took advantage of Hindu
sensibilities to extort sums of money in return for permitting
practices, such as suttee,40 which were repugnant to Muslims. Like
the Indians, the Jews acted as brokers, dealing particularly in drugs
and jewelry. They lived in their own separate quarter, but were
not very numerous.
Considerable numbers of Europeans also resided in Isfahän:
176 Iran under the Safavids
factors of the rival English and Dutch East India Companies;
religious of the various Catholic orders which were encouraged
by Shäh *Abbäs to open convents in Isfahän and minister to the
spiritual needs of Christian residents; craftsmen and artisans from
both Europe and Asia, including Swiss watchmakers and Chinese
potters.41 The Augustinians, Carmelites and Capuchins resided in
the city itself; the Jesuits and Dominicans in the suburb of Julfa.
Such was the Isfahän of Shäh the Great: a thriving and
strikingly beautiful metropolis, its streets and markets thronged
with Muslims, Christians, Zoroastrians and Hindus. It is no easy
task to try and form an accurate picture of the size of Isfahän or
estimate of its population. Chardin, on the whole the most
judicious observer, states that the circumference of the city was
24 miles, whereas Kaempfer and Struys both estimate it at 16
farsakhs, or approximately 60 miles. Chardin says that the city had
12 gates, 162 mosques, 48 madrasas, or theological seminaries,
1,802 caravanserais, 273 public baths and 12 cemeteries, and
declares that within 10 leagues (30 miles) of the city there were
1,500 villages; he estimates the population to be between 600,000
and 1,100,000. Chardin’s figures are probably more reliable than
those given by other European visitors, but, as Curzon justly
observes,
Nowhere have I been so bewildered at the confusing and contradictory
accounts of previous travellers as in their descriptions of the sights of
Isfahan. They differ irreconcilably in their orientation of buildings, in
their figures of dimensions, in the number of avenues, pillars, bridges,
arches etc. To correct or even to notice these countless inaccuracies
would be a futile task.42
With the exception of the dyspeptic Tavernier, however, most
European visitors found something to praise in Isfahan. Let
Chardin sum it all up : “ The beauty of Isfahan consists particularly
of a great number of magnificent palaces, gay and smiling houses,
spacious caravanserais, very fine bazaars and canals and streets
lined with plane trees. . . from whatever direction one looks at the
city it looks like a wood.”43
8

The social and econom ic structure o f


the Safavid state

i : T H E S T R U C T U R E OF S A F A V I D S O C I E T Y

Safavid society was pyramidal in shape. At the apex of the


pyramid was the shah, the just ruler surrounded by an aura of
beneficence which sheltered his subjects. The term dawlat, mean­
ing “ bliss”, “ felicity”, an abstract term just beginning in the
seventeenth century to be used in the concrete sense of “ the
state ”, reflected this view of the ruler. Pursuing the same idea, the
principal officers of the Safavid state were called arkän-i dawlat,
or the pillars which supported this regal canopy, and the vaztr,
the head of the bureaucracy, was given the title of i'timäd al-dawla,
the trusty support or prop of the state. The base of the pyamid
was the common people, the peasants in the rual areas, and the
artisans, shopkeepers and small merchants in the cities. Between
the shah and the common people stood the aristocracy, both
military and civil, and the multitude of religious officials of
differing status and function. Some of the latter, administering
large estates which had been bequeathed or donated for pious
purposes, made common cause with the lay landowning aristoc­
racy ; others, mindful of the historic role of the religious classes
as a buffer between the arbitrary power of the ruler and his
subjects, did their best to shield the ordinary people from
oppressive government on the part of both civil and military
officials. The degree of oppression and arbitrariness experienced
by the lower and middle classes was in inverse ratio to the strength
of the shah. As Sir John Malcolm saw clearly, “ No small
proportion of that security which the rest of the community
enjoy, may be referred to the danger in which those near to the
king continually stand; for, unless he be very weak or very unjust,
it is hazardous for any of his ministers, or courtiers, to commit
violence or injustice in his name.”1
177
26. Dress of the natives of Isfahan

The subject’s traditional right of the “ appeal to Caesar” was


an important safeguard for the people against bureaucratic op­
pression. This right, according to Malcolm, still obtained in the
nineteenth century: “ The principal check upon the conduct of
subordinate governors is an appeal to the throne, which those
whom they oppress can always make, as no person can prevent
an individual in Persia from seeking that relief; and when he
reaches court, he is certain of attention” ;2 and Malcolm tells
the story of a British sergeant, in the employ of the Persian
government, whose pay was withheld by a certain official. Failing
to obtain satisfaction from the official concerned, the sergeant
appealed direct to the Shah. The Shah’s ministers, comments
Malcolm, considered this to be a perfectly normal and proper
procedure. This system resulted in an intensely personal style
of government, with all the obvious merits and faults which
such a style entailed; but who is to say that the lot of the average
man was significantly unhappier than that of the citizen of today
who tries to obtain satisfaction from a faceless bureaucracy or a
computer?
In ancient Iran, the Shah had never been a remote figure like
Social and economic structure 179

a pharaoh or an emperor ofjapan. On the contrary, as I once heard


Peter Brown shrewdly observe, the Sasanian shahs took care to
keep their faces before the public by having their features en­
graved inside the base of drinking-cups. Their name and appear­
ance were thus known to the common man, and formed part
of his everyday life. In more recent times, European observers
were frequently struck by the accessibility of the shahs to their
people, by the informal way in which they mixed with courtiers
and officials and by the seriousness with which they applied
themselves to the business of government. Thévenot noted that
“ They show great familiarity to strangers, and even to their own
subjects, eating and drinking with them pretty freely.”3 Malcolm
was able to assert from personal observation that
There is no country in which the monarch has more personal duties
than in Persia. . . When in camp, his habits of occupation are the same
as in the capital: and we may pronounce, that he is from six to seven
hours every day in public, during which time he is not only seen by,
but accessible to, a great number of persons of all ranks. It is impossible
that a monarch, whom custom requires to mix so much with his
subjects, can be ignorant of their condition: and this knowledge must,
unless his character be very perverse, tend to promote their happiness.4
Certainly Shäh ‘Abbäs I was not ignorant of the condition of
his subjects, for he used to frequent incognito the coffee-houses,
the tea-houses and even the brothels of Isfahän, and mingle with
the dense crowds in the Maydän in a manner which would cause
acute anxiety to modern security police. He would take the
opportunity of checking the honesty of officials and tradesmen.
Tavernier reports that one night the Shäh left his palace disguised
as a peasant and bought a man (900 drachmas) of bread and the
same weight of meat, no doubt from the booths set up in the
Maydän. Taking his purchases back to the palace, ‘Abbäs had
them weighed by the vazxr in the presence of the principal officers
of state. The bread weighed 843 drachmas and the meat 857. The
Shäh was with difficulty restrained from executing on the spot
the chief of police and the Governor of Isfahän, but contented
himself with having the baker baked in his oven and the butcher
roasted on a spit.5
It has often been observed that one major difference between
Islamic society and Western society is the absence in the former
of those powerful municipal institutions, enjoying a large measure
27a. Court dress, male
2JB. Court dress, female
i82 Iran under the Safavids
of self-government, which evolved in the West. Within Islamic
society, however, there existed a considerable number of local
democratic institutions which together constituted the “ social
cement ” ofthat society. Examples of such institutions are the trade
and artisan guilds, and socio-religious organisations such as the
futuvva groups. The members of the jutuvva groups were often
dervishes and poor people, and their associations had a moral and
religious basis. They subjected themselves to the spiritual guidance
of a Süfî shaykh, and followed rules of ethical conduct which were
laid down in manuals called futuvvat-mmas. Merchants and
artisans had a formal channel of communication with government.
In Malcolm’s words:
In every city or town of any consequence, the merchants, tradesmen,
mechanics and labourers, have each a head, or rather a representative,
who... is chosen by the community to which he belongs, and is
appointed by the king. He is seldom removed from his situation, except
on the complaint of those whose representative he is deemed; and even
they must bring forward and substantiate charges of neglect or criminal
conduct, before he is degraded from the elevation to which their respect
had raised him.6
Another official selected by the consensus of the community
was the kadkhudä. In the cities, the kadkhudä functioned as an
official of the ‘urf, or common law administration, and specifically
as a ward magistrate subordinate to the kaläntar, or mayor. In rural
areas, the kadkhuda s position was usually that of the head-man
of a village. Malcolm underlines the democratic function of the
kadkhudä, who is not formally elected, but
the voice of the people always points them out. . .If the king should
appoint a magistrate disagreeable to the citizens, he [i.e., the magistrate]
could not perform his duties, which require that all the weight he
derives from personal consideration should aid the authority of office.
In small towns or villages the voice of the inhabitants in the nomination
of their kut-khodah, or head, is still more decided; and if one is named
whom they do not approve, their incessant clamour produces either his
voluntary resignation or removal. These facts are important; for there
cannot be a privilege more essential to the welfare of a people, than that
of choosing or even influencing the choice of their magistrates.7
Tavernier states specifically that the king appointed a kaläntar in
every town, that the kaläntar was answerable only to the king,
and that his function was to protect the people against injustices
and harassment on the part of the governors.8
Social and economic structure 183
Safavid society was what we would call today a “ meritocracy ” ;
it was certainly not an aristocratic system of government, although
there were, of course, powerful aristocratic elements in it; still less
could it be considered an oligarchy. Olearius draws attention to
this aspect of the Safavid society. Officials, he says, were appointed
on the basis of worth and merit, not on the basis of birth. For
this reason, he says, they risked their lives gaily, for they knew that
this was the only way to gain advancement to the highest offices.
These offices, he says, were not hereditary or venal in Iran. It was
true that the sons of nobles, when their fathers died, were
considered for their fathers’ offices as a mark of respect for the
meritorious service of the latter to the Safavid state, but they were
appointed to succeed them in office only on the basis of their own
merit and service.9 The operation of this general principle clearly
militated against the establishment of an entrenched aristocracy.
So, too, did the high degree of risk which went with the holding
of high office. The possibility of rising from obscurity to the
highest office was fact and not fiction. Manwaring records the case
of a man who sold milk at Isfahan who attracted Shäh ‘Abbas’s
attention and eventually became the captain of his guard in
command of a thousand men.10 The näzir Muhammad ‘All Beg,
described by Tavernier as “ the most honest man Persia has had
for centuries”, was spotted by Shäh ‘Abbäs I when the latter was
out hunting; the young Muhammad ‘All, then a shepherd boy,
was sitting playing his flute when the Shäh passed by. When the
Shäh put some questions to him, the boy’s answers so impressed
the Shäh that he took him to court for education and training.
Subsequently, he rose to the high office of näzir (superintendent
of the royal workshops), and was entrusted by the Shäh with the
conduct of diplomatic relations with theMogul court,11Tavernier
also reports that Muhammad ‘All Beg’s successor, a certain
Muhammad Beg, was also of humble origin, having risen rapidly
from being a tailor at Tabriz to the office of muayyir-bäsht
(controller of assay).12 Eventually, Muhammad Beg rose to the
highest bureaucratic post, that of vazïr, but one doubts whether
he had the necessary qualifications for the job, because he was
hoodwinked by a rascally Frenchman named Chapelle de Han,
who claimed expertise in the mining of silver, gold, copper and
other minerals. All that Chapelle de Han discovered, however,
was a deposit of lead near Isfahän, and some talc and alum. The
wood for smelting the lead had to be brought a distance of fifteen
184 Iran under the Sajavids
to twenty days’ journey by camel, and the cost of transporting
it alone absorbed any profit from the sale of the lead.13
It should not be forgotten that the policy of the Safavid shahs
of creating a “ third force” in the state which was neither of
Turkish nor of Iranian ethnic origin (see Chapter 4), strongly
reinforced this tendency of the Safavid society to be a meritocracy.
It is true that some of the Georgians who voluntarily entered
Safavid service were members of the Georgian nobility, but the
vast majority of the Armenians, Georgians and Circassians who
were taken prisoner during Safavid campaigns in the Caucasus
from the time of Shäh Tahmäsp onwards and impressed into
Safavid service, must have been of humble origin. The fact that
they were known technically asghulämän-i khässa-yi sharïfa, or the
personal “ slaves” of the shah, should not blind one to the fact
that many men rose from the ranks of the ghuläms to positions
of the highest authority.
Even the qizilbäsh, the original military aristocracy of the
Safavid state, found their dominant position in society steadily
eroded as time went on, and particularly as a result of the
reshaping of society by ‘Abbäs I described in Chapter 4. Within
the ranks of the qizilbäsh, there were frequent shifts of power. No
one tribe held the same fief for any considerable period of time,
and this prevented the growth of a landed aristocracy in the
Western sense. There was no continuity of power in the hands
of one tribe or group of tribes; those tribes which were prominent
during the later Safavid period are hardly mentioned earlier. For
example, the Afshärs came to the fore from the middle of the
sixteenth century onwards, and the Qäjärs later still; no member
of either tribe held any important office during the first half
century of Safavid rule. There is no parallel, therefore, with the
position of the French aristocracy in the eighteenth century, or
with that of the Russian aristocracy in the nineteenth century,
when each could point to several centuries of uninterrupted
enjoyment of their estates.
If the Safavid administrative system was divided “ vertically”
into khässa (“ crown”) and ‘ämma or mamälik (“ state”) branches,
Safavid society, until Georgian, Armenian and Circassian elements
were introduced into it in the second half of the sixteenth century,
was divided “ horizontally” along ethnic lines between the two
“ founding” races, the qizilbäsh Turks and the Persians. The
Social and economic structure 185
tension between these two important elements of Safavid society,
if controlled, could be creative and a source of strength to the state ;
if not controlled, it could set up a centrifugal force which
threatened to tear society apart. Reference was made in Chapter
2 to the stereotyped view which each of these “ founding races”
had of the other’s role in society. From the time of Shäh Tahmäsp
onwards, the Safavid rulers sought to blur the formerly clearly
defined lines between Turk and Tajik (“ non-Turk”) by a policy
of taking the sons of qizilbäsh officers into the royal household for
their education. This education consisted not only of activities
appropriate to “ men of the sword”, such as archery, horseman­
ship and swordsmanship, but of instruction in painting and pen­
manship, which the old-style qizilbäsh would have regarded with
contempt. As a result of this policy, by the time of Shäh ‘Abbäs
I there was in existence a cadre of young qizilbäsh officers who
were better educated and more cultured than the qizilbäsh who
had stayed close to their tribal origins, and consequently had the
training and ability to take on administrative jobs in areas which
had hitherto been the exclusive preserve of Iranians.
An important feature of Safavid society was the close alliance
which developed between the ‘ulamä, or religious classes, and the
other groups which made up the bazaar community ; merchants,
members of the asmif, or artisan and trade guilds, and members
of quasi-religious fraternities like the jutuvva. To an increasing
extent, this alliance was cemented by inter-marriage between
6ulamä and merchant families. The fact that under the Safavids the
‘ulamä acquired the management of a vastly increased amount of
vaqf land and property contributed to their community of interest
with the merchant class. At the same time, some of the ‘ulamä
entered the ranks of the landowning class. Apart from lands
assigned to officials in lieu of a salary (tiyül), vaqf lands constituted
the principal category of land. In 1607, Shäh ‘Abbäs I constituted
all his private estates and personal property into a vaqf for the
Fourteen Immaculate Ones (the Twelve Imäms, Muhammad and
Fätima), and vested the tawliyat, the office of mutavallx, or
administrator of these awqäf* in himself, and thereafter in his
successors.14 This benefaction, in the words of the contemporary
historian Iskandar Beg Munshï, was on a scale unheard of unless
the royal benefactor intended to live the life of a recluse.15 In
addition to the Shäh’s personal estates, valued at 100,000 royal
i 86 Iran under the Safavids
‘Iraqi tumäns, there were included in the vaqf the hostelries, the
Qaysariyya market, the stores around the Naqsh-i Jahän square
in Isfahan and the bath-houses in that city. The disposition of the
trust funds was at the discretion of the manager. After a sum had
been set aside as a management-fee, the trust income was to be
used as the occasion demanded for administrative expenses and
subsistence allowances for the employees at each location, and for
subsistence allowances for those living in the neighbourhood of
these locations, for pilgrims, scholars, pious men and students of
theology. Banani suggests that
this single action not only increased directly the area of vaqf lands by
a sizeable amount, but it also served as the cue for many private
landowners to follow suit. By vesting the towliya in themselves and their
families, they continued to have the use of the vaqf revenues, after
making token contributions to charities. Thus, they gained a measure
of immunity from confiscation, as well as from dues and taxes. . .In­
creasingly, members of the religious classes —particularly the mujtahids
and sayyids —were appointed mutawallts. . .They began as mutawallxs of
awqdf endowed by others, continued to amass extensive private estates
of their own, and emerged as the esquires of their region with
paramount local socio-economic and political powers.16
In addition, members of the religious classes were granted
benefices or immunities from taxation of the type known as
suyürghäls. Since suyürghäls had a perpetual or hereditary character,
“ the area held by the grantee formed a kind of autonomous
enclave within the state territory”.17

I i : T H E N A T U R E OF T H E S A F A V I D E C O N O M Y

y I. T H E D O M E S T I C E C O N O M Y

The twin bases of the domestic economy were pastoralism and


agriculture. At the beginning of this chapter, Safavid society was
described as being pyramidal in shape. At the base of the pyramid
were the peasants. Just as at the higher levels of government and
administration there was a dichotomy between the qizilbäsh “ men
of the sword” and the Tajik (i.e., Iranian) “ men of the pen”, so
at the lower levels of society that was a dichotomy between the
Turcoman tribes and the Persian peasants. The life-styles of these
two principal elements of the early Safavid state were totally
différent. The Turcoman tribes “ were cattle-breeders and lived
Social and economic structure 187

apart from the surrounding population. They migrated from


winter to summer quarters. They were organised in clans and
obeyed their own chieftains.”18 The Iranian peasants, on the other
hand, were settled agriculturalists living in villages. In the period
prior to Shäh ‘Abbäs I, most of the land was assigned to officials,
civil, military and religious, for the payment of salaries. From the
time of Shäh ‘Abbäs I onwards, more land was brought under
the direct control of the shah and administered directly by royal
intendants. This change did not, however, affect the basis of land
tenure, namely, the crop-sharing agreement between landlord
and peasant based on the ‘avämil-i panjgäna (five elements) : land,
water, plough-animals, seed and labour. If the peasant provided
nothing but his labour, he would in theory receive only 20 per
cent of the crop. But conditions varied in different parts of the
country and with different types of crop.
In Chardin’s opinion the landlord always had the worst of the bargain
with the peasant in a crop-sharing agreement, and he describes the many
ruses he alleged they used to obtain a larger share than was their due.
He states that the peasants lived in tolerable comfort, and compares their
condition favourably with that of peasants in the more fertile parts of
Europe. He states that they everywhere wore silver ornaments and
sometimes gold, and were well clothed and had good footwear. Their
houses were well provided with utensils and furniture (? presumably
carpets). On the other hand, they were exposed to rough treatment on
the part of officials. Further, they were subject to heavy demands in the
way of forced labour, particularly in crown lands held by great nobles.19
Agriculture in Iran was and is subject to the overriding
constraints of climate and water-supply. Over most of the
country, many crops can be grown only by means of irrigation,
and in those parts where some crops, mainly cereals, can be grown
relying on rainfall alone the yield is perhaps only one quarter of
the yield from irrigated land. Fruits of all kinds, including grapes,
were produced in abundance and were of excellent quality. The
Islamic ban on wine drinking was “ occasionally and capriciously
enforced ”.20 Wine was made principally by Jews and Armenians,
and was consumed in large quantities at court and even on
occasion by members of the religious classes. Tavernier records
a meeting with “ a rich mulla outside Kirmän who invited me
to his house and gave me some excellent wine”.21 Wine was
regularly drunk at state banquets, and some of the shahs had a
i88 Iran under the Safavids
legendary capacity for it; 'Abbäs II, for example, after a whole
day's debauch, was found to be as sober, and in as good a frame
of mind, as if he had not drunk one drop.22 It is clear that, in this
instance as in many others, the pre-Islamic Persian tradition
proved to be stronger than the later Islamic accretion.
When one turns to examine the internal money economy, it
becomes clear that the Shäh was the largest capitalist and the
largest employer of labour. Amin Banani has criticised ‘Abbäs’s
policies of “ state capitalism” on the ground that, although the
Shäh accumulated capital, “his policies inhibited the accumulation
and the investment of capital on the part of others ”, and “ his own
‘capitalism’ was devoid of any entrepreneurial spirit”.231believe
Banani’s strictures to be at least in part unjustified. He is certainly
incorrect in stating that ‘Abbäs’s policies inhibited others from
accumulating capital; there is plenty of evidence that individual
merchants, particularly Armenians, became very wealthy indeed.
In support of his charge that Shäh ‘Abbäs’s policies were devoid
of any entrepreneurial spirit, Banani cites the case of the royal
workshops (buyütät-i khâssa-yi sharïfa), of which there were
thirty-two at the time of Chardin and thirty-three at the time of
the compilation of the Tazkirat al-Mulük about 1726.24
It is true that many of the royal workshops, such as the kitchen,
scullery, stables, kennels, etc., were simply what Minorsky called
“ domestic departments” ; some, however, were “ run like real
state-owned manufactories”,5 and in general these workshops
gave employment to some 5,000 artisans and craftsmen and
contributed to the overall prosperity of the economy.
Some workshops, as the dye-works and the silk factory, had been
abolished, and replaced by a system under which linen to be dyed was
sent into the town, and silk and gold thread were issued for the making
of all kinds of textiles, brocades and carpets, the buyütät administration
paying for the work at a fixed tariff. Carpets were also made in the
country by workmen to whom the king gave lands and who paid their
rent in the produce of their hands.26

The workmen in the royal workshops constituted a privileged


class of artisans. In addition to their wages, the amount of which
was stated in the artisan’s letter of appointment and which was
raised every three years, each workman received jtra, or rations,
in the form of a quarter-plate, a half-plate or a plate. A “ plate”
Social and economic structure 1 8 9

consisted of “ everything necessary for subsistence and could feed


6—7 persons ”.27 If he wished, the workman could take cash in lieu
of the jira. Its cash value was about 20 tumäns. When this is
compared with the wage scale, which ranged from 2 tumäns to
55 tumäns a year, it is clear that the jtra constituted a very
substantial fringe benefit. In addition, workmen who did parti­
cularly good work were given presents, and in some cases,
workmen received a gift amounting to a whole year’s salary in
lieu of the triennial wage increase. Workmen employed in the
royal workshops had total job security: they were “ kept for life
and never dismissed; in case of illness or diminished capacity for
work their salary was not reduced, and they received free
treatment from the Court doctors and chemists” . Not only did
they receive their pay whether they had received any commis­
sions from the king or not, but there was no restriction on the
amount of work they performed on the side for their private
profit.
The workmen who had to follow the Court on its travels were given
camels and horses, but they easily obtained permission to stay at home,
or, alternately, were granted leave after 6—12 months* absence. The
children of the workmen were taken into service at the age of 12—15
years, and after their father’s death received their salaries.28
The asnäf, or artisan guilds, were subject to corvées and also to a
tax called buntcha, and the task of apportioning the lump sum of
the bunïcha among the members of the guild was one of the tasks
of the kaläntar.
Shäh ‘Abbäs I took as keen an interest in the internal workings
of the bazaar as he did in foreign trade. Manwaring records that
in the bazaar at Qazvïn, which was three times as big as the
Exchange in London, “ though not so beautiful”, there were shops
of all manner of trades, and the king had a special throne there :
In the middle of that place standeth a round thing made with a seat,
set up with six pillars... on which place they used to sell apparel and
other commodities; that being bravely trimmed with rich carpets, both
of gold and silver and silk, and the King’s chair of estate placed in the
middle, the chair being of silver plate set with turkies [turquoises] and
rubies very thick, and six great diamonds, which did show like stars,
the seat being of rich scarlet embroidered with pearl, and the multitude
of lamps hanging about it were innumerable.29
28. Octagonal caravanserai at Amînabâd

Although roads throughout Iran were poor (if one excepts Shäh
‘Abbäs’s famous causeway in Mäzandarän), and communications
were slow, the network of caravanserais which covered the
country along the main trade routes at least provided the
merchant with protection for his goods and pack-animals, and also
with facilities for displaying his wares and engaging in a little
business at overnight stops. Both Thévenot and Tavernier comment
that the Persian caravanserais were better built and cleaner than
their Turkish counterparts. Caravanserais were designed especially
Social and economic structure 191

to benefit poorer travellers; travellers could stay as long as they


liked, without making any payment for lodging. ‘Abbäs I was an
indefatigable builder of caravanserais, which were another essential
part of his policy of promoting the commercial prosperity of the
Safavid empire, and his example was followed by his relatives,
by wealthy merchants and by provincial governors.30 Caravan­
serais had to be provided at frequent intervals on the main
highways, for caravans were slow. A horse caravan took twice
as long to cover a given distance as a man on horseback, and camel
caravans four times as long.31 The caravanserais varied greatly in
size. “ On some of the major routes the caravanserais were huge
and splendid constructions” ; a caravanserai on the Bandar Rig
route, on the other hand, had only three rooms.32
Another source of revenue to the state was the road tolls levied
on caravans. These were collected by the rähdärs, or road guards,
who stationed themselves at points such as river-crossings so that
not even the wily merchant could avoid them. In return for the
tolls, the road guards were responsible for the safety of the
travellers and their belongings, and they were answerable to the
local governor. The system seems to have worked effectively.
Many European travellers commented favourably on the degree
of security on the highways obtaining in Iran compared with that
in the Ottoman empire. Tavernier, for example, stresses the fact
that, beyond Erïvân, it was “ perfectly safe to leave the caravan
or not to travel in a caravan at all Thévenot’s caravan ceased to
set a nightly guard once they were in Persia. Others contrasted the
behaviour of the road guards with similar officials under other
jurisdictions: Olearius was impressed with the contrast between
Russian coarseness and boorishness and Persian courtesy and
refinement, and Fryer by the contrast in appearance and behaviour
of the Indians and Persians.33 The road guards “ were instructed
to stop anyone travelling alone, by an unusual route, or who was
completely unknown to them in case he might be wanted for
robbery”.34 Other travellers record the speedy recovery of items
stolen from their baggage in caravanserais. The usual punishment
for apprehended thieves was death. Under the weak rule of the
last two Safavid kings, Shäh Sulaymän and Shäh Sultän Husayn,
the system became less efficient and the road guards prone to
commit abuses.35 In times of political disturbances or war,
naturally the degree of security afforded on the roads decreased,
29- Käshän —the great inn

and on occasion provincial officials were not averse from turning


a dishonest penny in a variety of ways, such as refusing to supply
a caravan with fresh camels without a douceur.36 In general,
however, it is clear that the system provided merchants with a
large measure of security both for their persons and for their
property.
II. I N T E R N A T I O N A L TRADE

The Safavid state, though not as wealthy as the Mogul state in


India (a circumstance which caused many Safavid poets to
emigrate to the Mogul court : see Chapter 9), was more prosperous
than any administrative entity had been which had governed Iran
since Mongol times, and was probably richer than any of its
successors until very recent times. It achieved this unparalleled
prosperity in the main by making astute use of a major shift in
the balance of world trade which occurred at the end of the
fifteenth century.
For some two and a half centuries prior to the beginning of
the sixteenth century, Venice had been the supreme trading power
in the Levant, but two events in the fifteenth century dealt a death
blow to this supremacy. The first of these was the capture of
Constantinople by the Turks in 1453; the second was the
discovery by the Portuguese of the sea-route to the Indies round
the Cape of Good Hope in 1487. The Venetians had done all in
their power to try and hamper Portuguese trade with India via
the Cape, but they had failed. The establishment of the Portuguese
hegemony in the Persian Gulf and the Indian Ocean totally
changed the traditional patterns of trade in the area. For centuries
before the coming of the Portuguese, the Persian Gulf had been
one of the great highways of East-West trade. Westward flowed
194 Iran under the Safavids
the products of China, the Malay Archipelago and India ; eastward,
the merchandise of Iran, the Arab countries and Europe. Mer­
cantile city-states, all without exception located in the Persian
Gulf, had arisen and fallen, but no one state had ever succeeded
in imposing its hegemony over the whole area.
The Portuguese, however, came not merely as traders, but as
conquerors. Their aim was to establish a Portuguese imperium
extending over the whole of Asia. The brilliant Portuguese
Captain General Afonso de Albuquerque correctly identified the
three key points, control of which would give their possessor
mastery in Asia: Aden, Hurmüz and the Straits of Malacca. Until
the advent of the nuclear age, nothing occurred to invalidate
Albuquerque’s analysis, and even today it is still valid in terms of
warfare with conventional weapons. The grand design of the
Portuguese was to force all trade between Europe and the Indies
to go round the Cape of Good Hope, by blocking its traditional
outlets: the Red Sea, the Persian Gulf and the Straits of Malacca.
All cargoes would have to be carried in Portuguese bottoms. By
seizing and fortifying ports on the coasts of Arabia, the Persian
Gulf and the Indian Ocean, the Portuguese were in a position to
harass the shipping of European rivals and to levy lucrative
customs and port dues on foreign ships.
The Portuguese imperium not only sounded the death-knell of
Venice as a trading nation, but it also seriously affected the
commercial prosperity of the Muslim states along the shores of
the Persian Gulf The merchants of these states had handled the
forwarding to destinations further east of shipments originating
in Europe, and the purchase at emporia such as Ceylon, Calicut
on the Malabar coast and Kalah Bar on the west coast of Malaya,
of commodities destined for eventual sale in Europe. The Safavid
state was one of the states affected by this Portuguese control of
the coastal trade.
Hurmüz was not primafacie an attractive site for a base. Master
Ralph Fitch, an English merchant who visited the island in 1583,
declared : “ It is the dryest island in the world, for there is nothing
growing in it but only salt.”37 Nevertheless, Hurmüz was the
key to Portuguese commercial dominance of the region, and for
more than a century the Safavid shahs could do nothing to wrest
it from them. The Portuguese rapidly converted Hurmüz from
a protectorate to the status of a Portuguese colony. Portuguese
Social and economic structure 195

officials were placed in charge of the Hurmüz customs in 1522,


and all Portuguese ships calling at Hurmüz were exempt from
customs duty. The maritime trade to Gujerat, and the caravan
trade between Hurmüz and the cities of the Iranian hinterland,
which were the bases of the prosperity of Hurmüz, were seriously
affected by the actions of the Portuguese. When in addition the
Portuguese levied taxes on the people of Hurmüz on an ever
heavier scale, the fortunes of Hurmüz, not surprisingly, declined.
Hurmüz fell behind in the payment of tribute to the Portuguese,
and in 1542 the Portuguese Viceroy was obliged to waive the
arrears due. It was not until 1581 that the arrival of the English
merchant John Newberic at Hurmüz heralded the increased
interest of the English in the trade possibilities in the area and the
subsequent founding of the English East India Company in 1600.
In 1602, Shäh ‘Abbäs I drove the Portuguese out of Bahrein, but
he realised that he could not hope to expel them from their far
stronger base at Hurmüz without naval assistance. With his usual
astuteness, Shäh ‘Abbäs manoeuvred the English into helping him
to achieve this objective.
In 1615, Shäh ‘Abbäs I granted to two factors of the English
East India Company aJarman which conferred on the Company’s
agents various trading privileges and authorised them to establish
factories in Iran. After the Company had opened factories at Jäsk,
ShTräz and Isfahän, Shäh ‘Abbäs was in a position to exert pressure
on the Company, and enlist its co-operation in a joint Anglo-
Iranian attack on Hurmüz (see Chapter 5).
The fall of Hurmüz portended the end of the Portuguese
imperium in the Persian Gulf; their successors, the English, Dutch
and French, came as merchant adventurers and not as colonisers.
The terms of trade were not imposed on the Safavid shahs by the
agents of these European powers, but were negotiated freely with
them, and the Safavid state consequently shared the profits
deriving from this trade. The English East India Company tried
to bring pressure to bear on Shäh ‘Abbäs I with a view to
extracting from him terms of trade more favourable to themselves,
but the capture of Baghdäd by the Safavids in 1623 deprived the
Company’s factors of any leverage they might have exerted as a
result of the Shäh’s anxieties in regard to the Ottomans. After the
fall of Hurmüz, it would have been to the English East India
Company’s advantage, since it was then in a dominant position
rç 6 Iran under the Safavids
in the Persian Gulf, to try and divert Safavid international trade
away from the traditional routes and transfer it to the sea-route
from the Persian Gulf, thus increasing the Shäh’s dependence
on the Company. However, the Company was in this strong
bargaining position for only about a year. The first Dutch trading
expedition arrived in the Persian Gulf in June 1623, and established
a factory, and the English had thus lost their opportunity to
achieve the sort of hegemony which the Portuguese had enjoyed
before them.
The Portuguese stranglehold on trade from the Persian Gulf
was broken by their loss of Hurmüz. In the long term, however,
this trade was of less importance to the overall prosperity of the
Safavid state than was the trade by the traditional routes to
Europe, and Shäh ‘Abbäs I was determined to expand this trade
to the maximum degree possible. One consideration which led
him to make this policy decision was undoubtedly his desire to
avoid undue dependence on any of the European East India
Companies. But there were serious problems connected with the
use of the traditional routes. The Venetian trade hegemony in the
Levant had been terminated, but one of the forces which had
helped to overthrow it, the Ottoman empire, now stood astride
the most important of these traditional trade routes: the route
across Iraq and Syria to the Mediterranean ports, and the route
across Anatolia to Istanbul. The Ottoman empire was an arch­
enemy of the Safavid state, and the two empires were at war, at
first almost continuously, later intermittently, throughout the
sixteenth century and well on into the seventeenth century.
A route was therefore devised which circumvented Ottoman
territory : by sea from Gïlân across the Caspian Sea to Astrakhan,
up the Volga and thence by land across the Ukraine. A fourth
route, by sea round the north of Scandinavia to the White Sea
ports, and thence overland across Russia, which had been
pioneered by the merchants of the Muscovy Company, had been
abandoned by the latter in 1581 as being too hazardous. The
GTlän—Astrakhan—southern Russia route assumed paramount im­
portance when, as was often the case, the Ottomans and the
Safavids were at war. The international trade which followed this
route was on a large scale and of a very varied character. Brocades,
taffeta, shagreen, moroccan leather, velours and, above all, silk,
were exported via Gïlân to Muscovy and thence to Poland and
Social and economic structure 1 9 7

Europe generally. In the sixteenth and seventeenth centuries, Iran


was pre-eminent in the silk trade, which Shäh ‘Abbäs I made a
royal monopoly, and an extremely effective one. In 1619/20,
when the English factors “ declared a buyers’ strike in order to
force down the Shah’s price”, they “ found it impossible to
procure silk for export on the free market”.38
The organisation of the silk trade in the 1620s must be regarded as one
of ‘Abbäs’s great organizational achievements. He did not succeed in
putting into effect the intended ban on export through Turkey, and the
export merchants still made direct purchases in the production areas.
When purchases other than from the Royal treasury were made,
however, 12 tomans per load had to be paid in duty on the silk bought
for export and 4 tomans per load on the silk bought for processing in
Persia.39
Iranian ambassadors to European rulers were regularly expected
as part of their duties to sell some bales of silk while they were
abroad and to remit the proceeds to their royal master. In the
1660s, according to Chardin, the annual production of silk in Iran
was 1,672,000 pounds, a considerable proportion of which was
exported.
One of the privileges granted by Shäh ‘Abbäs I to the
employees of the English East India Company was freedom of
worship, and this privilege lay at the root of Shäh ‘Abbäs’s policy
of expanding overseas trade. Without it, no such expansion would
have been possible. Whereas internal trade was largely in the hands
of Persian and Jewish merchants, foreign trade was almost
exclusively in the hands of Armenians.40 The commercial and
financial expertise of the Armenians, and their European contacts,
were essential to Shäh ‘Abbäs’s purpose. At the same time, he
wanted European merchants to think that the climate in Iran was
favourable to the prosecution of trade; he therefore encouraged
various Catholic orders to found convents in Iran. This policy was
completely successful. “ The Persians give full liberty of conscience
to all Strangers of whatsoever Religion they be” ; so wrote
Thévenot, who was in Iran in 1664.41 This had by no means been
true of the predecessors of ‘Abbäs I, and it was not entirely true
of his successors, including Shäh ‘Abbäs II during whose reign
Thévenot visited Iran. ‘Abbäs II, for instance, condoned the
attempt by the vizier forcibly to convert the Jews of Isfahän to
Islam. Nevertheless, the degree of religious tolerance induced by
198 Iran under the Safavids
the policies of ‘Abbäs I, and maintained in large measure by his
successors until the accession of Shäh Sultän Husayn (1694), was
in striking contrast to the religious climate prevailing in most of
Europe at the same period.
The Armenians in particular made full use of their opportunities.
The largest single source of cash for the royal treasury was the
silk trade, and the silk trade was handled by Armenian
merchants.42 The Armenians in their suburb of New Julfä on the
south bank of the Zäyanda-rüd at Isfahän “ constituted a separate
group, a commercial élite with their own distinctive cultural
traditions and religion, residing in their own community physic­
ally and nationally apart from the Persians. It was a subtle,
brittle relationship of mutual interest, trust, dependence, and
toleration.”43 Armenian merchants not only carried on the Shäh’s
trade but competed with European merchants, including the
various East India Companies. Among these, the Dutch showed
more adaptability than the English and displayed a greater
willingness to meet the conditions set by Shäh ‘Abbäs I. In April
1626, only three years after the establishment of the first Dutch
factory in Iran, the Dutch concluded a three-year contract with
Shäh ‘Abbäs which regulated both prices and quantities of goods.
The Dutch were to import into Iran goods to the value of 40,000
tumäns or 1,600,000 Dutch florins. O f the commodities imported,
pepper constituted some 40 per cent of the total, and most of the
remainder originated in the East Indies ; only slightly over 8 per
cent was of European origin. These goods were to be paid for in
silk. The English factors assured the Company Court that the
terms obtained by the Dutch were not as good as the ones they
themselves had obtained in 1624, but the fact that, as soon as the
conditions of the Dutch contract leaked out, the English
immediately sent agents to the Shäh to try and obtain similar ones,
shows clearly that the English had been outmanoeuvred; in any
case, their attempt was unsuccessful.44 In the event, the contract
with the Dutch proved unsatisfactory from the Iranian point of
view; not only was the market saturated with pepper, the price
of which in the Iranian bazaars consequently dropped, but the
Dutch did not fulfil the clause in the contract which stipulated
that 10,000 tumäns of the total contract should be delivered in the
form of ready cash. Disillusioned, the royal agent resumed
negotiations with the English East India Company. The latter
Social and economic structure 199

fulfilled the terms of the resulting contract signed in 1628, but the
English imports of cloth and tin similarly glutted the Iranian
market and caused a slump in the price of these commodities. The
quality of the English cloth, too, was not all that it might have
been, and Safavid soldiers who had received consignments of it
in lieu of pay ran after English merchants in the street and cursed
them for its poor quality. Despite these gross misjudgements of
the market situation, the royal agent was not dismissed from office
until 1632, after the death of Shäh ‘Abbäs I.45
With the accession of Shäh Safi in 1629, royal control of trade
diminished. Whereas under Shäh ‘Abbäs I the silk trade had been
a royal monopoly, Shäh Safi, influenced by substantial bribes
from the Armenian community, gave licences to buy silk to all
and sundry. Once again, the Dutch East India Company out­
manoeuvred the English and succeeded in exploiting this new
situation by trading both with the king and with local merchants,
including Armenians, who were busy strengthening their con­
nections with Italy and extending their commercial network to
France, England, Holland and Russia.46 To begin with, the
English East India Company’s factors declined to co-operate with
the Armenians. Their agent, William Gibson, sent to London a
testy report in which he described the Armenians as “ soe griping
and deceitful in their dealings and so slowe in performing of their
promises” ; he strongly advocated that the Company not co­
operate with them, and concluded rhetorically, “ knowing them
to be as aforesaid how think your worships ’tis to be imbraced ”.47
During the reign of Shäh Safi" (1629-42), the Dutch continued
to purchase large quantities of Iranian silk, mainly from private
sources. Government officials tried to offset the resultant loss of
revenue to the state by imposing heavy customs duty on silk
bought privately. This in turn led the Dutch authorities in Batavia
to order their factors in Iran to stop buying silk from private
sources. The Dutch merchants were by no means totally dependent
on the silk trade; after the foundation of their factory at Bandar
‘Abbäs, which rapidly replaced Hurmüz as the principal Iranian
port-of-entry in the Persian Gulf, they soon established a mono­
poly of the spice trade between the East Indies and Iran. The
rivalry between the Dutch and English East India Companies
prevented either from achieving a dominant position, and both
were able to derive profit from the transit trade between Bandar
2 0 0 Iran under the Safavids
‘Abbäs and the Indian Ocean ports. Ships of both Companies
carried goods for both Iranian and Indian merchants, who were
able to obtain attractive freight rates and reliable service by
playing off one Company against the other. The pressure these
merchants were able to exert caused Jan Smidt, the Dutch
ambassador to Iran in 1629, to exclaim indignantly : “ they do not
at all realise what profit and advancement their country and its
inhabitants achieve with our extensive trade, on the contrary they
brazenly assert that it is us who are quite dependent upon their
trade and cannot manage without it”.48 Clearly, the age of
imperialism had not yet dawned !
By the second half of the seventeenth century, the Dutch had
outstripped both its English rivals and also the French, whose
Compagnie Française des Indes was founded in 1664; Thévenot,
Fryer and Chardin all testify to the supremacy of Dutch trade in
the Persian Gulf at that period. The Dutch success was achieved
primarily by their quickness in adapting to changing circum­
stances. They abandoned the concept of bilateral trade which
had been the basis of the operations of both the early Dutch
and English traders, in favour of multilateral, co-ordinated trade
throughout Asia based on Batavia. Capital invested by Dutch
merchants was not to return to source immediately, but was to
circulate permanently in Asia, Dutch merchants taking a profit
from each successive stage. This policy received its classic form­
ulation by Coen in 1619:
Piece goods from Gujarat we can barter for pepper and gold on the
coast of Sumatra, rials and cottons from the coast for pepper in Bantam,
sandalwood, pepper and rials we can barter for Chinese goods and
Chinese gold ; we can extract silver from Japan with Chinese goods,
piece goods from the Coromandel coast in exchange for spices, other
goods and gold from China, piece goods from Surat for spices, other
goods and rials, rials from Arabia for spices and various other trifles
—one thing leads to the other. And all of it can be done without any
money from the Netherlands and with ships alone.49
The English East India Company was constrained to acknow­
ledge that desperate measures were needed if the Company was
not to be forced out of business altogether, and in 1688 the
Company took the unprecedented step of conferring on Armen­
ians equal status with Englishmen in the conduct of commercial
operations —a step which would have been unthinkable a hundred
years later. Under the terms of the 1688 Agreement, Armenians
Social and economic structure 2 0 1

w ere to have “ the liberty to live in any o f the C o m p an y ’s cities


Garrisons or T o w n s in India and to buy, sell and purchase Land
or Houses and be capable o f all Civil Offices and preferm ents in
the same m an n er as if they w ere E nglishm en b o r n ” .50 T h e hopes
o f the English East India C o m p an y w ere n o t fulfilled. For one
thing, co m p etition w ith the Levant C o m p an y was at its m ost
b itter and m ilitated against the East India C o m p a n y ’s im proving
its trading position in Iran; for another, the A rm enians, despite
their having signed the 1688 A greem ent, w ere far fro m convinced
o f the advantage to them selves o f giving the English East India
C o m p an y preferential status. As they said vividly in 1697: “ As
for bringing Silk to Isfahan, it is b u t w in d .” 51 T he profits to be
m ade on the A leppo route, th ro u g h close co-operation w ith the
L evant C o m p an y , continued to be m ore tem p tin g than the un­
certain prospects o f the sea-route via the Persian G ulf. Even the
Russian route, despite its unprom ising beginnings, appeared m ore
attractive to the A rm enians at the tu rn o f the eighteenth century.
In the w ords o f R. W . Ferrier, “ the experience o f the East India
C o m p an y in Persia in the seventeenth century underlines the
im portance o f ready m oney to the E uropean trade in the East, the
tenacity o f the traditional trading patterns, the crucial parts played
by the local m erchants and brokers, and, for Persia in particular,
the close interdependence o f the cloth and silk trades” .52 T he
English m erchants frequently found them selves em barrassed by
the lack b o th o f capital and o f ready cash, w hich the A rm enians
could supply in abundance. “ A lthough m erchants traded exclu­
sively for cash, m o n ey was scarce. M ost o f it fo u n d its w ay into
the T reasury, w here it was h o ard ed .” 53 A ccording to Banani,
“ the silver coins o f the Safavids w ere w o rth less by w eig h t than
their face value indicated ; they found few takers. G old coins w ere
struck only for special and infrequent occasions, and then only in
small quantities. N aturally, they w ere hoarded. T he m ost desirable
was the V enetian gold d u cat.” 54 “ T he A rm enians n o t only had
supplies o f ready m oney b u t they had also a w ell-organized system
o f credit facilities along the routes in the tow ns w here they
trad ed .” 55 T he A rm enians w ere also adepts at avoiding currency
and exchange regulations, and regularly carried ready m oney
into and o u t o f Iran “ by avoiding the royal m ints and n o t com ­
ply in g w ith royal instructions against exporting it to India and
elsew here” .56
In the long term , the alternative trade routes w hich had been
202 Iran under the Safavids
developed in response to political exigencies, nam ely, the sea—
land-route via the Caspian Sea and Russia, and the sea-route via
the Persian Gulf, did n o t prove to be satisfactory substitutes for
the traditional routes th ro u g h A natolia and across Iraq and Syria
to the L evant ports, and this despite the fact that the alternative
routes, by by-passing the O tto m a n em pire, enabled Safavid
m erchants to avoid O tto m a n transit dues and custom s, and
reduced the inflationary pressure on Iran fro m T u rk ey .57 A fter
the conclusion o f the T reaty o fZ u h ä b betw een the O tto m an s and
the Safavids in 1639, w hich ushered in a p rolonged period o f peace
betw een the tw o antagonists, m uch o f the Iranian ex p o rt trade
reverted to the traditional routes.58 O n e m ajor ex p o rt item w hich
reverted to the A natolian route was m u tto n “ on the h o o f” .
T avernier reports that there was a large-scale traffic in sheep fro m
the T abriz and H am adän areas to the m arkets in Istanbul and
A drianople, and that the greater p art o f the m u tto n consum ed in
A natolia and R um ania em anated from Iran. In the m onths o f
M arch, A pril and M ay, he says, the roads w ere packed w ith flocks
o f sheep a thousand stro n g .59 T h e fact that M iddle Eastern
m erchants survived the challenge o f the E uropean East India
C om panies during the seventeenth century, and continued to
contrive to m ake an adequate profit, is probably due to tw o
things: first, the A rm enian, Jew ish, Persian and Indian m erchants
alm ost certainly w ere capable o f striking harder bargains and
b uying their goods at low er prices than their E uropean rivals;
second, because o f their expensive overheads, E uropean m erchants
needed to m ake a gross profit o f 60 or 70 per cent in order to
show a reasonable n et profit, w hereas the local traders o f the
region w ere satisfied w ith m uch lo w er profit m argins.
9

I n t e lle c t u a l lif e u n d e r th e S a fa v id s

LI TERATURE

U n til recently, the accepted view am ong scholars was that no


p o etry o f n o te was com posed in the Safavid period. T he person
m ost responsible fo r enunciating and giving currency to this view
was E. G. B row ne:
O ne o f the most curious and, at first sight, inexplicable phenomena o f
the Safawi period is the extraordinary dearth o f notable poets in Persia
during the tw o centuries o f its duration. . . though poets innumerable
are mentioned in the Tuhfa-i Sami and other contemporary biographies
and histories, there is hardly one (if w e exclude Jarm, Hatiff, Hilali and
other poets o f Khurasan, w ho w ere really survivors o f the school o f
Herat) w orthy to be placed in the first class. During the seventy stormy
years o f Tim ur’s life there were at least eight or ten poets besides the
great Hafiz, w ho outshone them all, w hose names no writer on Persian
literature could ignore; w hile during the tw o hundred and tw enty years
o f Safawi rule there was in Persia, so far as I have been able to ascertain,
hardly one o f conspicuous merit or originality. I say “ in Persia”
advisedly, for a brilliant group o f poets from Persia, o f w h o m ‘U rfi o f
Shiraz (d. a .d . 1590) and Sa’ib o f Isfahan (d. a .d . 1670) are perhaps the
most notable, adorned the court o f the “ Great M ogh u ls” in India, and
these were in many cases not settlers o f the sons o f emigrants, but men
w ho w ent from Persia to India to make their fortunes and returned
hom e when their fortunes were made. This shows that it was not so
much lack o f talent as lack o f patronage w hich makes the list o f
distinctively Safawi poets so meagre.

E. G. B ro w n e considered it so rem arkable th at “ no g reat poet


should have arisen in Persia in days otherw ise so spacious and so
splendid as those o f the Safaw is” th at he w ro te to the Iranian
scholar MTrzä M u h am m ad K han QazvTnT to ask w h eth er he
agreed.
Q a z v în ïreplied: “ T here is at any rate no d o u b t that du rin g the
203
204 Iran under the Safavids
Safawi period literature and poetry in Persia had sunk to a very
lo w ebb, and that n o t one single poet o f the first rank can be
reckoned as representing this epoch.” Q azvïnï gave various
reasons for this phenom enon. First, the religious unification o f
Iran effected by the Safavids and the propagation o f the Ithnä
‘A sharï ShT‘I doctrine w hich, he said, was inim ical to literature,
poetry, Sufism and mysticism . P ointing to the persecution o f Süfîs
by the religious classes, he observed: “ the close connection
betw een poetry and Belles Lettres on the one hand, and Sufiïsm
and M ysticism on the other, at any rate in Persia, is obvious, so
that the extinction o f one necessarily involves the extinction and
destruction o f the other. Hence it was that under this dynasty
learning, culture, poetry and m ysticism com pletely deserted
Persia” , and he w en t on to accuse the Safavids o f utterly
destroying the cloisters, m onasteries, retreats and rest-houses o f
the Süfîs th ro u g h o u t Iran . “ In place o f great poets and philosophers
there arose theologians, great indeed but harsh, dry, fanatical and
form al, like the Majlisis, the M uhaqqiq-i thani, Shaykh H u rr-i-
A m uli and Shaykh-i-B aha’i, etc.” O n e m ay ask in passing, if the
atm osphere at the Safavid court was per se unconducive to the
com position o f poetry, ho w was it that m any Safavid poets
flourished at the three Shï‘ï courts in India: A hm adnagar, G ol-
conda and Bïjâpür?
T h e second reason adduced by Q azvïnï to account for the
dearth o f first-rate poets is the lack o f royal patronage and
encouragem ent. B o th Shäh Tahm äsp and ‘Abbas I are alleged to
have expressed the wish that panegyrics, on w hich co u rt poets to
a considerable extent relied for a living, should be addressed to
the Im am s rather than to themselves. Since royal patrons paid
b etter than the Im am s, the argum ent goes, m any Safavid poets
m oved to the M ogul court at D elhi w here the financial rew ards
w ere greater. So m any poets em igrated in this w ay that a w hole
genre o f Persian poetry, k n o w n as the sabk-i hindx, o r “ Indian
g e n re ” , was established by these Persian poets in self-im posed
exile.1
B ro w n e ’s generalisations on poetry under the Safavids w ere
sweeping enough, b u t M ïrzâ M uham m ad K han Q azvïnï extended
them to a blanket condem nation o f the entire Safavid period as
a cultural desert in w hich learning, poetry, m ysticism and even
philosophy w ere non-existent. It is a curious and, at first sight,
inexplicable phenom enon, as B row ne m ight have said, that these
Intellectual life under the Safavids 205
view s w ere accepted uncritically for several decades after B ro w n e ’s
death, as was his equally sw eeping condem nation o f Safavid
historiography, on w hich I shall com m ent later. Jan Rypka, in his
chapter on Safavid literature, opens w ith the w ords: “ T he
literature o f the Safavid period is usually regarded as a literature
o f decline” ,2 and he m akes the sw eeping generalisation that there
was a “ palpable lack o f interest in the poets, their w orks and their
burial-places” .3 This was the view n o t only o f W estern scholars
b u t o f m ost Iranians too, including the nineteenth-century critic
Rizâ Q u ll H idäyat and the poet-laureate B ahär, w ho died in
1951.4 It was n o t until Ehsan Y ar-S hater’s seminal paper, “ Safavid
L iterature: Progress o r D eclin e” , was published in 1974 that the
harsh view s expressed by B row ne, MTrzä M uham m ad K han
Q azvïnï, R ypka and others w ere subjected to any critical analysis
at all.5
QazvTnT’s second reason for the lack o f great p o etry in Safavid
Iran, nam ely, that the best poets had been attracted to the M og u l
co u rt b y the greater financial rew ards to be obtained there, has
considerable validity. U n d er the G reat M oguls, D elhi was
unquestionably the M ecca o f poets. T he M uslim courts o f India
had for centuries given generous support to Persian poets, some
o f w h o m , such as M as‘üd -i Sa‘d-i Salm an (d. 1131) and A m ir
K husraw o f D elhi (d. 1325), w ere o f the highest class. W ith the
establishm ent o f the M og u l em pire by B äbur in 1526, it was only
natural that this support should be on a m uch larger scale, because
B äbur, th o u g h descended fro m T ïm ü r on his father’s side and
claim ing descent from C hingiz K han on his m o th e r’s, had been
b o rn and raised in the Persian cultural m ilieu o f Transoxania.
Persian was the language in use at the M ogul court, and m any
o f the M ogul princes com posed p o etry in Persian themselves.
T h eir exam ple o f generous patronage o f Persian poets was
follow ed b y their viziers and other m em bers o f the nobility. T he
M ogul em perors A kbar (1556—1605), Jahangir (1605—27) and
Shäh Jahän (1628—58), assembled brilliant gatherings o f Persian
poets at their courts. “ N o w onder, then, that anyone in Persia
w h o aspired to the w ritin g o f p o etry conceived the desire o f
travelling to India and trying his fortune th ere.” 6
Great is India, the Mecca for all in need,
Particularly for those w ho seek safety.
A journey to India is incumbent upon any man
W ho has acquired adequate know ledge and skill.
206 Iran under the Safavids
So w ro te the son-in-law o f the celebrated Safavid philosopher
M ulla Sadrä Shïrâzî.7 It is no w onder, then, that the bulk o f the
p o etry com posed in Persia by Persian poets during the Safavid
period was w ritten in India. Aziz A hm ad considers that if the
patronage o f the Safavid shahs m ade less im pact on Safavid poets,
and the latter m igrated to India, “ the probable reason is the
greater w ealth and richer econom ic resources o f India at that stage
o f h isto ry ” .8
W h en full allowance has been m ade for the fact that the grass
for poets appeared greener o n the M ogul side o f the hill, it m ust
be firm ly stated that the view expounded by Q azvïnï and m any
others, nam ely, that the Safavid shahs did n o t encourage poets,
is a fallacy. A part from the fact that several o f the shahs themselves
com posed poetry, they and other m em bers o f the royal fam ily
w ere patrons o f poets and bibliophiles, calligraphers and musicians.
Shah Ism â‘ïl I com posed p o e try o f no m ean m erit in  zarï
T urkish u nder the pen-nam e o f K hatâ’ï. Sultan M uham m ad Shäh
com posed p oetry under the pen-nam e o f Fahm ï. T he concom itant
fallacy, that all Safavid shahs directed that panegyrics be w ritten
in praise o f the Im am s rath er than o f themselves seems to have
its origin in the follow ing extract from the chronicle o f Iskandar
B eg M u nshï about Shäh T ahm äsp:
List o f poets w ho were still in full spate at the death o f Shah Tahmäsp.
The number o f poets w ho were still flourishing at that time, either
at court or in the provinces, was legion. Early in his reign, Shäh
Tahmäsp gave special consideration to the class o f poets, and for a time
Mïrzâ Sharaf Jahän and Mawlänä Hayratï were companions at the
Shah’s table and other social gatherings. During the latter part o f his
life, however, w hen the Shah took more seriously the Q ur’anic
prescription to “ do what is right and eschew e v il” , he no longer
accounted poets pious and upright men, because o f the know n addiction
o f m any o f them to the bottle, and he ceased to regard them w ith favour,
and refused to allow them to present to him occasional pieces and
eulogistic odes. O n one occasion, Mawlänä Muhtasham Kâshï had
written an ode in praise o f the Shäh, and another eulogising Parï Khan
Khanum, and had sent them from Käshän. Pari Khän Khänum had
presented the former to Tahmäsp, w ho remarked: “ I am not w illing
to allow poets to pollute their tongues w ith praises o f me ; let them write
eulogies o f ‘AIT and the other infallible Imams. Tell him to look first
for his reward to the holy spirits o f the Imäms, and after that to hope
for a reward from me. He has used far-fetched metaphors and profound
images, and attributed them, most inappropriately, to kings; whereas,
Intellectual life under the Safavids 207

had he applied these metaphors and images to the holy Imams, it w ould
have been impossible to use expressions too extravagant to describe their
exalted rank.” In short, Mawlänä Muhtasham did not receive any
reward for his ode. W hen the Mawlänä received the Shäh’s reply, he
despatched to him a w ork by the late Mawlänä Hasan KäshT on the
Imäm ‘AIT, which he had put into verse in the form o f a haft-band9 —
a really inspired piece o f w ork —and in reward for this he received a
fitting present. At once all the poets at court set to work, madly writing
haft-bands, and fifty or sixty poems rained dow n on the Shäh, and their
authors were all rewarded.10

This account by Iskandar B eg M unshI, enlivened by the usual


touches o f the a u th o r’s delightful h u m o u r, m akes it clear that
QazvTnT’s strictures are entirely w ith o u t foundation. In the first
place, d uring the earlier part o f his reign, T ahm äsp n o t only acted
as a p atro n o f poets b u t m ade them his intim ates. Later in his life,
w hen he becam e m ore puritanical and unw illing to condone the
convivial habits o f som e poets, he directed that eulogies o f him
be redirected to the Im am s. N o t only did the poets not go
unrew arded, how ever, b u t it appears that the rew ards w ere
sufficiently generous to stim ulate greater poetic o u tp u t and to
persuade the poets o f the advantages o f rem aining at the Safavid
court.
Sim ilarly, Shah ‘Abbâs I valued and encouraged poets. H e
appointed poets to the position o f poet-laureate, and “ at least once
h e paid a p oet (ShämT) the equivalent o f his w eight in gold as a
m ark o f his ap p reciatio n ” .11 O n his visits to coffee-houses, ‘Abbas
I used to listen to poets reciting verses, and som etim es encouraged
them to try their hand at extem pore versification.12 W ith the
exception o f the em peror Jahangir, the M o g u l em perors on the
w hole did n o t appreciate p oetry them selves; the poets w ho
th ro n g ed their co u rt w ere there for decorative purposes, to
enhance th e prestige o f their court. T he Safavid shahs, on the other
hand, n o t only personally appreciated poetry, b u t their relations
w ith poets w ere often o f a m uch m o re intim ate nature than w ere
those betw een the M o g u l court poets and the M og u l em perors.13
U n til recently, it did n o t occur to anyone that the p oetry
w ritten by Persian poets at the M og u l court m ig h t be called
“ Safavid” . M any Iranian critics asserted that it was n o t even
w ritten in goo d Persian. T he term “ the Indian g e n re ” was used
as a pejorative term , denoting p oetry w ritten in Persian but o f
208 Iran under the Safavids
an inferior kind. Shäh T ahm äsp’s brother, Säm MTrzä, in his
contem porary notices on these poets, considered them to be
superior to the poets o f the past, b u t the critics o f subsequent
centuries becam e m ore and m ore censorious: “ T he substance is
w ro n g , the m eaning is w rong, and the style is w ro n g ; all is
w ro n g ” (HazTn, d. 1766); “ A fter Sä’ib, w ho was the instigator
o f this n ew distasteful style, the level o f p o etry continued daily
in decline, until this tim e o f ours, w hen, thanks be to G od, their
fabrications have com pletely fallen into disuse and the rule o f
the old m asters rev iv ed ” (L utf ‘AIT Âzar BegdïlT, 1711—81);
“ U n d e r the T urcom ans and the Safavids, reprehensible styles
appeared. . .and since there w ere no binding rules for lyrics, the
poets, follow ing their sick natures and distorted tastes, began to
w rite confused, vain and nonsensical poem s ” (H idäyat, 1800-72) ;
and finally B ahär (d. 1951):

The Indian style possessed novelty,


But had very many failings,
It was infirm and spineless,
Its ideas were feeble, its imagery odd.
The poems were crowded w ith ideas, but unattractive;
They were wanting in eloquence.14

C o n fro n ted w ith such a chorus o f disapproval, it m ay seem


foolhardy to question this apparently unanim ous opinion. O n
closer exam ination, how ever, w e find that som e o f our w o rth y
critics discredit themselves. HazTn, w e discover, n o t only “ con­
sidered his contem porary poets im p o rtan t enough to com pile a
laudatory biography o f th e m ” , b u t com posed n o less than five
divans (collections) o f p oetry in the despised “ In d ian ” style!15
H idäyat, too, discredits him self totally as a critic by purp o rtin g
to see n o virtue in any Persian p oetry after the Seljuq period w ith
the exception o f the p oetry o f Häfiz, “ w hose ghazals have been
w ell appreciated by the adm irers o f form and substance” (but
n o t, apparently, by H idäyat?); and one cannot b u t have doubts
about the literary ju d g em e n t o f even the celebrated Bahär w hen
he claims that the period o f Fath ‘AIT Shäh (1797—1834) was “ a
brilliant period o f poetry, similar to that o f Sultän M ah m ü d o f
G h azn a” .16 Perhaps the criticisms o f L u t f ‘AIT Â zar B egdïlï and
B ahär, how ever, contain clues w hich m ay account for this barrage
o f vitu p eration from the literary critics. Äzar refers to “ this new
Intellectual life under the Safavids 209
distasteful sty le” , and sighs w ith relief w hen poets retu rn to
w ritin g in the old, approved w ay ; and B ahär refers to the
“ n o v e lty ” o f the “ Indian g e n re ” , and adm its that the po etry o f
the “ In d ian ” school was “ crow ded w ith ideas” , although he
fo u n d the ideas unattractive. C ould the disapproval o f the Safavid
poets on the p art o f the literary establishm ent be ro o ted m ainly
in a dislike o f their use o f n ew them es expressed in a n ew style?
If so, the breaking o f new g ro u n d b y the Safavid poets w o u ld be
exactly analogous to the introduction o f new them es by Safavid
artists and their use o f a m ore realistic style o f painting w hich
represented a definite departure from the accepted style (see
C hapter 6).
B efore discussing this idea, let us return to the question as to
w h eth er the “ Indian g e n re ” o f Persian po etry can be considered
“ Safavid” poetry. Interestingly enough, som e Iranian critics are
n o w asserting that it can. Som e even wish to call it the “ Isfahan!”
school, “ on the grounds th at it was largely fostered in Isfahan at
the tim e o f the Safavids” .17 It looks as though at least some
Iranians are n o w ready to reclaim this part o f their literary
heritage. Perhaps it is tim e to drop the term “ Indian g e n re ” , w ith
its autom atic im plication that here is som ething alien to the
Persian literary tradition, and substitute “ Safavid g e n re ” . This
w o u ld enable these novel ideas w hich so upset the critics to be
view ed w ith in the Persian literary tradition rather than as
som ething external to it, as an aberration. For it is essential n o t
to lose sight o f the fact that n o t only the contem porary Persian
critics, b u t also the contem porary O tto m a n and Indian critics,
w ho w ere far m ore num erous, w ere in agreem ent that the Safavid
period was one o f great literary m erit. Indeed, outside Iran itself,
in India, A fghanistan, T ransoxania and T urkey, w here the Persian
cultural tradition continued to reign suprem e during the nine­
teenth century, the “ Safavid g e n re ” continued to flourish until
literary trends from the W est began to m ake their im p act.18 I
regard it as highly significant that Shiblï N u 'm â n ï (d. 1914)
devoted the w hole o f one volum e o f his five-volum e w o rk S h ir
a l-A ja m to a study o f seven m ajor poets o f the Safavid period,
O f these seven poets - ‘U rfi, Sä’ib, Faghänl, Fayzï, N azïrï, T älib-i
A m u lï and A bü T âlib K alîm —only one, Fayzï, was born in India.
For Shiblï N u m a n I, the decline o f Persian poetry occurred no t
in the Safavid period, bu t in the eighteenth century, after the fall
2 1 0 Iran under the Safavids
o f the Safavid em pire and the decline o f the M o g u l em pire,19 and
I agree entirely w ith Ehsan Y ar-Shater that N u 'm â n ï’s w o rk is
still the best history o f Persian literature fro m early times to the
end o f the seventeenth century.
I f one accepts the arg u m en t that a ju st assessment o f Safavid
p o etry cannot be m ade w ith o u t including w ith in one’s p u rv iew
the w orks o f the so-called “ Indian g e n re ” school, w h at are the
distinguishing characteristics o f Safavid poetry, and w hat w ere the
literary canons o f the Safavid period? In the first place, the Safavid
poets did n o t consider their poetry to be p art o f a “ literature o f
declin e” . O n the contrary, the m ajor poets o f the period
considered themselves to be poets o f a very h ig h order, and they
“ also considered their period one o f literary prosperity and fertile
im agination. In their estim ation, this age had given b irth to
thousands o f fresh poetic ideas and had excelled other periods by
the subtlety o f its thought, the richness o f its substance and the
n o v elty o f its im ag ery .” T he Safavid poets looked less to the
m odels o f the past, and had sufficient confidence in themselves and
their contem poraries to adopt the m etres and rhym es o f their
contem poraries, rather than those o f the great masters o f the past,
and incorporate them in their ow n w o rk .20
W h a t w ere the “ fresh poetic ideas” on w hich Safavid poets
prid ed themselves? Ehsan Y ar-Shater, in his im p o rtan t article on
Safavid literature from w hich I have quoted frequently in this
chapter, lists a n u m b er o f them and gives exam ples o f each. T hey
include: the use o f a novel simile or m etap h o r; variations on older
them es and im agery; the unusually subtle expression o f an
em o tio n such as jealousy; and the use o f novel verbal w itticism s
and conceits and rhetorical devices. T he use o f such devices is not
considered a defect in Persian p o etry ; quite the contrary. T he
m ere expression o f an idea w ill w in a Persian poet little applause
fro m his com patriots; w hat m atters is the apt and above all
ingenious and sophisticated expression o f the idea. As a result,
w h a t m ay appear to the W estern reader over-elaborated o r even
artificial verse w ill n o t seem so to an Iranian. “ T o call rhetorical
devices ‘ em bellishing5 devices, as they have often been called, is
m isleading. Persian p o etry is essentially rhetorical.” 21 In the course
o f “ striving for novelty and for exploring subtle and ingenious
id eas” , Safavid poets succeeded “ in producting terse, pithy
epigram m atic lines or clusters o f lines, w hich are n o t to be found
Intellectual life under the Safavids 2 1 1

in the po etry o f other p erio d s” . It is this feature, says Yar-Shater,


and this feature alone, w hich is the unique characteristic o f Safavid
po etry and represents progress from the poetry o f earlier periods,
and it is the “ intensity o f this quality w hich has bestow ed on
Safavid po etry the title o f a n ew style” .22 O f this n ew Safavid
style, Sä’ib was the suprem e exponent. E. G. B row ne, though
he thinks th at “ Rieu goes too far w hen he describes Sä’ib as ‘by
co m m o n consent the creator o f a n ew style o f poetry, and the
greatest o f m o dern Persian p o e ts’,” is prepared to assert that
Sä’ib “ is w ith o u t doubt the greatest o f those w ho flourished in
the seventeenth century o f our era, and, I think, the only one
deserving a detailed notice in this volum e ” .23 In his younger days,
B ro w n e rated Sä’ib am ong the greatest Persian poets o f all ages,
for, he tells us,
Nearly forty years ago (in 1885) I read through the Persian portion o f
that volum e o f the great trilingual anthology entitled Kharäbät which
deals w ith the lyrical verse o f the Arabs, Turks and Persians, both odes
and isolated verses, and copied into a note-book which n ow lies before
me those which pleased m e most, irrespective o f authorship; and,
though many o f the 443 fragments and isolated verses which I selected
are anonymous, more than one-tenth o f the total (45) are by Sä’ib.24

Y ar-Shater com m ents ironically that “ B row ne need no t have felt


asham ed o f his choice.” 25 Sä’ib, at any rate, was n o t altogether
deprived o f that appreciation in his ow n country w hich B row ne
sees as the m ain reason w h y Safavid poets em igrated to India, for,
on his return to Isfahän, his native city, he was m ade poet-laureate
b y Shäh ‘Abbäs II.
Incontrovertible evidence that Safavid poetry did constitute a
n ew style o f p o etry seems to m e to be provided by the nature
o f the com m ents, both adverse and favourable, m ade on it by
eighteenth- and nineteenth-century critics. For exam ple, Tälib-i
ÄmulTis criticised because “ he had a peculiar style in verse w hich
is n o t sought after by elegant p o e ts” .26 Rizä Q ui! K hän H idäyat
said that Sä’ib “ had a strange style in the poetic art w hich is not
n o w a d m ire d ” .27 Shiblï N u ‘m anï says o f FaghänT o f Shïrâz (w ith
approval) that he was “ the creator o f a new style o f p o e try ” .28
E. J. W . G ibb, in his History o f Ottoman Poetry, speaking o f ‘U rfi
and Fayzï, tw o m ore Safavid poets com posing poetry in the
despised “ Indian g e n re ” , says that “ after Jâm ï, ‘Urfi" and Fayzï
w ere the chief Persian influences on T urkish poetry until they
30. The poet laureate Shifa’ï
Intellectual life under the Safavids 213
w ere superseded by Sa’i b ” , and he refers to the novelty o f their
style and the fact that they introduced a n u m b er o f fresh term s
in to the conventional vocabulary o f p o etry .29
N aturally, the “ Safavid g e n re ” carried w ithin itself the germ
o f its o w n decline, and eventually over-elaboration and an excess
o f com plex rhetorical devices led to artificiality. Som etim es, too,
the quality o f the vocabulary did no t m atch the loftiness o f the
th o u g h t expressed. T w o further novel features o f Safavid poetry
should be m entioned: first, the “ language o f the streets” crept
in to the p o etry to a rather greater degree than was acceptable to
those trained in the classical tradition; second, there was less
concern for linguistic p u rity during the Safavid period. A.
Bausani attributes these trends to the “ replacem ent at c o u rt. . . o f
the class o f secretaries and literary m en by that o f the S h fite clergy,
w hich had little or no particular taste for classical p o e try ” .30
T here m ay be som e tru th in this, bu t I do no t agree that the
secretarial and literary class disappeared from the Safavid court,
except possibly in the final days o f the decline o f the Safavid state
w hen the religious classes exerted a stranglehold on affairs. T he
great Safavid historiographer, Iskandar Beg M unshI, was him self
n o t only a m em ber o f the class o f high-ranking court secretaries
and liked to com pose verse, b u t he m entions m any m em bers o f
the bureaucratic class w ho w ere cultured m en and appreciated fine
literature. In any case, the m ost brilliant exponents o f the “ Safavid
g e n re ” spent m ost o f their lives at the M ogul co u rt and w ere
therefore n o t subject to the alleged religious pressures o f the
Safavid court.
I suggest that the predom inantly m ilitary character o f the
Safavid state at least up to the tim e o f Shah ‘Abbas I m ay have
been far m o re responsible for these new linguistic trends. M any
qizilbäsh amirs resided at court, and held high adm inistrative office,
and m ilitary m en, at least since the tim e o fju liu s Caesar, have been
noted for brevity and directness and earthiness o f speech. A nother
factor w hich should be noted is that the qizilbäsh norm ally spoke
their ÄzarT brand o f T urkish at court, as did the Safavid shahs
them selves; lack o f fam iliarity w ith the Persian language m ay
have contributed to a decline from the pure classical standards o f
form er times. Furtherm ore, the “ language o f the streets” did not
m ake its first appearance in Persian poetry in Safavid times. It had
been present from at least the M ongol period, and one has only to
214 Iran under the Safavids
exam ine the great mystical epic o fjalâl al-DTn R ü m î (1207—73) to
see this. It is no coincidence that the Persian qasîda, or form al ode,
reached its peak in Seljuq times w ith such brilliant practitioners
as A nvarl, M uhzzî, K hâqânï and ‘U nsuri. F rom the M ongol
period onw ards, the ghazal (lyric) and mathnavï (poem , usually
long, in rh y m ed couplets) becam e the m ost popular Persian
verse-form s, and each o f these verse-form s lent itself to the use
o f the “ language o f the streets” m ore readily than did the qasîda,
w ith its rigid conventions.31 R. A. N icholson, in his translation
o f the M athnavî-yi M a 'navi o fjalâl al-DTn R üm î, w ould n o t have
deem ed it necessary to translate so m any passages into Latin rather
than English had he n o t considered these passages too vulgar (in
every sense o f the w ork) for refined ears.
As w e have seen, QazvTnT’s p erem p to ry dismissal o f Safavid
p o etry extended to Safavid literature as a w hole and indeed to
m ost form s o f Safavid intellectual activity. T he uncritical con­
dem nation o f Safavid po etry by the m ajority o f both W estern and
Iranian scholars is paralleled b y their extraordinary neglect o f a
m ajor branch o f literature in w hich the Safavid period is rich —
historiography. H . A. R. G ibb, in his long article on Islamic
historiography (“ T a ’rlk h ” ) in the Supplem ent to the Encyclopaedia
o f Islam (1938) appeared unaw are o f the existence o f Safavid
historiography, and offered only the m ysterious com m ent, “ Per­
sian historiography also suffered from the sectarian isolation o f
Persia” .32 E. G. B row ne, on the oth er hand, was aw are that the
materials w ere am ple, b u t asserted that to anyone n o t specially
interested in m ilitary m atters the Safavid historical chronicles
w ere “ very dull and arduous read in g ” ; “ even from the point o f
view o f h isto ry ,” he said, “ they are vitiated by overw helm ing
masses o f trivial details and absence o f any breadth o f view or
clearness o f o u tlin e ” .33
As in the case o f Safavid poetry, it is only in quite recent times
th at scholars b o th in Iran and in the W est have begun to reassess
these judgem ents. It is only in the last tw en ty years or so that some
Iranian historians have begun to see the Safavids in their proper
light, as the founders o f m odern Iran. P rior to that, it was the
fashion to blam e the Safavids for the political and econom ic
weakness o f Iran at the beginning o f the nineteenth century, a
weakness w hich enabled the G reat Pow ers progressively to
interfere in and gain control o f Iranian affairs. This view ignored
Intellectual life under the Safavids 215

the fact that the com plex but functional centralised system
developed b y the Safavids was largely destroyed b y the actions
o f N a d ir Shäh and by the civil w ar betw een the Z ands and the
Qäjärs during the second h alf o f the eighteenth century. O thers
have attributed the slow progress m ade byx Iran during the
nineteenth century in the direction o f social or econom ic reform
to the entrenched p o w er o f the religious classes, and have seen this
entrenched p o w er as a direct legacy o f the Safavid period. This
view ignores the fact that the religious classes attained a position
o f dom inance in the Safavid state only under the last representative
o f that dynasty, Shäh Sultan H usayn, whose reign m arked a rapid
decline in Safavid fortunes. T he gradually changing attitude in
Iran to w ard the Safavid period has led to the publication o f an
increasing n u m b er o f historical texts, w hich in turn has facilitated
m o re detailed study o f the period. T he doyen o f Safavid histori­
ographers is n o w recognised by leading Islamic scholars to be
that same Iskandar B eg M unshï whose w o rk was so severely
castigated by E. G. B row ne. M . G. S. H odgson, in his m onum ental
w o rk , The Venture o f Islam, spoke o f the “judicious accuracy” o f
Iskandar B eg ’s History o f Shäh ‘Abbas the Great, o f “ its psycho­
logical perceptiveness, and the broad interest it manifests in the
ram ifications o f the events it traces” .34 A. K. S. L am bton has
d raw n attention to the unique character and the great value o f
the biographical m aterial contained in Iskandar B eg’s H istory *5
a n d j. R. W alsh has assessed it as n o t only a great w o rk o f Safavid
and o f Iranian historiography, b u t as “ one o f the greatest o f all
Islamic historical w orks and, indeed, perfect w ithin the lim itations
o f its trad itio n s” .36

P H I L O S O P H Y AND METAP HYS I CS

In w hat m ust by n o w be becom ing for the reader a m onotonous


refrain, I am constrained to state that the Safavid contribution to
Iranian and Islamic philosophy has also, until recent times, either
been underestim ated or held n o t to exist at all. It had been w idely
assumed, on evidence no m ore valid than the evidence for the
“ non-existence” o f Safavid p o etry or the “ non-existence” o f
Safavid historiography, that Islamic philosophy came to a dead
stop after the end o f the classical period o f Islam. M ost histories
o f M uslim philosophy by W estern scholars consider Ibn Rushd,
2 1 6 Iran under the Safavids
k n o w n in the W est as A verroës, w ho was b o rn at C ordoba in 1126
and died in 1198, as the last M uslim philosopher; occasionally
Ihn K haldün, w ho was bo rn at T unis in 1332 and died in Cairo
in 1406, is b ro u g h t w ithin their pu rv iew .37 B ut Ibn K haldün,
one o f the greatest thinkers o f the Islamic M iddle Ages, was
a philosopher o f history and o f society rather than a “ p u re ”
philosopher ; indeed, he has been called the “ father o f sociology ” ;
in any case, de B oer considers h im “ a unique and isolated
phenom enon, w ithout forerunners and w ith o u t successors” .38
This m istaken view o f Islamic philosophy was adopted by m odern
A rab, Pakistani and Indian scholars, “ m any o f w h o m rely
prim arily on w orks o f m odern orientalists for their know ledge
o f the history o f Islamic philosophy and are unaw are o f the
im portance o f the IshräqT school, perhaps because it was prim arily
in Persia that this fo rm o f w isdom found its hom e and w here it
has subsisted to the present tim e ” .39
T he resurrection o f the im portant Ishraqiyya or “ Illum ina­
tio n ist” school o f Iranian philosophy, and the active study o f the
philosophers o f the Safavid period, are largely the w o rk o f the
French Iranologist H enri C orbin and the Iranian scholar Seyyed
Hossein Nasr. T he founder o f this school o f philosophy was
Shihäb al-DTn Yahyä SuhravardT, w ho was bo rn in 1153 in the
village o f Suhravard near Zanjän in Azarbäyjän, and died in jail
in A leppo in i r ç r , the victim o f the hostility o f the 4ulamä, or
theologians. T h o u g h only thirty -eig h t at the tim e o f his death,
SuhravardT was the author o f over fifty w orks, w hich Seyyed
Hossein N asr has classified in five categories: m ajor didactic and
doctrinal w orks dealing w ith Peripatetic philosophy as m odified
and interpreted by SuhravardT, and w ith the IshräqT or ‘‘Illum i­
na tio n ist” theosophy w hich he developed from this doctrinal
foundation; shorter treatises dealing w ith the same m aterial in
sim pler language; m ystical narratives; translation o f and com ­
m entaries on earlier philosophic w orks; and missals similar to
the B ooks o f the H ours fam iliar to C hristian Europe.40
T he basis o f SuhravardT’s IshräqT w isdom is that there is a
universal and perennial w isdom w hich unites the rational and
esoteric strands o f philosophy; this universal w isdom , he says,
existed am ong the ancient H indus and Persians, Babylonians and
Egyptians, and am ong the Greeks up to the tim e o f A ristotle;
A ristotle, in his view , term inated this tradition o f w isdom and
Intellectual life under the Safavids 217

restricted it by confining philosophy to its rational aspect and


ign o rin g its esoteric side. It follow ed logically from this view o f
the history o f philosophy that SuhravardI considered his intel­
lectual and spiritual forebears to be n o t the w ell-know n Islamic
philosophers like A vicenna (Ibn SInä: 980—1037), w ho based their
w o rk largely on A ristotle, b u t the early Islamic m ystics and the
pre-A ristotelian G reek philosophers such as Pythagoras and Plato,
and, subsequently, the neo-Platonists.41 H e aim ed at n o t only the
form al training o f the m ind, b u t the purification o f the soul. In
o th er w ords, Suhravardi asserted the im portance in philosophical
th o u g h t o f intellectual intuition, contem plation and ascetic prac­
tices, as well as o f discursive reasoning. H e used the Z oroastrian
sym bolism o f light and darkness w ith o u t subscribing to the
form al dualism o f that faith, although som e m o d ern scholars
have accused h im o f harbouring anti-Islam ic sentim ents and o f
attem pting to revive Z oroastrianism against Islam.42
Various philosophers and thinkers o f the thirteenth, fourteenth
and fifteenth centuries com m ented on S u hravardf s w orks, b u t it
was in the Safavid period that his teachings cam e in to full bloom
and pro fo u n d ly influenced Islamic intellectual life.43 SuhravardI’s
ideas w ere revived and developed principally by tw o Safavid
philosophers, M ir D äm äd (d. 1631/2), w h o significantly adopted
the pen-nam e o f Ishräq, and M ulla Sadrä (d. 1640/1). M ir D äm äd
was the sobriquet o f M ir M uham m ad B äqir o f A staräbäd w ho
lived m ost o f his life at Isfahan and stood high in the favour o f
Shäh ‘Abbas the Great. D espite the high regard Shäh cAbbäs had
for M ir D äm äd and for the other em inent theologians and
philosophers at his court, he knew h o w to keep th em in their
place. T he mujtahids, by and large, w ere content w ith their lot
u n d er the Safavid shahs because, although the shahs had usurped
their prerogative to act as the general agency o f the H idden Im äm ,
they still w ielded m uch m ore p o w er w ith o u t this prerogative in
the Shi4! state established by the Safavids, than they had wielded
w hen they still possessed this prerogative u n d er a S unni regim e.
‘Abbäs I used to boast that his reign was free from the quarrels
betw een m en o f religion w hich had u nder his predecessors
threatened the tranquillity o f the state. A n anecdote quoted by
B ro w n e 44 m akes it clear that M ir D äm äd knew h o w to m ake his
opinions palatable to b o th the Shäh and to the theologians. A fter
M ir D äm äd ’s death, his pupil and son-in-law M ullä Sadrä saw
2l8 Iran under the Safavids
his ghost in a dream and said, “ M y views do not differ from
yours, yet I am denounced as an infidel and you are not. W h y is
th is? ” “ Because,” replied M ir D äm äd ’s spirit, “ I have w ritten
on Philosophy in such wise that the theologians are unable to
understand m y m eaning, b u t only the philosophers; w hile you
w rite about philosophical questions in such a m anner that every
dom inie and hedge-priest w ho sees yo u r book understands w hat
y o u m ean and dubs you an unbeliever.”
M ulla Sadrä w ent further than M ir D äm äd in attem pting to
synthesise the rationalist tradition o f A vicenna and the intuitive
tradition o f SuhravardT w ithin Shihte esotericism. He m ade
a grand synthesis of all the major intellectual perspectives of nearly a
thousand years o f Islamic intellectual life before him. The teachings of
the Quran, of the Holy Prophet and the Imams, of the Peripatetic
philosophers, o f the Illuminationist theosophers and of the Süfîs were
like so many colours of the rainbow which became unified and
harmonized in the transcendent theosophy (al-hikmat al-muta äliyah) of
Mulla Sadrä. N o other figure of the Safavid period characterizes as
well as Mulla Sadrä the special genius of this age for intellectual synthesis
and the expression o f unity in multiplicity, which is also so evident in
the extremely rich art of the age.45
Sadr al-DTn Shïrâzî, kno w n as M ulla Sadrä (1571/2—1640/1)
“ is one o f the greatest intellectual figures o f Islam, although his
doctrines have long rem ained in obscurity outside the group o f
disciples w ho have kept his teachings alive in Persia and in certain
centers in India until the present d a y ” .46 A ccording to Seyyed
Hossein Nasr, the reason w hy not only the w orks o f M ulla Sadrä,
b u t also the w orks o f all the m em bers o f the IshräqT school o f
Iranian theosophy, have been overlooked by W estern scholars
until recent times, is that, unlike the w orks o f those Islamic
philosophers and theologians whose w orks w ere influential in the
form ation o f m ediaeval W estern scholasticism, their w orks w ere
never translated into L atin.47 A fter M ullä Sadrä had com pleted
his education in the transm itted and intellectual sciences, his “ too
carefree exposition o f esoteric do ctrin es” and his “ open defense
and propagation o f gnostic d octrines” incurred the w rath o f the
o rth o d o x theologians.48 Fortunately for M ullä Sadrä, his father,
M ir Q aväm al-DTn Shîrâzî, was the personal vazxr (minister) o f
the Q ueen, M ahd-i ‘U lyä, w ho w ielded the real pow er in the state
(see C hapter 3). B ut for his father’s influence at court, M ullä Sadrä
Intellectual life under the Safavids 219

m ig h t have suffered the same fate as had been experienced b y the


founder o f the Ishräql school, Shihâb al-D ïn Y ahyä SuhravardI,
in the tw elfth century. As a result o f the attacks o f the theologians,
M ulla Sadrä retired to a village near Q u m w here he spent a long
period, variously given as seven and fifteen years, in m editation.
A t the end o f that tim e, he returned to his native city at the
invitation o f the celebrated A llähverdI K han, then G o v ernor-
G eneral o f Färs, and was actively engaged in teaching and w riting
there until his death in 1640/1. U n d e r his direction, the school
at Shiraz becom e one o f the principal centres o f learning in Iran
and drew students from m any parts o f the Islamic w o rld .49
T h e cardinal point o f M ulla Sadrä’s th o u g h t is that neither
rational enquiry n o r intuitive speculation can by itself lead the
enquirer to a com plete vision o f the tru th ; w hat is needed is a
fusion o f the tw o. M ulla Sadrä spent the first period o f his life
perfecting his form al know ledge and learning ; the second period
was spent in m editation and ascetic practices; during the final
period o f his life, at Shlräz, he am algam ated the exoteric and
the esoteric know ledge he had thus acquired and harm onised
philosophy an d revelation in a great o u tpouring o f m etaphysical
w orks. O n e o f these, the Asfar, is “ one o f the greatest m onum ents
o f m etaphysics in Islam ” ; it “ deals w ith the origin and end o f
all cosmic m anifestation and in particular the hum an so u l” .50
M ullä Sadrä was not, o f course, the first M uslim intellectual to
attem p t to co-ordinate faith and reason o r science and religion;
b u t no one before him had attem pted a synthesis on such a
vast scale, interw eaving the strands o f Islamic revelation; o f
A ristotelian and neo-Platonic th o u g h t; o f the “ Illum inationist”
theosophy o f SuhravardI; and o f the gnostic doctrines o f the
A ndalusian intellectual Ibn ‘A rabl. T h e w ay in w hich these
various strands are united, and the m anner in w hich the distinctive
features o f M ulla Sadrä’s doctrines are “ developed, harm onized,
presented w ith dem onstrative proofs and correlated w ith revealed
truths is unm istakably his ow n. O ne can, therefore, say w ith every
justification that n o t only did M ullä Sadrä revive the study o f
m etaphysics in the Safavid period b u t also he established a new
intellectual perspective and founded the last original school o f
w isdom in Islam ” .51 M ullä Sadrä’s th o u g h t is o f especial relevance
to a W estern w o rld w hich, as it loses faith in the ability o f
rationalism and scientific th o u g h t to provide the ultim ate answer
220 Iran under the Safavids
to the secrets o f the universe, is inclined to tu rn in desperation to
the “ abysm al terrors o f the irrational and the subconscious. M ullä
Sadrä offers a w o rld view in w hich reason preserves its p ro p er role
w hile rem aining subservient to the intellect w hich is at once its
origin and source o f inspiration.” 52

S CI ENCE AND M E D I C I N E

Ever since the A rab conquest o f Iran in the seventh century a . d .,


Persians had excelled in those branches o f science w hich w ere
considered unsuitable for Arabs to study: philosophy, logic,
m edicine, m athem atics, astronom y, astrology, music, m echanics
and alchem y.53 In the pre-M ongol period, Iran produced tw o
outstanding m athem aticians: the n inth-century al-K hvârazm ï,
from w hose nam e the term “ a lg o rith m ” is derived and the title
o f w hose book, al-jabr wa’l-muqäbala, p robably gave rise to the
w o rd “ alg eb ra” ; and the eleventh-century ‘U m a r K hayyam ,
w h o carried on al-K hvârazm ï’s w o rk and gave “ a com plete
classification o f the form s o f cubic equations and constructed a
geom etrical solution for each ty p e ” .54 In addition, Iran was the
birthplace o f one o f the greatest geniuses o f the m ediaeval w orld,
al-B ïrünî (973—1048), a veritable p o ly m ath w h o w ro te w orks
n o t only on astronom y and m athem atics b u t also on physics,
geography, history and medicine. T he outstanding Iranian scientist
and thinker o f the thirteenth century was N asïr al-D ïn Tüsï,
m athem atician, astronom er and philosopher, w hose w o rk was so
prized by his patron, the M ongol Ilkhän H ülegii, that the latter
in 1259 built him a new observatory at his capital, M arägha in
Ä zarbäyjän. T here, N asïr al-D ïn T üsï drew up the astronom ical
tables k n o w n as the “ Tlkhânï” tables, and his “ Treatise on the
Q u ad rilateral” represented a considerable advance on previous
w o rk in the field o f spherical trigonom etry.
B y the sixteenth century, Islamic science, w hich in large part
m eant Persian science, was resting on its laurels. A l-H â w ï, the
encyclopaedic w o rk o f the Iranian physician al-Râzï (know n to
the W est as Rhazes), first translated into Latin in 1279 under the
title Liber Continens, was still a standard textbook in E uropean
universities. B y 1542, five editions o f this “ vast and costly w o r k ”
had appeared.55 T he fact that this w o rk was still in general use
m ore than six centuries after the date o f its com pilation is eloquent
Intellectual life under the Safavids 221

testim ony to its status in the m edical w o rld , b u t also suggests that
n o t m uch progress had been m ade in the science o f m edicine since
the tim e o f al-Râzî (ca 865—925), “ the greatest physician o f the
Islamic w o rld and one o f the great physicians o f all tim e ” .56 Even
m o re popular am ong physicians had been the w o rk o f his
fellow -Iranian, A vicenna, w hose massive al-Qänün fi'l-T ib b
(Canon o f Medicine), had been translated into Latin by G erard o f
C rem ona in the tw elfth century. Such was the dem and for this
w o rk that “ in the last th irty years o f the fifteenth century it was
issued sixteen times —fifteen editions being in Latin and one in
H e b re w ” , and “ was reissued m ore than tw en ty times during the
sixteenth c e n tu ry ” ; the b o o k “ continued to be printed and read
in to the second h a lf o f the seventeenth c e n tu ry ” .57
T he status o f physicians during the Safavid period stood as high
as ever. W hereas neither the Greeks n o r the R om ans accorded
h ig h social status to their doctors, Iranians had from ancient times
h o n o u red their physicians, w h o w ere often the counsellors o f
kings and som etim es reached the exalted rank o f vizier. In Safavid
times, the hakïm-bâshï, or C h ie f Physician, was an im p o rtan t
official at court. B u t w hat was the state o f m edicine under the
Safavids? A vicenna’s Canon was still one o f the tw o principal
textbooks studied b y m edical students. Since the Canon had been
w ritten in A rabic, and m edical students in Safavid tim es did n o t
always possess a know ledge o f that language, a large n u m b er o f
com m entaries on the Canon was available in Persian.58 Physiology
was still based on the four h u m o u rs o f ancient and m ediaeval
m edicine. B leeding and purging w ere still the principal form s o f
therapeusis. T hévenot, w h o had personal experience o f Safavid
surgeons, speaks w ell o f their ability : “ T here are m any Physicians
in Persia, and am ongst them som e skilful m en . . .T h ey let bloud
too, and are very dextrous at it; I speak b y experience, they tye
a ligature o f leather very streight about the A rm , and then
w ith o u t rub b in g or looking m uch on the place, they take their
Lance. . .an d prick very skilfully.” 59 A w ide variety o f surgical
procedures was perform ed, b u t pre-operative care was u n k n o w n ;
indeed, greater emphasis was laid on the need for the surgeon to
p ro tect h im self against infection fro m a suppurating w o u n d than
on the safety o f the patient; a rudim entary surgical glove m ig h t
be m ade in the bazaar from the m ucous m em brane covering the
testicles o f sheep.60 Elective surgery was virtually u n k n o w n , and
222 Iran under the Safavids
90 per cent o f surgical operations related to accidents o r w o u n d ­
ing in fights. Anaesthesia consisted o f inducing unconsciousness
by m eans o f various narcotics. O f all the branches o f Islamic
m edicine, pharm acy survived longest. Persians had always led
the field in pharm acology; the n in th -cen tu ry pharm acopoeia o f
Sâbür b. Sahl, and the tw elfth-century Antidotary o f Ibn al-T irm iz,
“ form ed the bases o f all other pharm acopoeias and catalogues
o f simples w hich w ere subsequently w ritte n ” .61 If a Safavid
physician w ere to view the m edical w o rld today, “ he w ould find
the least change in that section w hich is concerned w ith the patient
and his drugs ” .62 Hospitals m aintained elaborate pharm acies, and
private dispensaries existed fo r the patients o f doctors w ho
practised outside a hospital.
It is clear that excessive reverence for the m ediaeval tradition
in th e field o f m edicine persisted into Safavid times in Iran and
indeed well on into the nineteenth century. T he Safavid system
was a long tim e in dying. T he late E. G. B row ne could w rite:
“ W h en I was in T ihran in 1887 D r. T holozon, physician to his
late M ajesty N asiru’d -D in Shah, kindly enabled m e to attend the
m eetings o f the M ajlis-i Sihhat, o r C ouncil o f Public H ealth, in
the Persian capital, and a m ajority o f the physicians present at that
tim e kn ew no m edicine b u t that o f A vicenna.” 63 In view o f this
persistent attitude, can any advances in the field o f m edicine be
perceived during the Safavid period?
In pharm acology, a science in w hich the Iranians had always
excelled, further progress seems to have been made. A phar­
m acopoeia com piled in 1556 entitled Tibb-i S h ift3! form ed the
basis o f the Pharmacopoea Perska o f Fr Angelus printed in France in
1681. H ow ever, despite the fact that excellent medical m anuals
continued to be w ritte n during the sixteenth and seventeenth
centuries, o n e’s general im pression is that they constituted re­
statem ents o r rearrangem ents o f existing know ledge and did n o t
break new g round to any significant extent.
I should n o t conclude this chapter w ith o u t som e m ention o f
astrology, since the Safavid kings w ere accustom ed to consult
th eir astrologers before deciding on any m ajor course o f action.
In m ediaeval E urope, astronom y and astrology w ere synonym ous
term s in popular belief. In the Islamic w orld, the study o f the
heavens was eagerly pursued at least in p art because o f its
connection w ith astrology, b u t astronom y had its serious side too,
\ \

31. Brass astrolabe engraved with the name o f Shah Sultan Husayn, 1712
224 Iran under the Safavids
especially as it related to the art o f navigation and the calculation
o f the calendar. T he astrolabe, an astronom ical instrum ent devised
by the ancient Greeks, was substantially im p ro v ed by M uslim
scientists before they returned it to E urope in the ten th century.
F o r centuries, M uslim s m ade astrolabes w hich w ere beautiful
w orks o f art, engraved w ith great care and skill. Even the greatest
Islamic astronom ers, how ever, such as al-B ïrünï, did n o t hesitate
to w rite m anuals on judicial astrology, and it is n o accident that
in the Islamic languages the w o rd munajjim m eans b o th astronom er
and astrologer. T he casting o f a horoscope required com plex
calculations to determ ine the position o f the planets at a particular
p o in t in tim e, for exam ple, on the b irth o f a royal prince, so that
the astrologers could predict the influence o f the planets on the
p rin ce’s subsequent life and fortunes. Each year, it was im p o rtan t
to determ ine accurately the m o m e n t o f the spring equinox so that
the astrologers could m ake predictions about the course o f events
for the com ing year.
A t the Safavid court, astrologers w ere persons o f status and
im portance. T h ey took themselves seriously, and expected their
predictions to be believed. In 1625, w hen the O tto m an s w ere
m aking a determ ined eifort to recapture B aghdad, M aw länä
M u h am m ad T ähir YazdT, one o f the astrologers o f the royal
household o f Shäh ‘Abbäs, had m aintained fro m the beginning
o f the siege, on the basis o f the positions o f the stars and other
celestial signs, that the O ttom ans w o u ld n o t succeed; w hen the
Shäh appeared unconvinced, the astrologer dem anded to be
allow ed to jo in the Safavid garrison in the beleaguered city in
o rd er to dem onstrate his confidence in the accuracy o f his ow n
prognostication ! A n interesting rider to this story is that, although
the Shäh granted the astrologer’s request, the Safavid field
com m ander refused to allow the latter to enter B ag h d äd ;64 this
supports the contention that Shäh ‘Abbäs I allow ed his field
com m anders considerable discretion in their conduct o f operations.
A ccording to T hévenot, the court astrologers cost “ yearly vast
sums o f m o n e y ” , and he declares that no class o f society was
im m u n e from the prevalence o f superstition based on astrology:
“ N o t only the Learned and M en o f Letters solicitously apply
themselves to it, b u t even the co m m o n people and soldiers tam per
w ith i t . . . In conversation all their Discourse is o f Spheres,
Apogees, Perigees, Excentricks, E picycles.” 65
Intellectual life under the Safavids 225

T o som e, it m ay seem strange to discuss m usic under the head


o f the sciences, b u t “ fo r M uslim theorists, as fo r their m ediaeval
counterparts in E urope, m usic belonged to the m athem atical
sciences” .66 O f course, for m any centuries after the revelation o f
Islam, there w as continuing debate as to w h eth er the perform ance
o f m usic was a perm issible activity for a M uslim at all. In the end,
despite the frow ns o f the theologians, w ho associated m usic w ith
dancing and o th er questionable activities, the strong and deep
musical traditions, particularly o f the Iranians, T urks and the
M uslim s o f India, p ro v ed irresistible and, in the Sufi O rders w hich
spread th ro u g h o u t the Islamic w o rld betw een the tw elfth and
fo u rteen th centuries, b o th m usic and dance form ed an indispen­
sable p art o f m ystical ritual. T h o u g h it served religion in this and
o th er contexts, how ever, m usic never played the im p o rtan t part
in Islam that it did in the C hristian tradition.
A t the p o p u lar level, and am ong the tribes, m usic was a
p art o f social life, and events like w eddings, funerals and festivals
w ere m arked by m usic, in w hich the public could participate
by singing, dancing o r hand-clapping. A t the highest levels o f
society, too, at state banquests, receptions for foreign ambassadors
and court festivities in general, musicians and dancing-girls w ere
a standard p art o f the entertainm ent. M ilitary bands had an im ­
p o rtan t public function. T he m usical instrum ents used in Safavid
tim es did n o t differ m arkedly from those w h ich had been in use
in Iran for centuries, and the shape and appearance o f instrum ents
are w ell k n o w n to us from m anuscript illustrations and other
paintings: they included trum pets, horns, flutes, lutes and a
variety o f o th er stringed instrum ents, harps, num erous types o f
drum s and o th er percussion instrum ents, including castanets and
tam bourines, and the unique santür (a type o f psaltery). In music,
as in m edicine, the Safavids w ere n o t innovators b u t m erely
continued the tradition o f earlier centuries.
10

Decline and fall of the Safavids

“ W h en this great prince [Shäh ‘Abbäs I] ceased to live, Persia


ceased to p ro sp e r!” This was the considered opinion, already
quoted, o f the H u g u en o t jew eller C hardin, the m ost penetrating
and w ell inform ed o f the Europeans w ho visited Iran during the
Safavid period. C hardin was w riting during the reign o f Shäh
Sulaym än, at w hose coronation he was present in 1666; he was
lo o k in g back at the reign o f Shäh ‘Abbäs the G reat fro m a distance
o f som e forty years, and already it seem ed to him that ‘A bbäs’s
reign had been a golden age and that his death had m arked the
beginning o f a decline n o t only in the fortunes o f the Safavid
dynasty b u t also o f Iran itself. T h e Safavid state, as rebuilt by Shäh
‘Abbäs, had an im posing façade w hich concealed to a considerable
extent the decay w hich spread w ith increasing rapidity during the
second h a lf o f the seventeenth century. In C hapter 4, an account
was given o f the w ay in w hich ‘Abbäs I m et and solved in the
short term the grave and pressing problem s w hich confronted
him , and reference was also m ade to the fact that some o f these
solutions contained w ithin them selves the seed o f future decay.
For exam ple, the creation o f a standing arm y o f “ third fo rc e ”
elem ents solved the im m ediate problem o f h o w to curb the
overw eening p o w er o f the qizilbäsh, b u t ultim ately w eakened the
m ilitary strength o f the state. Again, the conversion o f mamälik,
or “ state” provinces into khässa, o r “ c ro w n ” provinces solved
the im m ediate p roblem o f h o w to pay this new standing arm y,
b u t in the long term this policy led am ong other things to a greater
degree o f tax oppression and to inferior provincial adm inistration.
F urther, the policy o f incarcerating the royal princes in the haram
m ay in the short term have relieved the ruler o f the fear o f plots
against him , b u t in the n o t so long term it resulted in the m arked
degeneration o f the dynasty; it also led to the undue influence o f

226
32. Shäh Safi"
228 Iran under the Safavids
the w o m en o f the haratn, and o f the court eunuchs and other
officials associated w ith the haratn, in political life and in succession
problem s. H ad ‘Abbäs I been follow ed by rulers o f the same
calibre, the decline o f the Safavid dynasty m ig h t have been
postponed, b u t his o w n policies had m ade it unlikely that his
successors w o u ld be w o rth y o f the throne, and his o w n actions
had left h im w ith o u t a son w ho was capable o f taking his place.
‘A bbäs I was succeeded by his grandson Säm MTrzä, the son
o f his eldest son M u h am m ad B äqir, also k n o w n as Safi, w ho took
his father’s nam e o f Safi on his accession on 17 February 1629.
U n d e r Shäh Safi, one o f the policies initiated by ‘Abbäs I, nam ely,
the conversion o f “ sta te ” to “ c ro w n ” provinces, was extended.
Safi’s vaztr, Särü Taqï, p u t fo rw a rd an argum ent w hich the Shäh
found attractive: since the Safavid state was n o w relatively secure
fro m its external enemies, he said, there was no p o in t in allow ing
a large p art o f Safavid territo ry to rem ain in the hands o f qizilbäsh
governors, w ho rem itted little to the royal treasury. T h e Shäh
agreed, and the rich province o f Färs w hich, because o f its distance
fro m Iran ’s eastern and w estern borders, was considered safe from
foreign attack, was converted into a “ c ro w n ” province, and was
adm inistered directly by an overseer on behalf o f the Shäh. It was
Saffs successor, how ever, ‘Abbäs II (1642—66), w h o carried this
policy to dangerous lengths. U n d e r his rule, the provinces o f
QazvTn, Gllän, M äzandarän, Yazd, K irm än, K huräsän and Ä zar-
bäyjän w ere all b ro u g h t under the adm inistration o f the C ro w n
except in tim e o f w ar, w hen qizilbäsh governors w ere reappointed.
This was obviously an unsatisfactory expedient, because the ad­
m inistrative infrastructures o f the tw o systems o f go v ern m en t
w ere different, and it was n o t possible to sw itch fro m one to the
o th er overnight. A part fro m that, there w ere serious objections
to the conversion o f key strategic provinces like Khuräsän,
Ä zarbäyjän and K irm än to “ c ro w n ” province status. It is no
coincidence that it was the provinces o f K irm än and K huräsän that
w ere first penetrated by th e A fghän usurpers, because the latter,
fro m ab o u t the year 1705 onw ards, had been able to determ ine
at first hand the appalling state o f m ilitary weakness and u n p re­
paredness in those provinces. An early indication o f the alarm ing
extent to w hich Safavid m ilitary p o w e r had declined was the loss
o f B aghdäd to the O tto m an s in 1638, only fourteen years after
its recapture by ‘Abbäs I, and o f the key city o f Q andahär to the
M oguls in the same year.
Decline and fall of the Safavids 229

Shäh Safi’s character has been blackened by the Jesuit Fr


K rusinski, w h o did n o t arrive in Iran until m o re than sixty years
after Safi’s death, and by Jonas H anw ay, w ho reached Iran a
century after Safi’s death, and m ost later W estern historians
have accepted their ju d g e m e n t uncritically and unquestioningly.
K rusinski always given to hyperbole, says “ ’tis certain there has
n o t been in Persia a m o re cruel and bloody reign than h is” , and
describes it as “ one continued series o f cruelties” , and H anw ay
refers to the “ frequent instances o f barbarity w hich stained his
reign w ith b lo o d ” .1 T h e authors o f A Chronicle o f the Carmelites
in Persia, on the other hand, state that
N othing in the mass o f original letters and other records left by the
Carmelites confirms the w ay in w hich his reputation has been be­
smirched by non-contem porary writers o f history; on the contrary,
w ith the exception o f the extirpation root and branch o f Imam Q ulï
Khan and his offspring for reasons o f state (which may be paralleled
in European countries a century or tw o previously), Shäh Safi appears
in these archives clement and pleasant in his dealing.2

T h e C arm elite records m ust be used w ith caution, because they


are apt to m ake a ru le r’s attitude to w ard Christians the principal
criterion in ju d g in g his character, b u t nevertheless there is a
discrepancy betw een the tw o assessments o f such m agnitude that
it is clear th at a substantial m odification o f the K rusinski view is
required.
T h e “ extirpation ro o t and branch o f Im am Q u lï K han and
his offspring” about the year 1633, referred to in the C arm elite
account, is un d o u b ted ly the action o f Shäh Safi w hich earned h im
the execration o f m any later W estern w riters. T h e C arm elite
account also hints at the m otive behind the Shäh’s action: “ for
reasons o f state” . Q u ite sim ply, Im äm Q u l ï K hän is yet one m ore
exam ple o f a royal servant becom e too pow erful, w h o has thereby
occasioned either the jealousy or the fear o fh is royal m aster. Im äm
Q u lï K hän was a G eorgian ghuläm, the son o f ‘Abbäs I’s fam ous
com m ander-in-chief, A llâhverdï K hän. Like his father, he had
risen to high office in the service o f the state. A ppointed
G overnor-G eneral o f Färs in 1613, he had becom e the virtual ruler
o f southern Iran, and his jurisdiction extended far beyond the
borders o f Färs along the shore o f the Persian G u lf to M akrän.
H e h ad been the p rim e m o v er in securing the co-operation o f the
English in the com bined A nglo-Iranian attack on the Portuguese
positions at H u rm ü z in 1622. D u rin g the lifetim e o f ‘Abbäs I, his
33- Shäh ‘Abbas II
Decline and fa ll of the Safavids 231

w ealth and p o w e r had becom e a b y w o rd , and ‘Abbäs I said


jo cu larly to him one day: “ I request, Im am Q ulï, that you will
spend one d irh em less p er day, that there m ay exist som e slight
difference betw een the disbursem ents o f a khan and a k in g !” 3
U n fo rtu n ately for Im am Q u lï K han, Shah Safi was n o t as wise
a king as Shäh ‘A bbäs L
In M ay 1642, Shäh Safi died at the early age o f th irty -tw o , as
he was m aking preparations for an expedition to recover Q andahär
fro m the M oguls. T here seems to be general agreem ent th at he
was addicted to opium , and, according to som e, was prescribed
alcoholic drinks by his physicians to counteract the evil effects o f
the opium . T he com bined effect was said to have debilitated his
constitution. H e was succeeded by his son, ‘A bbäs II, w ho came
to the th ro n e on 12 M ay 1642 at the age o f eight and a half.
In m an y ways, ‘Abbäs II resem bled his great-grandfather and
nam esake, ‘A bbäs I. A strong and vigorous ruler, he from his
accession displayed decisiveness and determ ination, although so
young. For exam ple, in 1645, w hen he was still only tw elve years
o f age, the vazlr Särü T aq ï was assassinated by a group o f qizilbäsh
chiefs led by the qürchibäsht, one o f the m ost pow erful officers o f
state; a few days later, ‘A bbäs IIh a d all the assassins executed. Like
his great-grandfather, he had a passion for justice, and com plaints
o f malfeasance and oppression on the part o f g o v ern m en t officials
w ere dealt w ith speedily; in fact, ‘Abbäs II spent three days a week
presiding over an official judicial tribunal (divän-i ‘adälat), w hich
dealt w ith suits b ro u g h t b oth by the m ilitary and by civilians, and
tw o m o re days hearing grievances fro m all parts o f the em pire.
Like his g reat-grandfather, too, he was in general tolerant in
religious m atters, and allow ed the C atholic orders considerable
freedom o f action. A notable exception, how ever, was his treat­
m en t o f the Jew s. A t the instigation o f his vazïr, M uham m ad
Beg, he decreed that n o t only the Jew s resident at Isfahän b u t Jews
th ro u g h o u t the Safavid em pire should m ake public profession o f
their conversion to Islam, and should receive instruction in the
Islamic faith. Som e 100,000 Jew s are said to have o utw ardly
em braced Islam b u t to have continued to practise their religion
in secret.
As already m entioned, the process o f converting “ state” to
“ crow n ” provinces was extended and carried on by ‘Abbäs II on
a large scale, w ith the result that alm ost the w hole o f the country
2 32 Iran under the Safavids
was b ro u g h t u n d er the direct adm inistration o f the crow n except
in tim e o f w ar, w hen ad hoc m ilitary governors w ere appointed
to strategically im p o rta n t frontier provinces. Despite the fact that
this policy m eant the w eakening and virtual disappearance o f
those qizilbäsh tribes w hich had figured so prom inently in the
early Safavid period, ‘Abbäs II m anaged to preserve the frontier
o f the em pire intact, and even recaptured Q andahär from the
M oguls in 1648 and repulsed three subsequent attem pts by the
E m p ero r A w rangzlb to recover it. O n the n o rth -w est frontier,
‘Abbäs II reversed the policy o f his great-grandfather, w ho had
created a sort o f “ dem ilitarised z o n e ” by the wholesale rem oval
o f the population to other areas; ‘Abbäs II, on the contrary,
attem pted to stabilise the area by the resettlem ent there o f tribes
from Ä zarbäyjän.
Like his great-grandfather, ‘Abbäs was interested in the arts and
in the erection o f public buildings. H e had the C hihil Sutün palace
at Isfahän built, and he had the M asjid-i Shäh, built by ‘Abbäs
I, and the old M asjid-i J u m ‘a near the bazaar, repaired; he also
constructed a dam on the Z äyanda-rüd in 1654. ‘Abbäs II was
keenly interested in painting, b o th O riental and W estern, and he
liked to try his hand at painting himself. His great weakness was
his addiction to alcohol, and his excessive drinking term inated his
life at the age o f th irty -tw o , the same age as his father at his death.
W ith the accession o f Safi MTrzä as Shäh Sulaym än, the Safavid
dynasty and state entered upon a period o f rapid decline. T he new
m o n arch ’s o u tw ard m anner was pleasing:
He was tall, strong and active, a little too effeminate for a monarch
—w ith a Roman nose, very w ell proportioned to other parts, very large
blue eyes and a middling m outh, a beard dyed black, shaved round and
well turned back, even to his ears. His manner was affable but
nevertheless majestic. He had a masculine and agreeable voice, a gentle
way o f speaking and was so very engaging that, when you had bow ed
to him he seemed in some measure to return it by a courteous inclination
o f his head, and this he always did sm iling.4

This sm iling exterior, how ever, concealed a w eak and capricious


nature. D uring his reign, the position o f the shah as the apex o f
the w hole adm inistrative structure o f the state, as the unquestioned
and absolute ruler w ith suprem e authority in m atters tem poral
and spiritual, was underm ined in a m anner far m ore insidious and
destructive than the open and straightforw ard usurpation o f the
D ecline and f a ll o f the Safavids 233
royal prerogatives by the qizilbäsh in the tim e o f Shah Tahm äsp.
It w ill be recalled that Shäh Ism ä‘Il I h a d given a new emphasis
to the office o f sadr by m aking the sadr, the head o f the religious
classes, a political appointee answerable to h im self for the good
behaviour o f the 4ulamä (doctors o f religion) in general and o f the
mujtahids, the m ost em inent Shï‘ï theologians and jurisprudents,
in particular. This political control o f the mujtahids and the
religious classes was necessary i f the position o f the Safavid shah
as the representative on earth o f the M ahdl, the Shï‘ï messiah, w ere
n o t to be threatened, because that function belonged rightfully
to the mujtahids them selves and th at prerogative had been usurped
by the shah. A lready during the reign o f Shäh Tahm äsp, w hen
the influence o f the sadr declined, there w ere indications o f a desire
on the p art o f the mujtahids to reassert their authority. T h e strong
rule o f ‘A bbäs I had m ilitated against any attem p t on the part o f
the ‘ulamä to challenge the a u th o rity o f the Shäh, and the Shäh
used to boast that his reign was free fro m the destructive dissen­
sions betw een rival religious officials, and fro m their aspirations
to political pow er.
It is related, that when he [Shäh ‘Abbäs I] was one day riding w ith the
celebrated Meer M ahomed Bauker Dâmâd5 on his right hand, and the
equally famed Shaikh Bahâudeen A um ilee6 on his left, the king desired
to discover if there lurked any secret envy, or jealousy, in the breasts
o f these tw o learned priests. Turning to Meer M ahomed Bauker, whose
horse was prancing and capering, he observed, “ W hat a dull brute
Shaikh Bahâudeen is riding ! He cannot make the animal keep pace with
us.” “ The wonder is, h ow the horse moves at all,” said the Moolah,
“ w hen he considers what a load o f learning and know ledge he has upon
his back.” ‘Abbas, after some time, turned round to Shaikh Bahâudeen,
and said to him, “ D id you ever see such a prancing animal as that which
Meer M ahom ed Bauker rides? Surely that is not the style for a horse
to go in w ho carried a grave M oolah.” “ Your Majesty w ill, I am
assured,” said the Shaikh, “ forgive the horse, w hen you reflect on the
just right he has to be proud o f his rider.” The monarch bent his head
forward on his saddle, and returned thanks to the A lm ighty for the
singular blessing He had bestowed upon his reign, o f tw o wise and pious
men; w ho, though living at a court, had minds untainted b y envy and
hatred.7

It is h ard to avoid the suspicion that the Shäh also bent his head
fo rw ard to conceal the broad g rin on his face!
I f ‘Abbäs I was able to m anage his theologians in this w ay, his
234 Iran under the Safavids
successors w ere less and less able to do so. T hey them selves w ere
to a large extent responsible for creating a situation in w hich the
religious classes w ere able to increase their pow er. T he all-
im p o rtan t office o f sadr was left vacant by ‘Abbäs II for eighteen
m o n th s after his accession in 1642, and in 1666 Shäh Sulaym än
divided the sadärat (the office o f the sadr) into a “ c ro w n ” (khässa)
and a “ state” (mamälik) branch. A lthough this was a logical step
in view o f the increased im portance o f the khässa branch o f the
adm inistration, the division o f the office necessarily m eant shared
and therefore w eakened authority. T he sadr continued to be
responsible for the adm inistration o f the awqäf (lands, etc., held
in m o rtm ain for pious purposes), and had certain juridical
functions. T he political role o f the sadr, how ever, was taken over
by the shaykh al-isläm and, during the reign o f S ulaym an’s suc­
cessor, Shäh Sultän H usayn, by a n ew religious official term ed
the mullâbâshï. O n e o f the m ost im p o rtan t features o f the period
from ‘Abbäs II onw ards is the greatly enhanced influence o f the
religious classes as a w hole, as they freed them selves progressively
fro m political control. Pow erful theologians em erged o f w hom
a typical exam ple is M u h am m ad B âqir Majlisï, w ho held the office
o f shaykh al-isläm from 1687 and, after the accession o f Shäh Sultän
H usayn in 1694, was appointed to the new office o f mullâbâshï and
held it until his death in 1699. It is ironical that, in a state in w hich
Ithnä ‘AsharT S hfism had fro m the start been the official religion,
it was only in the tw ilig h t o f the Safavid regim e that serious w ork
was done in the fields o f ShTT theology and jurisprudence, in the
form o f the collection and collation o f Shï‘ï traditions,8 com ­
m entaries on the four Shî‘ï canonical books, and so on. It is
tem pting to speculate w h eth er the Safavid shahs m ay n o t have
been m o re concerned about pow er than about S hfism . As Ithnä
‘AsharT Shihsm was codified u nder the later Safavids and becam e
m ore uncom prom isingly orth o d o x , there was naturally greater
emphasis on the rooting out o f heresy. O n e theologian o f Rasht
entitled H ujjat al-Isläm (P ro o f o f Islam) is said to have p u t to death
seventy persons for various sins or heresies.9
A g ro u p that suffered particularly during this period o f the
persecution o f heretics was the Sufis. T he tightly k n it Süfï
organisation o f the Safavid O rd e r had, in the days before the
establishm ent o f the Safavid state, dissem inated the Safavid da1va,
or propaganda, had guarded the person o f its leader, the murshid-i
D ecline and f a ll o f the Safavids 235
kämil, or perfect spiritual director, and had w o rk ed ceaselessly to
p ro m o te the Safavid revolution. A fter the successful culm ination
o f this revolution, Shäh IsmäTl I had tried to incorporate this Süfï
organisation in the m ore conventional adm inistrative system,
based on the Iranian Islamic tradition, w hich he had inherited
fro m the Ä q Q u y ü n lü , the Q arä Q u y ü n lü and the T im urids. As
w e have seen, the attem p t failed, and the Sufi organisation
rem ained in existence b u t w ith o u t any organic function w ith in
the body politic. A lthough devoid o f any real pow er, the head
o f this organisation, the khalifat al-khulaja, retained considerable
prestige at least up to the tim e o f Shäh Ism â‘ïl IL
T he reason w h y this SüfT organisation had been allow ed to
continue in being long after it had ceased to serve its original
purpose, was that it provided the Safavid shahs w ith a convenient
m echanism w hich could be used to support their o w n legitim acy,
and to w hich they could appeal in the event o f any challenge to
their o w n au th o rity on the p art o f qizilbäsh chiefs and others. A n
essential p a rt o f the relationship betw een any Süfï o r murid
(disciple) and his spiritual director (pïr; shaykh ; murshid) was the
unquestioning obedience o f the disciple to the com m ands o f his
spiritual director. T he basic principles o f the pïr—murid relationship
w ere: “ n o t to leave the side o f one’s murshid in adversity or
p ro sp erity ; to endure patiently all kinds o f m isfortune; and to
p u t acquiescence to the w ill o f the murshid before all w orldly
interests” .10 T he Safavid shahs developed and extended this
relationship in tw o extrem ely significant ways : in the first place,
they transferred to the political plane w h a t was essentially a
religious and m ystical relationship betw een a spiritual director and
a traveller along the via purgativa, T hey w ere able to do this
because they w ere n o t only the murshid-i kämil b u t also the
pädishäh, or tem poral ruler, o f their subjects. D isobedience to the
orders o f the murshid-i kämil, w hich in Sufi O rders w o u ld norm ally
be punished b y penance or by expulsion fro m the O rder, thus
becam e treason against the king and a crim e against the state, and
as such punishable by death. “ C o n d u ct appropriate to a S u fi”
(süfigarï) therefore acquired a new and significant connotation
o f “ loyalty to the k in g ” ; the converse, nä~süßgan, “ conduct
inappropriate to a S üfï” , becam e the equivalent o f “ disloyalty to
the k in g ” and the m ost serious charge that could be levelled
against a person. In tim es o f crisis, the Safavid shahs found it
236 Iran under the Safavids
convenient to invoke the unquestioning devotion to their ow n
persons o f the Süfïs, by appealing to those w ho w ere shähi-sevän
(w ho loved the shah), to com e to their aid.
I f there was the slightest d o u b t about the loyalty o f the khalifat
al-khulajä him self o r o f the other m em bers o f the Süfï organisation,
the shah acted sw iftly to establish his suprem acy. In 1576, Ism â‘ïl
II to o k severe disciplinary measures against the khalifat al-khulaja,
w h o m he had blinded, and he follow ed this up by massacring
i ,200 SüfTs w h o w ere closely associated w ith the khalifat al-khulaja.
T h e charge against the khalifat al-khulaja stated that he had
w ilfully disobeyed an order fro m his murshid-i kämil, nam ely,
Shäh Ismâ‘ïl II, and was therefore rejected or “ beyond the p a le ” .
T h e rapid decline in the status o f the SüfTs, how ever, occurred
after the accession o f ‘Abbäs I. Shäh ‘Abbäs becam e suspicious o f
the SüfTs because, at the beginning o f his reign, they had conspired
to p u t his father, Sultän M u h am m ad Shäh, back o n the throne.
Sultän M uham m ad Shäh was persuaded to incite the Süfïs to seek
a m eeting w ith Shäh ‘Abbäs and to p u t h im the follow ing
question: “ W h o is o u r spiritual d ire c to r? ” T he p o in t o f the
question was that, since Sultän M u h am m ad Shäh was still alive,
he was still their spiritual director and ‘Abbäs a usurper. T he SüfTs
ho p ed th at ‘Abbäs w o u ld be forced to adm it this, and that Sultän
M u h am m ad Shäh w ould be reinstated as their spiritual director
and therefore as king. Shäh ‘Abbäs was forew arned o f the
in ten tio n o f the Süfïs. H e ordered th em to send three repre­
sentatives to him if they had anything to discuss. W h en the
delegation arrived, its m em bers w ere executed on the spot, and
the rem ainder o f the Süfïs scattered “ w ith o u t even stopping to
p u t their shoes o n ” . F rom th at tim e on, ‘Abbäs I to o k every
o p p o rtu n ity to reduce the status o f the Süfïs, by ignoring them
and treating them w ith disdain. A few years later, in 1592/3, the
Süfïs incurred the w rath o f Shäh ‘Abbäs again, w hen one o f their
leaders, ShähverdT K hän, G o v ern o r o f Q aräjadägh, was executed
on the grounds that he had collaborated w ith the O tto m an s
d uring their occupation o f T abriz. D isloyalty on the p art o f the
Süfïs fro m Q aräjadägh was view ed particularly seriously b y the
Shäh, because this group had held a position o f special ho n o u r
d u rin g the early Safavid period. ShähverdT K h än ’s father, K halïfa-
yi A nsar Q aräjadäghlü, had been com m andant o f the fortress-
prison o f Q ahqaha, a post given only to the m ost tru stw o rth y
D ecline and f a ll o f the Safavids 237

officers. ShähverdI K han had n o t only defected to the O ttom ans


him self, b u t had forced his follow ers to take the oath o f allegiance
to the O ttom ans. Shäh ‘Abbas had a long m em o ry in such
m atters; som e tw en ty years later, in 1614/15, a n u m b er o f these
follow ers fell into his hands and w ere p ro m p tly executed on a
charge oînâ-süflgarl (conduct unbecom ing to a Süfï and disloyalty
to the king).
‘Abbas felt that, if he could no longer rely im plicitly on the
loyalty o f the Süfîs, there was no po in t in allow ing them to retain
their privileged status. T hey w ere no longer allow ed to be in
attendance on the Shah, or to act as his personal bodyguard.
Instead, they w ere allotted m enial tasks such as sweepers o f the
palace buildings, gatekeepers and jailers.11 T heir o u tw ard ritual
was m aintained to the extent that they continued to m eet every
T hursday evening for zik r m eetings under the leadership o f their
khalifat al-khulafa, b u t the khalifat al-khulafa him self was reduced
to the status o f a tam e religious official at court. O n feast days,
he appeared at co u rt w ith the rest o f the Süfîs, and approached
the Shäh w ith a bo w l o f candies, and offered him the felicitations
appropriate to the festival. T he Shäh w ould then take a piece o f
candy fro m the b o w l and place it in his m o uth, w hereupon the
nobles and leaders o f the realm w o u ld follow suit, first placing
the candy on their eyes and their foreheads as a sign o f obeisance.
T h e khalifat al-khulafa had one other function. H e was able to give
absolution. N obles and others w ho sought absolution w o u ld kneel
before the khalifat al-khulafa, and the latter w ould strike them
several times on the back and shoulders w ith a stick, as a sign that
their sins w ere forgiven. This cerem ony was called “ confession”
(ïtirâ f).12
A fter the death o f Shäh ‘Abbäs I, the status o f the Süfîs
continued to decline, and in the late seventeenth century, less than
tw o h u n d red years after Süfï zeal and devotion had b ro u g h t the
Safavids to pow er, the mujtahid M u h am m ad B äqir Majlis!
denounced Sufism as “ this foul and hellish g ro w th ” . M uham m ad
B äqir was defending his father, M u h am m ad TaqT Majlis!, also a
distinguished theologian, against charges o f having been too
tolerant o f and sym pathetic to Süfîs. “ Let none think so ill o f m y
father,” he said, “ as to im agine th at he was o f the Süfîs. . .M y
father th o u g h t ill o f the Süfîs, b u t at the beginning o f his career,
w h en they w ere extrem ely pow erful and active, m y father
2 3 8 Iran under the Safavids
entered their ranks so that by this m eans he m ig h t repel, rem ove,
eradicate and extirpate the roots o f this foul and hellish g ro w th .” 13
“ M y father,” he said, “ w ould never have co n tam in ated the hem
o f his g arm ent w ith the defilem ent o f Sufism! ” In his volum inous
w ritings, M uham m ad B aqir MajlisT attacked the m ost funda­
m ental principles o f Sufism, and to o k the extrem e position that
all Süfï sects w ere outside the pale o f Islam. B oth the m onastic
principle, and the practice o f living as a herm it o r in retreat, were
pro h ib ited by the P rophet, he said. Various SüfT practices such as
the zikr-i khafiand the zikr-i ja lt14 constituted bidia (an innovation ;
a departure from accepted practice) and w ere therefore unac­
ceptable. R egular SüfT practices such as the w earing o f w oollen
garm ents, and the dance (sama ) w hich often accom panied the
rh y th m ic chanting o f the nam e o f G od, w ere also condem ned by
MajlisT. Fasting was denounced because it w eakened the b o d y and
hence enfeebled the m ind, w ith the result that any statem ent m ade
by thepfr, or spiritual director, h o w ev er fantastic, found credence.
W arm in g to his task, MajlisT thundered that all SüfT sects, from
the po in t o f view o f the Shï‘î faith, w ere to be rejected and
renounced, and their zikrs and other practices w ere to be
considered innovation and error. Finally, certain SüfT doctrines
regarding the m ystical union o f the disciple w ith G od, and
regarding incarnation (hulül), constituted unbelief and heresy, he
said. W h at an extraordinary reversal o f fortune for the descendants
o f those w h o had form erly w o rn the tâj-i haydart, the distinctive
headgear devised for his Süfï follow ers by H aydar, w ith such
pride !
U n d e r w eak and ineffective shahs, the iulama tended to reassert
their independence o f the political institution. It is no surprise,
therefore, to find that they w ere at the height o f their pow er
d uring the reigns o f the tw o w eakest Safavid shahs, Sulaym an and
Sultan H usayn, w ho together ruled for fifty-six years, from 1666
to 1722. D u rin g this period, the mujtahids fully reasserted their
independence o f the shah, and reclaim ed their prerogative to
be the representatives o f the T w elfth Im am and thus the only
legitim ate source o f authority in a ShFT state. It should n o t be
supposed that even a strong ruler like 'A bbäs I had been able to
m uzzle the theologians altogether. B ro w n e quotes a story from
the Qisäs al- Ulamä w hich m ust be apocryphal because its
theologian—author is said to have died in 1585 w hile Shäh ‘Abbäs
D ecline and f a ll o f the Safavids 239

I, to w h o m he is said to have w ritten , did n o t ascend the throne


until 1588.15 H ow ever, like m any apocryphal stories, it enshrines
an im p o rtan t truth. T he theologian addressed his letter to
“ ‘Abbäs, the founder o f a b o rro w e d e m p ire ” , w hich does n o t
suggest that he felt in im m inent danger o f the royal w rath . ‘Abbäs
apparently m eekly sw allow ed this piece o f im pertinence and sent
the theologian a m ild reply, signing him self in a very favourite
m anner, “ ‘Abbäs, the dog o f ‘A ll’s th resh o ld ” .
T he mujtahids, fro m asserting m o re and m ore their independ­
ence o f the shah, m oved gradually to w a rd a position o f actually
controlling the shah. A ccording to Banani, “ some sources suggest
a direct religious rule by m eans o f a concourse o f mujtahids above
the monarch ” (m y italics).16 In o th er w ords, the potential danger
to the stability o f the Safavid state, perceived as a threat by Ism ä‘H
I fro m the inception o f that state, had becom e a reality. T he ‘ulamä
pressed forw ard to obtain a dom inant position in the state,
heedless o f the fact that by so doing they w ere helping to destroy
it.
A nother political force w hich m anoeuvred itself into a position
o f great p o w er during the reigns o f Sulaym än and Sultän H usayn
was the haram, and, associated w ith the haram, the office o f vazlr.
As already noticed, control o f the princes o f the blood royal in
the haram gave the haram extraordinary political pow er, to w hich
C hardin d rew attention. T he haram, he said, constituted “ a Privy
C ouncil, w hich usually prevails over everything, and lays dow n
the law in all m a tte rs” .17 This “ P rivy C o u n c il” consisted o f the
shah’s m o th er, the chief eunuchs and the shah’s principal mistresses.
T h e vazTrs, according to C hardin, ign o red the wishes o f the haram
at their peril. T he royal princes under its control w ere reared in
a state o f unbelievable ignorance about the outside w orld. “ T he
eldest son o f the K in g ,” says C hardin, “ is never told that he is
the heir-apparent. Som etim es he is n o t even told that he is the
K in g ’s son, but m erely that he is o f royal blood. T he result is, he
does n o t k n o w for w hat he is destined until the sceptre is placed
in his h an d .” 18 It is small w onder that the products o f this system
w ere w eak-w illed and easily m anipulated by the haram and the
vazxrs. A n o th er probably apocryphal, b u t again significant, story
is told about the succession to Shäh Sulaym än. T he latter did n o t
nom inate an heir, b u t is alleged to have said to his officers o f state
that, if they w anted peace and quiet, they should choose his son
34- Shah Sulayman
D ecline and f a ll o f the Safavids 241

H usayn, b u t if they w anted a strong ruler and an expanding


em pire, they should choose his son ‘Abbäs. G iven a choice in these
term s, the haram and the vazxr selected H usayn, because they
hoped to establish their ascendancy over a m ild and pliant
m onarch. T heir hopes w ere soon fulfilled. Shäh Sultän H usayn
soon abandoned his austere w ay o f life and, like his father
Sulaym än, took to drink and debauchery. (A nother story alleges
that his court officials deliberately introduced him to and encour­
aged him to drink in order the better to bend him to their will.)
H e becam e so uxorious that the size and m agnificence o f his haram
was a serious drain on the exchequer. Like Sulaym än, he had no
interest in state affairs, and the haram, the court and the vazxr %
office w ere able to dictate policy. A gainst this form idable alliance
even the mujtahids could m ake little headw ay, though occasionally
they had a resounding success, as w hen 60,000 bottles o f w ine w ere
b ro u g h t out o f the royal cellars and publicly smashed.
T he lack o f interest in state affairs was a distressing and
ultim ately disastrous aspect o f the reigns o f b o th Sulaym än and
Sultän H usayn. W ith in the em pire, this lack o f interest signalled
increasing co rru ption and inefficiency in provincial governm ent.
Insecurity on the highw ays, always a sign o f the breakdow n o f
g o v ern m en t, was widespread. O ften travellers w ere ro b b ed by
the very officials w h o w ere supposed to pro tect them . In regard
to Iran ’s relations w ith foreign pow ers, this lack o f interest m eant
b o th indifference to the activities o f those pow ers, even w hen
Iran ’s interests w ere im m ediately affected, and a lack o f concern
about the obvious and g row ing weakness o f the arm ed forces. A
C arm elite w ro te in 1685: “ M any ambassadors are com ing here
fro m the C hristian princes to stir up the king to m ake w ar against
the T urks, b u t in vain; for he rather shows displeasure at the
defeats o f the latter, besides w hich his object and w o rld is noth in g
else than w ine and w o m e n .” 19 T he m ilitary weakness o f the
cou n try was th ro w n into sharp relief in 1698/9, w hen a band o f
B aluchi tribesm en raided K irm än, nearly reached Y azd and
threatened B andar ‘Abbäs. Shäh Sultän H usayn turned to the
G eorgian prince G iorgi X I, w ho happened to be at the Safavid
court, for help in repelling the Balüchîs; G iorgi was appointed
G o v ern o r o f K irm än in 1699, and defeated the invaders. This story
speaks for itself; that a Safavid king should have to tu rn for help
to a visiting G eorgian prince was hum iliating enough, b u t the
D ecline and f a ll o f the Safavids 243

inferences one m ay d raw from this are alarm ing: either Shah
Sultan H usayn did n o t k n o w w here else he could find a b ody o f
troops to deal w ith an em ergency, o r he had the troops b u t did
n o t trust them . In any event, the Shäh did no t think there was
any cause for alarm , for in 1706 he left the capital and was aw ay
for nearly a year on pilgrim age to the tw o chief ShT‘ï shrines in
Iran, that o f Fatim a the daughter o f the 7th Im am , at Q u m , and
that o f her brother, the 8th Im am ‘A ll al-Rizä, at M ashhad. Shäh
Sultän H usayn to o k w ith him his haram, his court and a retinue
num b erin g 60,000; the cost o f this expedition n o t only drained
the exchequer b u t placed an intolerable b u rden o f additional
taxation on the provinces th ro u g h w hich the royal cavalcade
passed. C om parisons m ay be odious, b u t the picture o f ‘Abbäs I
striding along on foot and covering the distance betw een Isfahän
and M ashhad in tw en ty -eig h t days in 1601, w hen he m ade the
pilgrim age to the shrine o f the 8th Im am , provides a striking
contrast. N o t for n o th in g was Shäh Sultän Husayn derisively
dub b ed ‘‘ M ullä H usayn ” !
T en years after the B aluchi incursion, the m ilitary feebleness
o f the Safavid em pire and, in particular, the defenceless state o f
the eastern frontier, w ere dem onstrated again, and this tim e w ith
m o re serious consequences for the Safavid state. In 1709, the
Ghilzäy Afghäns under their leader, M ir Vays, seized Q andahär
and killed G iorgi X I ; Q andahär had been in Safavid hands since
its recapture b y ‘Abbäs II in 1648. Shäh Sultän H usayn dispatched
fro m Isfahän G iorgi’s nephew , Kay K husraw , bu t the latter was
unable to restore the situation. T here seems to have been friction
betw een h im and the qizilbäsh troops under his com m and, friction
o f a type w hich recalls earlier instances o f dissension betw een the
qizilbäsh and Täjik, i.e., Iranian, com m anders. A lthough K ay
K husraw , like all G eorgians in Safavid em ploy, was a convert to
Islam, in his case, as in m any others, the conversion was purely
nom inal, and this again occasioned friction betw een him and his
M uslim troops. M oreover, K ay K husraw ’s position seems to have
been w eakened by treasury officials and other bureaucrats at
Isfahän w h o strongly resented the hold o f this G eorgian “ dynasty ”
over Shäh Sultän H usayn, and w ho w ithheld or greatly delayed
paym ents to his troops. G eorgi X I had been deposed b y Shäh

35. Shäh Sultän Husayn


244 Iran under the Safavids
Sulaym än in 1688, reinstated in 1691, had lost his throne again
in 1695 as the result o fin trig u e, and had taken refuge at the Safavid
court. W ith h im came his b ro th er Levan (Leon), w ho was
appointed dïvânbegï20 o f Isfahän about the year 1700, and his
nephew Kay K husraw , w ho becam e därügha, o r G overnor, o f
Isfahän. Kay K husraw decided to starve Q andahär into surrender,
and at the end o f tw o m onths the Afghäns offered to surrender
on terms. W hen K ay K husraw insisted on an unconditional
surrender, M ir Vays sum m oned help from the Balüchïs, w ho
tu rn ed the tables on the besiegers by cutting their supply-lines.
K ay K husraw , forced to w ithdraw , was attacked by the A fghäns;
his arm y was routed, w ith the loss o f all its cannon and baggage,
and he him self was killed. A nother force was sent out from Isfahän
u n d er the aged qürchïbàshï M uham m ad Z am än K hän, w ho died
before he reached Q andahär ; as a result, his troops dispersed. A fter
that, M ir Vays was left in undisturbed possession o f Q andahär
u n til his ow n death in 1715. His son M ahm üd assumed the
leadership o f the Ghilzäy Afghäns the follow ing year.
It is doubtful w hether M ïr Vays aspired to o v erth ro w the
Safavid state, although he had had am ple o p p o rtu n ity to see for
him self the weakness o f that state at the centre w hen G iorgi had
sent h im a prisoner to Isfahän. B y astutely playing on the hostility
o f G iorgi’s enemies there, and by judicious use o f bribes, M ir Vays
had succeeded in getting the ear o f Shäh Sultän H usayn, to w h o m
he had protested his o w n innocence o f any design against Iran,
and had com plained ab o u t the injustice and brutality o f G iorgi’s
regim e at Q andahär. M ir Vays had certainly taken the oppo rtu n ity
to equip him self w ith a legal basis for any future revolt against
Iran, for, on a pilgrim age to M ecca (itself part o f his plan to
surround him self w ith the o d o u r o f sanctity) he had obtained a
fa tvä (legal opinion) from the Sunni ‘ulamä to the effect that it
w o u ld be law ful for him to break his oath o f allegiance to a
heretical (i.e,, ShI‘I) shah. Back in Isfahän, he found the court in
a jitte ry state regarding the real intentions o f a Russian mission
headed by one Israel O ri w hich was on its w ay from Tsar Peter
the Great. R um ours w ere soon rife to the effect that Israel O ri
was descended from the ancient kings o f A rm enia and had
announced that he intended to claim his patrim ony. Foreigners
resident in Iran m agnified this alleged danger to the utm ost: the
C atholic missionaries because they th o u g h t O ri intended to get
D ecline and f a ll o f the Safavids 245

th em expelled fro m Iran, and the E uropean m erchants because


they th o u g h t th at p a rt o f O r i’s m ission was to secure an increase
in Russian trade w ith Iran at their expense. M ichel, the French
envoy w h o had recently concluded a treaty w ith Shah Sultan
H usayn, did his u tm o st to w arn the Shah’s m inisters o f O ri’s
reputedly sinister designs, and either he or som eone else is said to
have p ointed o u t to th em that the nam e Israel O ri was an anagram
for il sera roil M ir Vays exploited this situation to the utm ost,
insinuating th at P eter the G reat was about to invade Iran and
annex G eorgia and A rm enia, and that G iorgi intended to defect
to h im w ith all his G eorgian troops. T h e upshot was that M ir Vays
was given a robe o f h o n o u r by the Shäh, and sent back to
Q andahär to keep a check on the supposedly disloyal Giorgi.
A fter the death o f M ïr Vays in 1715, his peace-loving b ro th er
‘A b d al-‘Azïz succeeded him as chief o f the G hilzây A fghans. In
1716, w h en ‘A bd al-‘Azïz proposed to subm it to Shah Sultan
H usayn, the tribesm en incited M ïr V ays’s elder son, M ahm ud, to
m u rd er his uncle and assume the leadership o f the Ghilzäys.
W h eth er o r n o t M ïr Vays had dream ed o f o v erth ro w in g Shäh
Sultan H usayn, it was certainly the am bition o f his son M ahm üd
to d o so. H e was m aterially aided in fu rth erin g this am bition by
the revolt o f the other m ajor grouping o f A fghan tribes, the
Abdâlïs, w h o inhabited the region o f H arät. T h e Abdâlïs failed
to take M ashhad, b u t inflicted a n u m b er o f hum iliating defeats
on various Safavid forces sent against them . A striking feature o f
the declining years o f the Safavid dynasty is the lo w m orale o f
the Safavid arm ies, the legacy o f years o f neglect o f the m ilitary ;
coupled w ith this was a dearth o f field com m anders o f ability and
experience. K n o w ledge o f the Shah’s w ay o f life cannot have
raised the m orale o f the troops. A fter the loss o f the B ahrein
Islands (1717), M aryam B egum , Shäh Sulaym än’s aunt, upbraided
Shäh Sultän H usayn fo r his indolence and indifference to the fate
o f the state. She set an exam ple b y giving a large sum o f m oney
to raise another arm y against the rebels, and the Shäh was sham ed
in to m o v in g co urt to Q azvïn in o rd er to levy som e fresh troops,
b u t once again inaction was the order o f the day :
The leaders and pillars o f that state, each one by reason o f his vain
personal interests and hypocrisy against the others, veiled his eyes to
w hat was expedient for the state. W henever anyone wished to m ove
[against the enem y], each [o f the others] w ould make an excuse and
246 Iran under the Safavids
prevent anything from being done. They postponed their departure and
occupied themselves with pleasure. For three years they remained in
Qazvîn, practising the selling o f offices and the receiving o f bribes.21

T he Afghans w ere by no means the only neighbours o f Iran


to sense that the collapse o f the Safavid em pire was near and that
p ortions o f it m ig h t be annexed w ith o u t the expenditure o f too
m uch effort. Peter the G reat was in close touch w ith the Georgians
and A rm enians, and the regions inhabited by those peoples. In
1715, the Tsar sent the 28-year-old A rtem ii Petrovich V olynsky
as am bassador to Shäh Sultan H usayn; he was to conclude a
com m ercial treaty w ith Iran, and in particular seek to divert the
silk transit trade, then carried by A rm enian m erchants through
Syria and T urkey, th ro u g h Russian territo ry ; he was also to
collect as m uch m ilitary intelligence as possible, including info­
rm atio n on Iranian resources and com m unications.22 V olynsky
reported that the general situation in Iran was so disturbed, and
the arm y so dem oralised and inefficient, that the country could
easily be conquered by a small Russian arm y. B oth V olynsky and
Jo h n Bell, the Scottish surgeon attached to his mission, reported
that Shäh Sultän H usayn left the conduct o f affairs o f state w holly
to his m inisters.23 O n V olynsky’s retu rn jo u rn ey through Shïrvân,
he received a message from the G eorgian prince W akhtang, a
nephew o f G iorgi XI and a bro th er o f the Kay K husraw killed
at Q andahär, offering to co-operate w ith Russian forces if the
latter invaded Iran.24
It was M a h m u d ’s good fortune to seize the chieftainship o f the
Ghilzäy Afghäns at a tim e w hen n o t only the Safavid state but
also the M ogul em pire was in decline. A fter the death o f the
E m p ero r AwrangzTb in 1717, the M ogul em pire was torn apart
by the incessant struggles o f rival claimants to the throne, and
M ah m u d knew that, if he m arched w est into Iran, he had nothing
to fear from M ogul forces in his rear, in particular any attem pt
on their part to recover Q andahär. M ahm üd, having achieved
w hat Shäh Sultän H usayn could not, the defeat o f the A bdâlï
Afghäns, received from the grateful Shäh the governorship o f
Q andahär and the title o f H usayn Q u lï (the slave o f Husayn)
Khän. In the late sum m er o f 1719, M ahm üd dem onstrated the
ironical nature o f this title by leading a force o f some 11,000 m en
across the D asht-i L ût to K irm än, w hich he entered unopposed.25
D ecline and f a ll o f the Safavids 247

A fter he had been at K irm än for nine m onths, he hurriedly


returned to Q andahär on hearing new s o f an attem pted coup
against him there. Shäh Sultän H usayn took no advantage o f this
breathing-space to p u t his o w n house in order. Such action as was
taken was directed against the Arabs o f M uscat rather than tow ard
strengthening the eastern defences. T he Shäh continued to rem ain
at Q azvïn, m uch to the indignation o f the population o f the
capital, w here in 1719 there had been a second conspiracy w ith
the aim o f replacing Shäh Sultän H usayn b y his m ore vigorous
and com petent bro th er ‘A bbäs; this p lo t ended in failure, as had
the earlier one in 1715. A ny chance o f positive action on the part
o f the principal officers o f state was frustrated by the rivalries and
dissensions am ong them , dissensions w hich the Shäh took no steps
either to resolve or term inate. In the sum m er o f 1720, the vazir
Fath ‘AIT K hän DäghistänT finally decided to give p riority to the
restoration o f Safavid sovereignty in the provinces o f H arät and
Q andahär. His plan was that the royal arm y should m arch by easy
stages to Khuräsän, and that his nephew L u tf ‘AIT K hän, the
G overnor-G eneral o f Färs, should jo in forces w ith it en route. T he
plan cam e to nothing, apparently as a result o f the opposition on
the p art o f M uham m ad H usayn the mulläbäsht26 and RahTm K hän
the haktm-bâshï, or chief physician. T h e Shäh refused to leave
Q azvïn until O ctober 1720, and then m oved only to T ehran, 90
miles to the east. In D ecem ber 1720, the mulläbäshi and the
hakïm-bâshi, by producing forged evidence, convinced the Shäh
that the vazir was p lotting against his life. T he credulous Shäh
believed their story, and ordered the execution o f the vazxr, but
the conspirators, wishing to get their hands on his alleged vast
w ealth, m erely arrested him and had him blinded. N ex t, the
conspirators seized the vazîr's nephew L u tf ‘AIT K hän and
dismissed him from his governorship and arm y com m and.
Replacing him b y a certain Ism ä‘Tl K hän, they put the latter in
com m and o f the rem nants o f L u tf ‘AIT K hän’s troops and
dispatched him to Khuräsän, b u t Ismä‘Tl K hän was unable even
to subdue the rebellious G overnor o f T ün.
T he O tto m a n Sultän had, like the Tsar, been receiving reports
about the state o f weakness and near collapse obtaining in Iran,
and in 1720 he sent DurrT Efendi as ambassador to the Shäh’s court.
T he Shäh’s pusillanim ous ministers, w ho had w orked themselves
up into a state o f panic over the mission o f Israel O ri, convinced
248 Iran under the Safavids
themselves that D u m Efendi had com e to announce a declaration
o f w ar by the O tto m an Sultan. Reassured on th at point, they
arranged an audience for the O tto m a n ambassador w ith Shäh
Sultän H usayn. In his subsequent report to the Sultän, D u rrïEfendi
m ade a n u m b er o f interesting observations. Like Volynsky, he
com m ented on the lack o f intelligence o f those then in charge
o f the affairs o f the Safavid state; he also com m ented on the
inadequacy o f the num bers o f those w o rk in g on the land, w hich
resulted in the price o f w heat, barley and other com m odities being
tw ice as h igh in Iran as in T urkey. In the cities, on the other hand,
there was great w ealth, and prosperous m erchant com m unities
engaged in the m anufacture o f silks, satins and other stuffs.27
Fortunately for Iran, the intentions o f Sultän A hm ed III w ere
peaceable, since those o f Tsar Peter the Great w ere m ost definitely
not. V olynsky, after he had subm itted his (from the Russian point
o f view) encouraging report on Iran in 1717, had been appointed
G overnor o f A strakhan w ith orders to hold a w atching b rie f in
regard to affairs in Iran, and a nu m b er o f Russian m ilitary and
naval officers w ere hard at w o rk preparing detailed surveys o f
the Caspian coasts and reports on m ilitary routes in Gïlân. In
1719, the Tsar sent Sem eon A vram ov as consul in Rasht. By
1721, if n ot before, thè Tsar had decided to invade Iran, giving as
his casus belli tw o incidents involving Russian nationals in Iran;
neither incident had been w illed by the Iranian g o vernm ent; on
the contrary, b o th incidents had occurred because o f the lack o f
will o f the governm ent to govern. T he Russian consul at Rasht,
Sem eon A vram ov, was ordered to go to Isfahän to protest about
these incidents, b u t was unable to reach the city because the siege
o f Isfahän by the Afghäns was already in progress.
In the late sum m er o f 1721, M ah m ü d had again crossed the
D asht-i Lût, as on the previous occasion losing m en and animals
in the heat and dro u g h t o f the desert, and reached K irm än in
O ctober. T he city was occupied, but the G overnor-G eneral,
R ustam M uham m ad Sa‘dlü, repulsed an assault on the citadel
w ith heavy losses to the Afghäns. By the end o f January 1722,
there w ere m urm urings in the A fghän ranks, and som e m en had
already deserted, w hen M ahm üd had an unexpected piece o f
good fortune; R ustam M uham m ad Sa‘dlü died, and his successor
saved M ah m ü d ’s face by bribing him to raise the siege. M ahm üd
m arched aw ay to Yazd but, repulsed again there, he by-passed
D ecline and f a ll o f the Safavids 249
the city and m arched on the Safavid capital, Isfahan. In the capital,
there w ere divided counsels. T he vazir advised the defence o f the
city, on the grounds th at the only forces available w ere no m atch
for the A fghans in the open field; others counselled an im m ediate
offensive. T h e Shah decided to attack; there was a hasty levy o f
untrained peasants and m erchants, m any o f w h o m had never
b o rn e arm s before, in the Isfahan area, and this scratch force, w ith
only a stiffening o f regular troops fro m the ghuläm regim ents and
tribal levies, m arched o u t to m eet M ah m ü d at G ulnäbäd, about
18 miles fro m Isfahän. W hatever chance o f victory this m otley
arm y m ig h t have had was vitiated by dissensions betw een the
jo in t-co m m an d ers, the vazir and the V alï o f ‘Arabistän. Inept
battle tactics on the p art o f the Safavid field com m anders, and the
steadiness o f M a h m u d ’s general A m in Allah, converted a possible
A fghan defeat into a victory. M a h m ü d could have entered Isfahan
the same day, 8 M arch 1722, b u t he w ro n g ly th o u g h t that there
w o u ld be Safavid reserves available to be hurled against him .
T hus began the long d raw n -o u t agony o f Isfahan. T he Afghans,
too few in num bers to risk an assault, contented them selves w ith
blockading the city. W ith in the city, the Shäh was in the hands
o f a treacherous group o f appeasers. Early in June, the troops o f
the Valï o f Luristän, ‘A li M ardän K hän, reached a p o in t only 40
miles n o rth -w est o f Isfahan, and dem anded the abdication o f Shäh
Sultän H usayn in favour o f his b ro th er ‘Abbäs. T he Shäh refused,
b u t his th ird son, T ahm äsp, w ho was w eak and ineffectual like
his father, was passed th ro u g h the A fghan lines; instead o f jo in ­
ing forces w ith ‘AIT M ardän K hän, how ever, T ahm äsp w ent to
Q azvïn, w here he proclaim ed him self Shäh T ahm äsp II, b u t
otherw ise rem ained inactive. W ith in the capital, fam ine was n o w
acute; the people ate cats, dogs, m ice and even hum an flesh;
hundreds o f ro ttin g corpses clogged the streets. Finally, after a
six-m onth siege, Shäh Sultän H usayn surrendered the city un­
conditionally to M atim fld on 12 O c to b er 1722. A t least 80,000
people are said to have perished d uring the siege fro m starvation
and disease. O n 25 O ctober, M ah m ü d entered Isfahän and
ascended the throne. For m o re than h a lf a century, the political,
m ilitary and social foundations o f the Safavid state had been
steadily ero d ed ; its o v erth ro w , w hen it came, needed only a slight
push on the part o f som e 20,000 Afghäns.
T he Afghäns, although they w ere n o w the nom inal rulers o f
2 5 0 Iran under the Safavids
Iran, never succeeded in m aking themselves masters o f the w hole
country, and for fourteen years representatives o f the Safavid
fam ily m aintained a shadow y existence in various parts o f
n o rth ern Iran. T he roi-fainéant T ahm äsp II was driven ou t o f
Q azvïn and retreated to Tabriz, b u t the A fghans w ere then
themselves driven o u t o f Q azvln by the tow nspeople, a clear
indication o f w hat m ig h t have been achieved under m ore loyal,
resolute and capable leadership. M ahm üd, fearing a similar
uprising o f the civilian population at Isfahan, slaughtered m any
h igh-ranking Iranian officials and nobles, together w ith about
3,000 qizilbäsh guards. A gain, this action shows clearly the pre­
carious nature o f the A fghan hold on Iran. In February 1725,
M ahm üd, his fears again aroused by reports that Safi, another o f
Shäh Sultan H usayn’s sons, had escaped from Isfahan, ordered a
general massacre o f all m em bers o f the Safavid royal house w ith
the exception o f Shäh Sultän H usayn and tw o you n g princes; at
least eighteen m em bers o f the royal house perished in this
massacre. T w o m onths later, M ah m ü d was o v erth ro w n b y a coup
in favour o f his cousin, Ashraf, w h o was proclaim ed shah on
26 A pril 1725. For som e tim e M a h m ü d ’s behaviour had been
unpredictable, bordering on madness. Som e authorities declare
that he was suffering fro m leprosy; others, that he was paralysed.
O n the basis o f the description o f the sym ptom s o f M a h m ü d ’s
illness contained in K rusinski, how ever, there is very little doubt
th at M ahm üd, at the tim e o f his o v erth ro w , was in the final stages
o f tertiary syphilis.28 M ah m ü d either died shortly after the coup,
o r was done aw ay w ith b y Ashraf, at the age o f tw enty-six.
W hile the people o f Isfahän w ere enduring the hardships o f the
A fghän siege, the T sar Peter the G reat em barked at A strakhan in
Ju ly 1772 w ith a h uge arm y o f m ore than 100,000 m en, and w ent
ashore o ff T erki on the w est coast o f the Caspian. D uring the
southw ard m arch along the coast, the T sar’s m en suffered from
the unaccustom ed heat, and m any died o f heat-stroke. T h e Tsar
m arched as far south as D arband, som e 150 miles fro m his point
o f disem barkation, b u t shortage o f supplies, the onset o f w inter
and the hostility o f the O tto m a n governm ent to w ard his venture,
forced him to retire. C onsidering that he lost about o ne-third o f
his entire force, the results o f this expedition w ere m eagre.
W e have already seen that the increased m ilitancy o f the ShTT
theologians during the reigns o f Shäh Sulaym än and Shäh Sultän
D ecline and f a ll o f the Safavids 2 5 1

H usayn had led to the placing o f greater emphasis on the rooting


o u t o f heresy. This increased m ilitancy m ay have been a factor
o f the rev o lt o f the S unni K urds in 1704, b u t it was the non-M uslim
religious m inorities w hich bore the b ru n t o f religious persecution.
Shah Sultan H usayn was persuaded to sign a decree fo r the
forcible conversion o f the Z oroastrians, and m any Jew s w ere
also forced to em brace Islam. T he C hristian m inority groups,
consisting in the m ain o f A rm enians belonging to the G regorian
C hurch, suffered less, b u t the law passed by ‘Abbäs I and re-enacted
by ‘Abbäs II, entitling a Je w o r C hristian w ho becam e a M uslim
to claim the p ro p erty o f his relatives, was from tim e to tim e
enforced. Shah Sultan H usayn does n o t seem to have been hostile
to C hristians personally, b u t was persuaded to issue unjust and
intolerant decrees b y the religious leaders w h o had so m uch
influence over h im , in particular the mulläbäsht M u h am m ad B äqir
Majlis! and a later holder o f that office, his grandson M ir
M u h am m ad H usayn K hâtünâbâdï, w h o died in 1739.
Serious as w ere the im plications o f this policy for the internal
peace and prosperity o f the Safavid state, its im plications in regard
to Iran ’s relations w ith foreign pow ers w ere potentially disastrous.
As m entioned earlier, the O tto m a n Sultan A hm ed III (1703—30),
was a ruler o f peaceable disposition. His reign is k n o w n as the
“ T ulip p e rio d ” , and represents the last flow ering o f O tto m a n
artistic achievem ent in architecture, m iniature-painting, ceramics
and textiles. His G rand Vizier, D äm äd Ibrâhîm , was a generous
p atro n o f literature and the arts, and was responsible for the setting
up o f the first p rin tin g press in Istanbul. His policy to w ard
Iran was one o f non-interference and friendship, b u t he and the
Sultan w ere under considerable pressure to go to the aid o f the
Sunni populations o f Shïrvân and D âghistân w ho w ere feeling
the w eight o f S h fl persecution. T he signature o f the T reaty o f
Passarovitz w ith A ustria and V enice in 1718 freed T u rk e y ’s hands
in the west, and encouraged T urkish irredentists to agitate for
m ilitary action against Iran designed to regain those areas o f
n o rth -w estern Iran w hich had been seized b y the O tto m an s
d uring the reig n o f Sultan M u h am m ad Shah.
A fter the fall o f Isfahan to the A fghans in O cto b er 1722,
T ahm äsp II sent an envoy to the P o rte asking for assistance against
the A fghan usurpers. T he G rand V izier replied that, if T ahm äsp
w o u ld cede to the O tto m a n em pire all the provinces claim ed by
2 5 2 Iran under the Safavids
the latter, T u rk ey w o u ld help Tahm äsp to recover the rest o f Iran.
Mutatis mutandis, these w ere precisely the same term s as had been
offered to Tahm äsp by Peter the G reat. T he T sar’s show ing o f
the flag in the Caspian coastal provinces in 1722 had occasioned
great alarm in Istanbul, and there was a flurry o f diplom atic
activity as the possibility o f w ar betw een Russia and T urkey
becam e stronger o r receded. T he outcom e was the R usso-O ttom an
T reaty for the partitio n o f Iran’s north-w est provinces, dated 24
June 1724.29 T he dism em berm ent o f Iran was short-lived. Six
Russian battalions landed in Gïlân in 1723, and another Russian
force captured B äkü, b u t the death o f Peter the G reat in 1725
m eant the end for the tim e being o f Russian expansionist policies,
and T urkish encroachm ents on Iranian territo ry after 1726 w ere
term inated by N äd ir K hän (later N äd ir Shäh).
A sh raf had succeeded M ahm üd on 26 A pril 1725. His territory
consisted o f central and southern Iran, the province o f Sïstân, and
the w estern part o f K huräsän, b u t in reality the A fghans controlled
only the principal u rban centres in those regions. Ashraf, w h o had
th ro u g h o u t been on bad term s w ith M ahm üd because the latter
had been the m u rd erer o f his (A shraf s) father, inaugurated his
reign by executing all M a h m ü d ’s principal supporters; to m ake
his position even m o re secure, he then pu t to death the A fghän
officers w ho had placed him on the throne, and blinded his ow n
bro th er. H e then attem p ted to lure the deposed Safavid Shäh,
Sultän H usayn, to his death by offering him the c ro w n ; Sultän
H usayn wisely avoided this trap, and countered by offering his
o w n daughter in m arriage to Ashraf. Reassured that h e had
n o th in g to fear fro m the ex-Shäh, A shraf next tried to lure the
soi-disant Tahm äsp II into a m eeting w ith him , b u t som e loyal
Iranian nobles, subsequently executed by Ashraf, w arned Tahm äsp
o f A sh raf s intentions. A shraf then m arched against Tahm äsp,
caught his m en by surprise near T ehran and routed them ;
Tahm äsp escaped to M äzandarän, w here he was eventually join ed
by the qizilbäsh chief o f the Q äjär tribe, Fath ‘A ll Khän.
In 1726, the O ttom ans, taking advantage o f the 1724 T reaty
w ith Russia, m arched into north-w estern Iran w ith a force o f
60,000 m en and 70 guns under A hm ad Pasha. C hecked betw een
Q azvïn and Isfahän, the T urks w ere subjected to psychological
w arfare by Ashraf, w ho sent fo u r molläs to A hm ad Pasha to
enquire w hy he was w aging w ar on fellow -Sunnïs “ w h o w ere
D ecline and f a ll o f the Safavids 253
obeying the divine precepts o f the law in subverting the p o w er
o f the heretical Shias” 30 A hm ad Pasha protested that he was only
carrying o u t the orders o f the Sultan, b u t A sh raf s propaganda had
the effect o f causing m any o f the Pasha’s K urdish, and some
T urkish, troops to desert. A hm ad Pasha hastily attacked A shraf
near H am adän before his forces becam e further depleted, b u t the
desertion o f a further 20,000 K urdish cavalry, and the refusal o f
m any o f his T urkish troops to advance, led to his total ro u t by
A shraf on 20 N o v e m b er 1726. A lthough A sh raf s victory was one
o f the factors w hich led the P o rte to recognise him as Shäh o f Iran
in 1727, it was a m uch truncated Iran, in fact, little different from
the one w hich Tashm äsp II could have ruled had he been prepared
to do w h at A shraf did, nam ely, to cede to the O ttom ans all Iran’s
Caucasian and n o rth-w estern provinces.
In 1729, A shraf resum ed the offensive against T ahm äsp II, w ho
had found in N äd ir K hän Afshär a new cham pion to replace Fath
‘A ll K hän Q äjär. D efeated in tw o battles by T ahm äsp and N ädir,
A shraf abandoned his capital, Isfahän, in N o v em b er 1729, b u t was
overtaken near Shïrâz and suffered a third defeat. A shraf h im ­
self fled in the direction o f Q andahär, b u t was killed en route,
probably by a detachm ent o f A fghän troops sent from Q andahär
by his b ro th er H usayn. His death b ro u g h t to an end the seven-year
A fghän in terregnum in Iran, during w hich the cou n try had lapsed
in to a state o f chaos. N ä d ir K hän entered Isfahän on 16 N o v em b er
1729, and restored the Safavid m onarchy by placing T ahm äsp II
on the throne. (The harm less Shäh Sultän H usayn had been
m u rd ered by A shraf p rio r to the battle w ith A hm ad Pasha,
because the latter had announced his intention o f reinstating the
deposed Shäh.) N ä d ir K hän did n o t have in m ind the perm anent
restoration o f the Safavid dynasty. In A ugust 1732, he deposed
Tahm äsp II in favour o f the latter’s e ig h t-m o n th -o ld son ‘Abbäs*
w h o was crow ned as Shäh ‘Abbäs III, b u t even the regency was
n o t sufficient to satisfy N ä d ir for long, and on 8 M arch 1736, he
had him self crow ned as N ä d ir Shäh, the first ruler o f the Afshär
dynasty. T he Safavid dynasty, w hich had existed in nam e only
since 1722, no longer existed even in nam e. T he mutlâbâshï M ïrzâ
‘A bd al-Hasan lost his head on the eve o f N ä d ir’s coronation
because he had been overheard to say, “ E verybody is in favour
o f the Safavid dynasty.” T h o u g h the Safavid state had been
destroyed as a political reality, so strong w ere its institutions, and
254 ir a » under the Safavids

so great was its prestige, that its ghost to o k h a lf a century to lay


and was n o t finally exorcised until the death o f the last Safavid
p u p p et shah, IsmäTl III, in 1773.31 A fter a period o f vicious civil
w ar betw een tw o rival factions, the Z ands in the south and the
Q äjärs in the n o rth , in 1795 the Qäjärs, the “ last o f the qizilbäsh ” ,
“ claim ed the Safavid legacy o f despotic royalty under a new
n a m e ” .32 U n fo rtu n ately for the Qäjärs, they inherited an ad­
m inistrative m achine the keys o f w hich had either been th ro w n
aw ay or lost.
NOTES

I The Lords of Ardabïl


1 Thus the Safvat al-Safa; the later source, Silsilat al-Nasab-i Safaviyya, gives
the name o f Qutb al-Dm’s son as Sälih, and makes Amin al-Dïn JibräTl
his grandson. The Safvat al-Safa also gives Qutb al-DIn’s name as Abu Bakr,
not Abu’l-BäqT Ahmad. Many Safavid sources give, without comment,
conflicting evidence on this point.
2 Awtäd (literally, “ stakes”, “ tent-pegs”), and abdäl (literally, “ substitutes”)
rank third and fifth respectively in the Sufi hierarchy o f saints (rijäl al-ghayb ;
literally, “ men o f the Unseen W orld”) who* “ unknown by the masses,
participate by means o f their powerful influence in the preservation o f the
order of the universe” (see I. Goldziher, article “ Abdäl” in Encyclopaedia
of Islam, 2nd edn, vol. I (London and Leiden i960), pp. 94-5; hereinafter
referred to as EP).
3 The ritual dance o f the Sufis, frequently accompanied by music, designed
to induce in the performer a trance-like state o f ecstasy.
4 R. M. Savory, “ The Development o f the Early Safawid State under Ismail
and Tahmäsp”, unpublished University o f London Ph.D. thesis (1958),
P- U-
5 Savory, “ Development”, p. 14.
6 A. H. Morton, “The Ardabïl Shrine in the Reign o f Shäh Tahmäsp I”,
in Iran, xn (1974), p. 51. See this article and its sequel, also by Morton, in
Iran, xiii (1975), pp. 39—58, for a detailed description o f the Ardabïl shrine.
7 The constant remembrance of God and repetition o f His name.
8 See Savory, “ Development”, pp. 90—1.
9 Suyürghäl: “ a grant o f land or its revenue in lieu o f salary or by way o f
pension” (A. K. S. Lambton, Landlord and Peasant in Persia (Oxford 1953),
p- 440).
10 See Savory, “ Development”, and Lambton, Landlord and Peasant, p. 104.
11 “ Bäz ham Safaviyya”, in Ayanda, n (1927-8), pp. 803 if.
12 H. Horst, Timur und Hogä ‘A li (Wiesbaden 1958).
13 Silsilat al-Nasab-i Safaviyya, p. 48.
14 Quoted in Tadhkirat al-Mulük, translated and explained by V. Minorsky
(London 1943), pp. 189-90 (hereinafter cited as TM). I have slightly
amended Minorsky’s version.
15 Asia Minor.

255
256 N o tes to p p . 15—32
16 Iskandar Beg Munshï, Tàrïkh-i ‘Älam-ärä-yi ‘Abbàsï, translated by R. M.
Savory, Persian Heritage Series, ed. Ehsan Yarshater, no. 28, 2 vols.
(Boulder, Colorado, 1978), vol. r, p. 28 (transliteration adapted) ; hereinafter
referred to as Shah ‘Abbas.
17 The “ infidel” in this case was the Christian populations o f Circassia,
Georgia and Shïrvân.
18 V. Minorsky, “Jihän-shäh Qarä-qoyünlü and his Poetry”, in Bulletin of
the School of Oriental and African Studies, xvi (1954), p. 274.
19 Shah ‘Abbas, p. 31.
20 Shah ‘Abbas, p. 32.
21 John E. Woods, The Aqquyunlu, Bibliotheca Isiamica (Minneapolis and
Chicago 1976), p. 289.
22 R. M. Savory, “ The Struggle for Supremacy in Persia after the Death of
TTmür”, in Der Islam, xl (1964), p. 58.
23 Savory, “ Struggle”, p. 59 (both quotations).
24 TM , p. i.
25 Those wishing to pursue this idea are referred to my article, “ Some
Reflections on Totalitarian Tendencies in the Safavid State”, in Der Islam,
LIII (1976), pp. 226 - 4 1 .
26 A perversion o f the orthodox Muslim profession o f faith : “ There is no god
but God.”
27 See Michel M. Mazzaoui, The Origin of the Safawids (Wiesbaden 1972), p.
73-
28 See V. Minorsky, “ The Poetry o f Shäh Ismâ‘ÏÏ I”, in Bulletin of the School
of Oriental and African Studies, x (1942), p. 1047a. See also various
publications by T. Gandjei on the subject.
29 See A. S. Tritton, Islam, Belief and Practice (London 1951), p. 83; and
M. G. S. Hodgson, article “ Ghulät”, in EP, vol. 11, pp. 1093—5.
30 See J. Spencer Trimingham, The Sufi Orders in Islam (Oxford 1971), p- 83 ;
and article “ Bektâshiyya” in E l2.
31 Quoted in Mazzaoui, p. 83.
32 Ideals and Realities of Islam (Boston 1972), p. 127.
33 Travels of Venetians in Persia, Hakluyt Society (London 1873), p. 206.

2 The reign of Shäh IsmäTl I


1 Nasr AllahFalsafî, Zindigànï-yi Shah ‘Abbâs-i avval, 4 vols. (Tehran 1955—61),
vol. HI, p. 31 ; also quoted in R. M. Savory, “ Iran: A 2,500 year historical
and cultural tradition”, in Iranian Civilization and Culture, ed. Charles
J. Adams (Montreal 1972), p. 85.
2 All quotations in this paragraph are from British Library MS. Or 3248,
fols. 73b—74b. See R. M. Savory, “ The Development o f the Early Safawid
State”, unpublished University o f London Ph.D. thesis (1958), pp. 90—1.
3 R. M. Savory, “ Safavid Persia”, in Cambridge History of Islam, 2 vols,
(Cambridge 1970), vol. 1, p. 398.
4 R. M. Savory, “ Some Reflections on Totalitarian Tendencies in the Safavid
State”, in Der Islam, lui (1976), p. 235 ; see also Leon Trotsky, The History
of the Russian Revolution, 3 vols. (London 1967), vol. 1, p. 212.
5 TM, p. 188.
N o tes to p p . 33—56 257
6 History of Persia, 2 vols. (London 1815), vol. 1, p. 481.
7 See my article “ Kïzîl-bash”, in EP.
8 H. A R. Gibb and Harold Bowen, Islamic Society and the West (Oxford
1957), vol. I, part 2, p. 189.
9 J. Spencer Trimingham, The Sufi Orders in Islam (Oxford 1971)» P- 83.
10 R. M, Savory, “ The Consolidation o f Safawid Power in Persia”, in Der
Islam, xli (1965), p. 86.
11 D. Ayalon, Gunpowder and Firearms in the Mamlük Kingdom (London 1956),
p. 109.
12 Gibb and Bowen, vol. I, part 2, p. 189.
13 Savory, “ Consolidation”, p. 88.
14 Shah 'Abbas, vol. 1, p. 68.
15 Janissary: anglicised form of Turkish yeni ten: “ new soldiery”.
16 Quoted in Travels of Venetians in Persia, Hakluyt Society (London 1873),
p. 62, n. i.
17 Caterino Zeno, “ Travels in Persia”, p. 61, in A Narrative of Italian Travels
in Persia in the 15th and 16th centuries, translated and edited by Charles Grey,
in Travels of Venetians in Persia.
18 Ayalon, pp. 109-10.
19 R. M. Savory, article “ Bärüd. v. The Safawids”, in EP, p. 1067.
20 Caterino Zeno, p. 61.
21 “Jang-i Chäldirän”, in Majalla-yi Dmishkada-yi Adabiyyät~i Tihrän, i
(1953 - 4 ). P- 121.
22 Savory, “ Consolidation”, p. 93.
23 See Shah 'Abbas, vol. 1, pp. 71-2.
24 R. M. Savory, “ The Principal Offices o f the Safawid State during the Reign
o f Shäh Ismä‘il I (907-30/1501-24)”, in Bulletin of the School of Oriental and
African Studies, xxm (i960), p. 98.

3 The Safavid state from 1524 to 1588


1 The three ranks o f qizilbäsh officers, in ascending order, were: Beg, Sultän,
Khän. It is interesting to note that Husayn Beg Lala Shämlü continues to
be so termed in the sources, even after he was appointed to the two highest
offices in the state.
2 R. M. Savory, “ The Principal Offices of the Safawid State during the Reign
o f Shäh Tahmäsp I (930—84/1524-^76)”, in Bulletin of the School of Oriental
and African Studies, xxiv (1961), p. 66.
3 A tiyül was an assignment o f land made to officials in lieu o f salary; in the
case o f military governors, the grantee had the obligation to provide a
contingent o f troops when required to do so by the shah.
4 The site o f Ismä‘Tl’s great victory over the Äq Quyünlü ruler Alvand in
1501.
5 See Savory, “ Principal Offices”, p. 68.
6 Sir John Chardin, Voyages du Chevalier Chardin en Perse, et autres lieux de
VOrient, 10 vols. (Amsterdam 1711), vol. vi, p. 18.
7 There was a nice convention that “ men of the pen” were not, in general,
executed for their crimes.
8 The word qürchï is derived from the Mongolian and means “ archer”.
2 5 8 N o tes to p p . 57—107
9 C. Thornton Forster and F. H. Blackburne Daniell, The Life and Letters of
Ogxer Ghiselin de Busbecq (London 1881), vol. 1, p. 300.
10 Anon, A Chronicle of the Carmelites in Persia, 2 vols. (London 1939), vol. 1,
pp. 47-8.
11 Türän: the land of the Turkish peoples, as opposed to Iran, the land o f the
Aryan peoples.
12 Sharaf al-Din Bitlïsï, Sharafnâma, ed. V. Véliaminof-Zernof, 2 vols. (St
Petersburg 1860-2), vol. 11, pp. 251—2.
13 Shah ‘Abbas, vol. 1, p. 131.
14 See Shah *Abbas, vol. 1, pp. 139-40.
15 Full details of Humayün’s visit to Iran are contained in Riazul Islam,
Indo-Persian Relations (Tehran 1970), pp. 22-47.
16 Riazul Islam, appendix C, p. 197.
17 Shah ‘Abbas, vol. 1, p. 370 (transliteration adapted).

4 Safavid empire under Shäh ‘Abbas the Great


1 R. M. Savory, “ The Office of Khalifat al-Khulafa under the Safavids”, in
Journal of the American Oriental Society, lxxxv (1965), p. 449.
2 This and the following quotation from Shah ‘Abbas, vol. 11, p. 554.
3 Shah ‘Abbas, vol. n, p. 757.
4 The tumän in 1622 was worth approximately £3.6.8 (see Carmelites,
vol. 11, p. 775).
5 The Divan, or “ Collected Poems” o f Häfiz, is commonly used for this
purpose. The “ ‘Iraq” referred to in the poem is ‘Iräq-i ‘Ajam, the ancient
Media, not Mesopotamia. Baghdad was recaptured by Shäh ‘Abbäs in a
subsequent campaign in 1623.
6 Shah ‘Abbas, vol. 11, p. 1226.
7 The legendary hero o f the Iranian national epic, the Shähnäma. I am
indebted to my colleague, Dr Glyn Meredith-Owens, for the translation
of the Ottoman letter. See Shah ‘Abbas, vol. 11, pp. 1275 ff.
8 Nicolas Sanson, The Present State of Persia (Paris 1695), p. 128.
9 Jean de Thévenot, Travels of M. de Thévenot in the Levant, newly done out
o f the French [by A. Lovell], part 11: Persia (London 1687), p. 78.
10 Sir John Malcolm, History of Persia, 2 vols. (London 1815), vol. 1, p. 550.
11 Malcolm, p. 565.
12 Lt.-Col. P. M. Sykes, A History of Persia, 2 vols. (London 1915), vol. n,
p. 268.

5 Relations with West during Safavid period


1 Sir Arnold Wilson, The Persian Gulf (Oxford 1928), p. 121.
2 A Chronicle of the Carmelites in Persia, 2 vols. (London 1939), vol. 1, p. 29,
gives the figures o f 20 cannon and 10,000 men. The latter figure in particular
is not credible.
3 Carmelites, vol. 1, pp. 84—7.
4 Carmelites, vol. 1, pp. 90-1.
N otes to p p . n o —29 259

5 See R. M. Savory, “ The Sherley M yth”, in Iran, v (1967), pp. 76-7.


6 For the full story, see Don Juan of Persia: a Shi*ah Catholic 1560—1604, ed.
G. Le Strange (London 1926).
7 The Safavid shahs were commonly termed by Western writers “ Sophie”,
“ Sophy”, “ Sophi” or “ Soffi”. All these terms were probably corruptions
o f Safi, the name o f the founder o f the Safavid Order, rather than o f Süfï,
as the Safavid supporters called themselves.
8 Anthony Jenkinson, Early Voyages and Travels to Russia and Persia, Hakluyt
Society, ist series, nos. lxxii and Lxxm, 2 vols. (London 1886), vol. 1,
P- 1 4 7 .
9 A Short Account of the Journey from Poland to Constantinople and from there
to Astrakhan, by Master Andrew Taranöwsku, chamberlain to His Majesty
the King.
10 An imperial decree, which may be issued only by the shah.
11 Samuel Purchas, Hakluytus Posthumus or, Purchas his Pilgrims, 20 vols.
(Glasgow 1905-71), vol. iv, p. 279.
12 Fortune did not smile on the unfortunate Gouveia. On his way back to
Spain, he was captured by Algerian corsairs and held to ransom for two
years. On finally reaching Portugal, he decided to spend the rest o f his life
in a monastery!
13 Quoted by C. R. Boxer in his introduction to the Commentaries ofRuy Freyre
of Andrada (London 1930), p. xxii.
14 George N. Curzon, Persia and the Persian Question, 2 vols. (1892; repr.
London 1966), vol. 11, p. 411, n. 1, quoting Purchas his Pilgrims.
15 Shah *Abbas, vol. n, p. 1204.
16 Some Yeares* Travel, quoted in Curzon, vol. 1, p. 36, n. 3.
17 For additional details, see Laurence Lockhart, “ Marie Petit and her Persian
Adventure”, in The Asiatic Review, xm , no. 149 (1946), pp. 273^7.
18 See Laurence Lockhart, The Fall of the Safavx Dynasty and the Afghän
Occupation of Persia (Cambridge 1958), pp. 463—4.
19 Curzon, vol. n, p. 464.
20 For this quotation from Persia and the Persian Gulf Records, vol. xiv, in the
India Office Library, and for other material in this chapter, I am indebted
to my friend Laurence Lockhart, who generously placed it at my disposal
shortly before his death.

6 Flowering of the arts under the Safavids


1 R. M. Savory, “ Land o f the Lion and the Sun”, in The World of Islam,
ed. Bernard Lewis (London 1976), p. 251.
2 Anthony Welch, Shäh ‘Abbas and the Arts of Isfahan (The Asia Society Inc.
1973 ), P- H-
3 Laurence Binyon, J. V. S. Wilkinson and Basil Gray, Persian Miniature
Painting (New York 1971), pp. 106—7.
4 Binyon et ah, p. 109.
5 Binyon et ai, pp. 109-10.
6 Welch, Arts, p. 13.
7 Stuart Cary Welch (ed.), Metropolitan Museum o f Art (New York 1972).
2 Ö 0 N otes to p p . 129-45
8 Book of Kings, p. 15.
9 Book of Kings, p. 25.
10 Book of Kings, p. 24.
11 A. UphamPope, An Introduction to Persian Art since the Seventh Century A.D.
(London 1930), p. 109.
12 Anthony Welch, “ Painting and Patronage under Shah ‘Abbas I”, in Iranian
Studies, vol. vu (1974): Studies on Isfahan Part II, p. 458.
13 Calligraphers and Painters, A Treatise by Qâdï Ahmad, son of Mïr-Munshï
(circa A.H. 1015/A.D. 1606), translated by V. Minorsky (Washington
1959)) P- 192. The translator notes that subsequent copyists o f this manu­
script, considering this action by the Shah unbelievable, changed the words
to “ involuntarily expressed a thousand approvals and praises”.
14 Welch, “ ‘Abbas I”, p. 484.
15 Welch, “ ‘Abbas I”, p. 481.
16 Anthony Welch, Artists for the Shah (New Haven 1976), pp. 186—7.
17 Welch, “ ‘Abbas I”, p. 48$.
18 Welch, “ ‘Abbas I”, p. 486.
19 Welch, “ ‘Abbas I”, p. 487.
20 Welch, ‘“Abbas I”, pp. 490—1.
21 Binypn et al., p. 161.
22 Welch, Arts, p. 21.
23 Richard Ettinghausen, “ Stylistic Tendencies at the Time o f Shah ‘Abbas”,
in Iranian Studies, vn (1974): Studies on Isfahan Part II, p. 610.
24 Ettinghausen, pp. 600—1.
25 Ettinghausen, pp. 602—3.
26 Ettinghausen, p. 602.
27 Arthur Upham Pope (ed.), A Survey ofPersian Art, 6 vols. (Oxford 1938-58;
repr. 1964-8), vol. iv, p. 1647.
28 Nisba : that part o f a Muslim name which indicates a person’s place o f birth.
29 Pope, Survey, vol. vr, p. 2296.
30 Ibid.
31 Pope, Survey, vol. vi, p. 2297. Note 1 on this page gives a complete list
of the animals, birds and fish which have been identified in the Milan
carpet.
32 Pope, Survey, vol. vi, p. 2298.
33 Pope, Survey, vol. vi, p. 2433.
34 Pope, Survey, vol. vi, pp. 2434-5. The carpets are now housed in the
Residenz Museum at Munich.
35 R. M. Savory, “ Safavid Persia”, in Cambridge History of Islam, 2 vols.
(Cambridge 1970), vol. 1, p. 421.
36 Quoted in Pope, Survey, vol. vi, p. 2431.
37 Pope, Survey, vol. vi, p. 2432.
38 Pope, Introduction, p. 165. Preceding quotation is also from this source.
39 Pope, Introduction, p. 160.
40 Pope, Introduction, pp. 160-1.
41 Pope, Introduction, p. 161.
42 Pope, Introduction, pp. 93—4.
43 Ibid.
44 Pope, Survey, vol. vi, p. 1647.
N o tes to pp. 145—62 261
45 Margaret Medley, “ Islam, Chinese Porcelain and Ardabïl”, in Iran, xm
(i 9 7 5 ), P- 36.
46 Pope, Introduction, p. 95.
47 SeeJ. A. Pope, Chinese Porcelainsfrom the Ardahil Shrine (Washington, D.C.,
1956).
48 Pope, Survey, vol. iv, p. 1649.
49 Pope, Survey, vol. iv, p. 1650.
50 Pope, Survey, vol. iv, pp. 1650—r.
51 Arthur Lane, Later Islamic Pottery, 2nd edn (London 1971), pp. 97-8.
52 Pope, Survey, vol. iv, pp. 1651—5.
53 Pope, Survey, vol. iv, pp. 1659—63.
54 Farajollah Bazl, in Pope, Survey* vol. iv, pp. 1705—6.
55 A. S. Melikian-Shirvani, “ Safavid Metalwork: A Study in Continuity”,
in Iranian Studies, vn (1974): Studies on Isfahan Part II, p. 543.
56 Shirvani, pp. 543—4.
57 Shirvani, p. 544.
58 Robert Hillenbrand, “ Art in the Persian Gulf”, in The Persian Gulf States*
ed. A. Cottrell et al. (Baltimore 1980) (at press).
59 Le., the Prophet Muhammad, his daughter Fatima, and the Twelve Imams
o f the Ithnâ ‘Asharï ShTïs.
60 Shirvani, p. 558.
61 Shirvani, p. 560.
62 Quoted in Pope, Survey, vol. Vi, p. 2574.
63 H. Russell Robinson, Oriental Armour (New York 1967), p. 38.
64 Russell Robinson, Oriental Armour, p. 46.

7 “Isfahan is half the world”


1 Laurence Lockhart, Famous Cities of Iran (Brentford 1939), p. 14.
2 The Travels of Ibn Battuta, vol. 11, ed. Sir Hamilton Gibb, Hakluyt Society,
2nd series, no. cxvir (Cambridge 1962), p. 295.
3 Wilfrid Blunt and Wim Swaan, Isfahan: Pearl of Persia (London and
Toronto 1966), p. 13.
4 A. Upham Pope (ed.), A Survey of Persian Art, 6 vols. (Oxford 1938-58;
repr. 1964—8), vol. in, p. 1180.
5 Ibid.
6 Shah ‘Abbas* vol. 11, p. 90.
7 Donald Wilber, “ Aspects o f the Safavid Ensemble at Isfahan”, in Iranian
Studies, vn (1974): Studies on Isfahan Part II, p. 408.
8 Sir Roger Stevens, The Land of the Great Sophy (London 1962), p. 172.
9 Thomas Herbert, A Relation of Some Yeares Travaile into Afrique, Asia, Indies
(London 1634), p. 86.
io Shah 'Abbas, vol. 11, p. 1037.
ir Bagher Shirazi, “ Isfahan the old; Isfahan the new ”, in Iranian Studies, vn
(1974): Studies on Isfahan Part II, p. 588.
12 Anthony Welch, Shah ‘Abbas and the Arts of Isfahan (The Asia Society Inc.
1973). P- 18.
13 Stevens, p. 183.
2Ö2 N otes to p p . 163—78
14 Pope, Survey, vol,.in, p. 1185.
15 Pope, Survey, vol. hi, p. 1186.
16 Quoted in Wilber, p. 407.
17 Wilber, p. 407.
18 Robert Byron, The Road to Oxiana (London 1950), pp. 177—8.
19 Blunt and Swaan, p. 71.
20 Byron, p. 135.
21 The above description o f the bazaar is based on ‘Ali Bakhtiar’s excellent
article, “ The Royal Bazaar o f Isfahan ”, in Iranian Studies, vn (1974) : Studies
on Isfahan Part I, pp. 320—47.
22 Quoted in Wilfred Blunt, Pietro's Pilgrimage (London 1953), p. 127.
23 Stevens, p. 184.
24 George N. Curzon, Persia and the Persian Question, 2 vols. (1892; repr.
London 1966), vol. 11, p. 34.
25 John Fryer, A New Account of East India and Persia, vol. in, Hakluyt Society
2nd series, no. xxxix (London 1915), p. 16. Fryer is referring to the houses
o f the nobility.
26 Wilber, p. 409.
27 Sir John Chardin, Voyages du Chevalier Chardin en Perse, et autres lieux de
l'Orient, ed. L. Langlès, 10 vols. (Paris 1811), vol. vm, p. 43, quoted in
Curzon, vol. il, p. 37.
28 Curzon, vol. 11, p. 38.
29 Curzon, vol. 11, pp. 38-9.
30 Quoted in Curzon, vol. 11, p. 39.
31 Curzon, vol. 11, p. 45.
32 Blunt and Swaan, p. 147.
33 The name means “ a thousand jartb”. A jartb equals 10,000 square metres,
but the name should not be taken as indicating the size o f the gardens in
any literal sense, since the word hazär, “ one thousand”, is used vaguely
in Persian to denote any large number.
34 Curzon, vol. n, p. 47.
3 5 Jean Baptiste Tavernier, Les six voyages deJean Baptiste Tavernier en Turquie,
en Perse et aux Indes, 2 vols. (Paris 1677), vol. 1, p. 410.
36 Herbert, p. 87.
37 Tavernier, p. 418.
3 8 The termgabr (anglicised as “ guebre ”) is a pejorative term used by Muslims
to denote adherents o f the pre-Islamic religion o f Iran, Zoroastrianism.
39 Herbert, p. 37.
40 Voluntary self-immolation of a Hindu widow.
41 Stevens, p. 174.
42 Curzon, vol. n, p. 26, n. 1.
43 Quoted by Sir Roger Stevens, “ European Visitors to the Safavid Court”,
in Iranian Studies, vn (1974): Studies on Isfahan Part II, p. 429.

8 Social and economic structure


1 History of Persia, 2 vols. (London 1815), vol. n, p. 482,
2 Malcolm, vol. 11, p. 491.
Notes to pp. 179-94 263

3 Jean de Thévenot, Travels of M. de Thévenot into the Levant, newly done


out of the French [by A. Lovell], part 11: Persia (London 1687), p. 99.
4 Malcolm, vol. n, pp. 434—5.
5 Jean Baptiste Tavernier, Les six voyages deJean Baptiste Tavernier en Turquie,
en Perse et aux Indes, 2 vols. (Paris 1677), vol. 1, pp. 530-1.
6 Malcolm, vol. 11, pp. 456-^7.
7 Malcolm, vol. 11, p. 456.
8 Tavernier, vol. n, p. 613.
9 See Adam Olearius, Voyages très-curieux et très-renommez faits en Muscovie,
Tartarie et Perse, etc., traduits de Voriginal et augmentez par le sr. de Wicquefort,
2 vols, in 1 (Amsterdam 1727), vol. 1, p. 684.
10 Sir E. Denison Ross (ed.), Sir Anthony Sherley and his Persian Adventure
(London 1933), pp. 219-20.
11 Tavernier, vol. 1, pp. 98-9.
12 For a description o f this office, see Tadhkirat al-Mulük, translated and
explained by V. Minor sky (London 1943), p- 58 ; hereinafter referred to as
TM.
13 Tavernier, vol. 1, pp. 554-8.
14 Amin Banani, “ The Social and Economic Structure o f the Persian Empire
in its Heyday ”, a paper submitted to the Harvard Colloquium on Tradition
and Change in the Middle East, December 1967, p. 18.
15 Shah 'Abbas, vol. 11, p. 955.
16 Banani, p. 19.
17 TM, p. 27.
18 A. K. S. Lambton, Landlord and Peasant in Persia (Oxford 1953), p.
106.
19 Lambton, pp. 127—8.
20 John Emerson, “ Ex Occidente Lux: Some European Sources on the
Economic Structure o f Persia between about 1630 and 1690”, unpublished
University o f Cambridge Ph.D. thesis (1969), p. 244. This dissertation was
made available to me by the kindness o f Dr Emerson.
21 Emerson, p. 245.
22 Thévenot, p. 100.
23 Banani, p. 22.
24 TM, p. 30.
25 TM, p. 29.
26 TM, p. 30.
27 TM, p. 21. For more details on the jïra, see TM, 153.
28 TM, p. 21 (both of above quotations).
29 Sir Anthony Sherley, p. 209.
30 Emerson, pp. 224—5.
31 Tavernier, vol. 1, p. 107.
32 Emerson, p. 222.
33 Emerson, pp. 214—15.
34 Emerson, p. 215.
35 Emerson, p. 218.
36 Emerson, pp. 220-1.
37 George N. Curzon, Persia and the Persian Question, 2 vols. (1892; repr.
London 1966), vol. 11, p. 398.
264 N otes to p p . 197—207
38 Niels Steensgaard, The Asian Trade Revolution of the Seventeenth Century
(Chicago 1973 ), P- 3 7 7 *
39 Steensgaard, p. 381.
40 Tavernier, vol. 11, p. 604.
41 Thévenot, vol. 11, p. n o .
42 The enforced settlement o f some 13,000 Armenian families in the silk­
growing Caspian provinces o f Gïlân and Mâzandarân ended in disaster,
since the damp climate of those provinces caused the death o f many of the
Armenians.
43 R. W. Ferrier, “ The Armenians and the East India Company in Persia in
the Seventeenth and Early Eighteenth Century”, in Economic History
Review, 2nd series, xxvi (1973), p. 40.
44 Steensgaard, pp. 380-1.
45 Steensgaard, pp. 381-5.
46 Ferrier, p. 44.
47 Ferrier, p. 47.
48 Quoted by Steensgaard, p. 402.
49 Quoted by Steensgaard, p. 407.
50 Quoted by Ferrier, p. 50.
51 Quoted by Ferrier, p. 56.
52 Ferrier, p. 62.
53 TM, p. 19.
54 Banani, pp. 21—2.
55 Ferrier, p. 56.
56 Ferrier, p. 55.
57 Ferrier, p. 39.
58 Ferrier, p. 40.
59 Tavernier, vol. n, p. 611.

9 Intellectual life under the Safavids


1 E. G. Browne, A Literary History of Persia, 4 vols. (Cambridge 1925—8),
vol. iv, pp. 24—9. Some scholars apply the term sabk-i hindï to the whole
corpus o f Indo-Persian poetry. For an excellent summary o f the conflicting
views on the subject, see Aziz Ahmad, “ The formation o f Sabk-i Hindi”,
in C. E. Bosworth (ed.), Iran and Islam (Edinburgh 1971), pp. 1—9.
2 Jan Rypka et al., History of Iranian Literature, ed. Karl Jahn (Dordrecht 1968),
p. 292.
3 Quoted in Aziz Ahmad, “ Safawid Poets and India”, in Iran, xiv (1976),
p. 117.
4 Ehsan Yar-Shater, “ Safavid Literature: Progress or Decline”, in Iranian
Studies, vn (1974): Studies on Isfahan Part II, pp. 223-5.
5 In Iranian Studies, vn (1974), pp. 217-70).
6 Yar-Shater, p. 220.
7 Quoted in Yar-Shater, p. 260.
8 Ahmad, p. 119.
9 A poem consisting of stanzas each containing seven lines.
10 Shah 'Abbas, vol. 1, p. 275.
N otes to p p . 207—19 2 6 5

ri Yar-Shater, p, 250.
12 Ahmad, p. 120.
13 Ahmad, pp. r2i; 124.
14 All quotations from Yar-Shater, pp. 221-5.
15 Yar-Shater, p. 222.
16 Yar-Shater, p. 224.
17 Yar-Shater, p. 220.
18 Yar-Shater, p. 225.
19 Yar-Shater, pp. 225-6.
20 Yar-Shater, p. 228.
21 Yar-Shater, p. 237.
22 Yar-Shater, pp. 240—1.
23 Browne, vol. iv, p. 251.
24 Browne, vol. iv, p. 165.
25 Yar-Shater, p. 240.
26 Browne, vol. iv, p. 252.
27 Browne, vol. iv, p. 251.
28 Browne, vol. iv, p. 229.
29 Quoted in Browne, vol. iv, p. 242.
30 Yar-Shater, p. 244.
31 Yar-Shater, pp. 244-5.
32 H. A. R. Gibb, “ Ta’rïkh”, reprinted in Studies in the Civilization of Islam
(Boston 1962), p. 134.
33 Browne, vol. iv, p. 107.
34 Chicago 1974, vol. m, p. 42.
35 “ Persian Biographical Literature”, in Historians of the Middle East, eds.
B. Lewis and P. M. Holt (Oxford 1962), p. 147-8.
36 “ The Historiography o f Ottoman—Safavid Relations in the 16th and 17th
Centuries”, in Historians of the Middle East, eds. Lewis and Holt, p. 200,
n. 8).
37 See, for example, T. J. de Boer, The History of Philosophy in Islam (1903;
repr. N ew York, 1967).
38 Quoted in Browne, vol. iv, p. 425.
39 Seyyed Hossein Nasr, Three Muslim Sages (Cambridge, Mass., 1964), pp.
55-6.
40 Nasr, Sages, pp. 58-9.
41 Nasr, Sages, p. 64.
42 Particularly A. von Kremer; see Nasr, Sages, p. 154, n. 44.
43 Nasr, Sages, p. 80.
44 Browne, vol. iv, p. 429.
45 Seyyed Hossein Nasr, “ Religion in Safavid Persia”, in Iranian Studies, vn
(1974): Studies on Isfahan Part I, p. 278.
46 Seyyed Hossein Nasr, “ Sadr al-Din Shirazi, his Life, Doctrines and
Significance”, in Indo-Iranica, xiv (1961), p. 8.
47 Nasr, “ Sadr”, p. 6.
48 Nasr, “ Sadr”, p. 9.
49 Nasr, “ Sadr”, p. 9.
50 Nasr, “ Sadr”, p. 10.
51 Nasr, “ Sadr”, p. 14. For fuller details o f Mulla Sadrä’s doctrines, the reader
2 6 6 N otes to p p . 220—38
is referred to the works o f Seyyed Hossein Nasr and Henri
Corbin.
52 Nasr, “ Sadr”, pp. 15—16.
53 See Cyril Elgood, “ Persian Science”, in Legacy of Persia, ed. A. J. Arberry
(Oxford 1953 ), P- 293.
54 Elgood, “ Science”, p. 300.
55 Max Meyerhof, “ Science and Medicine”, in The Legacy of Islam, eds.
T. W. Arnold and Alfred Guillaume (London, Toronto and New York
1931), p. 325.
56 Meyerhof, p. 323.
57 Meyerhof, pp. 329-30.
58 Cyril Elgood, Safavid Medical Practice (London 1970)» P- 18..
59 Jean de Thévenot, Travels of M. de Thévenot into the Levant, newly done
out o f the French [by A. Lovell], part 11: Persia (London 1687), p. 88.
60 Elgood, Medical Practice, p. 154.
61 Elgood, “ Science”, p. 317.
62 Elgood, Medical Practice, p. 30.
63 Elgood, Medical Practice, p. 285.
64 Shah ‘Abbas, vol. 11, p. 1038.
65 Thévenot, p. 105.
66 O. Wright, “ Music” in The Legacy of Islam, new edn, eds. Joseph Schacht
with C. E. Bosworth (Oxford 1974), p. 489.

10 Decline and Fall of the Safavids


1 See E. G. Browne, A Literary History of Persia, 4 vols. (Cambridge 1 9 2 5 —8),
vol. IV, p p . i n - 1 2 .
2 A Chronicle of the Carmelites in Persia, 2 vols. (London 1939), vol. 1,
pp. 350-1.
3 Sir John Malcolm, History of Persia, 2 vols. (London 1815), vol. 1, p. 382.
4 Carmelites, vol. 1, p. 405, quoting a contemporary description by Père
Sanson.
5 Mir Muhammad Baqir Dâmâd, d. 1631/2. Eminent theologian and
philosopher.
6 Shaykh Baha al-DTn ‘ÄmilT, shaykh al-isläm o f Isfahan, d. 1622. Author o f
the Jämi‘-i eAbbasT, a popular manual o f SKT! law (see Browne, vol. iv,
p. 407).
7 Malcolm, vol. 1, pp. 371—2.
8 “ Tradition ” is used here in the technical sense o f hadtth, a saying attributed
to the Prophet or one o f the Imams and authenticated by a chain o f reliable
transmitters.
9 Browne, iv, p. 368.
10 R. M. Savory, “ The CMice o f Khalifat al-Khulafa under the Safawids”, in
Journal of the American Oriental Society, lxxxv (1965), p. 502.
11 Naçr Allah FalsafT, Zindigânï-yi Shäh 1Abbäs-i avval, vol. i (Tehran 1955),
p. 183.
12 FalsafT, p. 186.
13 Browne, vol. iv, p. 404.
N otes to p p . 238-54. 2 6 7

14 Zikr-i khafi: “ the $ikr which is uttered silently in the heart”. Zikr-i ja lï:
“ the zikr which is uttered audibly”.
15 Browne, vol. iv, p. 369.
16 Amin Banani, “ The Social and Economic Structure o f the Safavid Empire
in its Heyday ”, a paper submitted to the Harvard Colloquium on Tradition
and Change in the Middle East, December 1967, p. 6.
17 Sir John Chardin, Voyages du Chevalier Chardin en Perse, et autres lieux de
l’Orient, 10 vols. (Amsterdam 1711), vol. vi, p. 26 (my translation).
18 Chardin, vol. vi, p. 30 (my translation).
19 Carmelites, vol. 1, p. 421.
20 Dïvânbegï: in later Safavid times, the highest legal authority in the state.
His court was the highest court o f appeal.
21 Laurence Lockhart, The Fall of the Safavi Dynasty and the Afghan Occupation
of Persia (Cambridge 1938), p. 99, quoting the contemporary Safavid
historian, Muhammad Muhsin.
22 Lockhart, p. 104.
23 Lockhart, p. 107.
24 Lockhart, p. 108.
25 Lockhart, p. h i . The account of the Afghan invasion and occupation
which follows is based in the main on Lockhart.
26 Mullâbâshï: during the reign of Shah Sultan Husayn, we find an official
by this title as head of the religious classes. His powers clearly exceeded those
of the sadr.
27 Lockhart, p. 125.
28 I am indebted to my friend, Dr E. Llewellyn-Thomas, for this diagnosis.
29 For the text o f this Treaty, see J. C. Hurewitz, Diplomacy in the Near and
Middle East, 2 vols. (Princeton 1956), vol. 1, pp. 42-5.
30 Lt.-Col. P. M. Sykes, A History of Persia, 2 vols. (London 1915)» vol. 11,
P- 3 3 0 .
31 For full details o f the Safavid pretenders who appeared after the deposition
o f Shah Sultan Husayn, seej. R. Perry, “ The Last Safavids (1772-1773)”,
in Iran, ix (1971), pp. 59-69.
32 Perry, p. 68.
In d ex

'Abbas (brother of Shäh Sultän Husayn), 241, Ahmad b. Uvays, 12


247, 249 Ahmadnagar, 204
‘Abbäs I, Shäh, ro, 14-15, 45, 5T 56, 58-9. Ahmed III, Sultän, 248, 251
65-6, 70-1, 74-85, 88-97, 100-1, 103, aïna-kârï, “mirror work”, 166-7
107-8, 113-16, 119-20, 125, 131, 133» Akbar (Mogul emperor), 205
135-6, 139- 4 *» 145-6, 148, 150, 151» Akhesqa, 88
153-6, 162, 165-7, 169, 174-6» 179» 183, ‘Alamshäh Begum, 18, 20
185, 187-91, 195-9, 204, 207, 213, 217, Alans, 18
224, 226, 228, 229, 231, 233, 236, 237-9, Albistan, 45
243, 251 Albuquerque, Afonso de, 106, 118, 194
‘Abbäs II, Shäh, 80, 93, 119-20, 156, 166, Alburz, 100
171, 175, 188, 197, 211, 228, 231, 232, 234, Aleppo, 90, 113, 122, 201, 216
243, 251 ‘AIT (b. Abü Tälib), 3, 19, 24, 27-8, 151,
‘Abbäs III,,Shah, 253 206-7, 239
‘Abd Allah Khän, 75, 83 ‘AIT, Jamäl al-Dïn, 8, 9
‘Abd Alläh Khän Ustäjlü, m-12 ‘AIT, Kär Kiyä MTrzä, 21—2, 25
‘Abd al-‘AzTz (Afghän chief), 245 ‘AIT, Khväja, 13-15
‘Abd al-Hasan, Mïrzâ, 253 ‘AIT Mardän Khän, 249
abdäl, 5 4AIT, MTrzä, 133
Abdälls, 245 ‘AITPasha, 86
Abü Bakr, 27 ‘ÄlT Qäpü, 96, 162, 165-7
Abü HanTfa, 89 ‘AIT Qulï Beg, no
Abu Sa‘Id, 6 ‘AIT Qulï Khän Shämlü, 71, 74, 77
Abü Sa‘Id (Mongol Tl-khän), 9 ‘AITal-Rizä, 83, 131, 243
Abü Tälib KalTm, 209 ‘AIT Rizä ‘AbbäsT, 131, 163
Abü Tälib MIrzä, 70 ‘AIT, Sayyid, 137
Abu’l-Qäsim, 162 ‘AIT, Sultän, 20-1
Achaemenids, 104 AllähverdT Khän, 81-2, 87-8, 92, 219, 229
Aden, 194 AllähverdT Khän bridge, 96, 156, 170-1
‘Ädil Giräy Khän, 72 Alqäs MTrzä, 59, 61-3
Adrianople, 202 Alvand (Äq Quyünlü), 25-6, 29
Afghäns, 66, 100, 124, 126-q, 228, 243-6, Amän Alläh, 249
248—52 Amasya, 42, 63, 64, 67, 87, 88
Afghänistän, 155, 209 Amïr Khusraw, 205
Afshärs, 69, 184 ÄmTr Najm, 37
Afzal, Mir, 135 amïr al-umarä, 34, 50—1, 56, 58, 91, 92
Agra, 45 'ämma, “forming part o f ‘state’, as opposed
ahl-i ikhti$äs, “the Safavid Politburo”, 38, 41, to ‘crown’, administration”, 184
21-2, 24-5 Anatolia, 1, 10, 16, 20, 22, 23, 31, 39, 40, 62,
Ahmad (Äq Quyünlü), 22 68, 87, 196, 202
Ahmad I, Sultän, 40, 87, 88 Andikhüd, 15
Ahmad Içfahânï, Amïr Yär, 36, 37 Andrade, Ruy Freyre de, 116-17
Ahmad Pasha, 252, 253 Angelus, Fr, 222
Ahmad, Qutb al-DTn Abu’l-BäqT, 4, 5 Antidotary, 222

268
Index 269

Anvan, 214 Baffin, William, 117


Äq Quyünlû, 17-22, 25-6, 29, 35, 37, 44» Baghdad, 23, 35, 37, 55, 62-3, 85, 87-9, 96,
105, 235 105, 120, 195, 224, 228
Arabs, 2, 32, 104, 105, 125-6, 158, 211, 220, Bahär, 205, 208-9
247 Bahram MIrzä, 59, 64
Arabia, 100, 194, 200 Bahrein, 106, 107, 115, 116, 126, 195, 245
‘Arabistan, 88 Baku, 26, 126, 252
‘Arabshâh, Mawlânâ Imam al-Rabbânï Balkans, 105
Khvâja Kamâl al-Dïn, 5 Balkh, 3, 14-15, 36, 45
Aramon et de Vallabrèques, Baron et Baluchis, 106, 125, 241, 244
Seigneur d’, 108 Bandar ‘Abbâs, 115, 119, 124-5, 126,
Aras (river), 87, 174 199-200, 241
Archangel, 109, n i Banians, 175
Ardabïl, 1, 4, 10-18, 20-2, 25, 39, 48, 52, Bantam, 200
101, 137» 146 Ba$ra, 90, 119
Ardabïlïs, 8 Batavia, 199-200
Aristotle, 216, 217 Bayats, 69
arkân-i dawiat, “principal officers of state”, Bâyazîd (son of Sultan Süleymän), 67
177 Bâyazîd I, Sultan, 13
Armenia, 244, 245 Bâyazîd II, Sultan, 36, 40
Armenians, 60, 67, 78, 81, 174-5, 184, 187-8, Bâyburtlu, 25
197-201, 251 Bâysunqur, 128
Arran, 2, 4, 25 Bektâshîs, 23, 39
Aryans, 36 Bell, John, 246
Arzinjân, 25, 26, 39, 41 bid'a, “innovation” (in terms of the religious
Asad Allah Isfahan!, 153 law of Islam), 238
Asfir, 219 Bihzäd, 128-9, 137
Ashraf (Afghan chief), 250, 252— 3 Bïjâpür, 204
Ashraf, 96 al-Bïrünî, 220, 224
Ashraf, Malik, 11—12 Black Sheep Turcomans, see Qarâ Quyünlü
Asia Minor, 8, 17, 25, 40, 104-5 Bolshevik movement, 22
a$najy “guilds”, 185, 189 Boris Godunov, Tsar, 109
Astaräbäd, 51, 53, 141 Britain, 126
Astrakhan, in , 196, 248, 250 Browne, E. G., 203-5, 211, 214, 217, 222,
atâbeg, “guardian”, 51 238
Augustine, St, 104 Bukhara, 29, 36, hi
Augustinians, 100, 107, 115, 120, 176 bunicha (tax on guilds), 189
Austria, 251 buyûtât-i khâ$sa-yi sharïfa, “royal
'avämil-i panjgäna, ‘“ the five elements’ in a workshops”, 188
crop-sharing agreement”, 187 Buzghüsh, Shaykh Najïb al-Dm, 5
Averroes, see Ibn Rushd Byzantines, 139
Avicenna, see Ibn Sïnâ
Avramov, Semeon, 248 Cabot, Sebastian, in
Awjän, 12 Cadiz, 115
awqâf, see vaqf Calicut, 194
Awrangzib (Mogul emperor), 232, 246 Calo Johannes, 18
awtâd, 5 Canseville, de, 121
ayvän, “portal”, 162-3, 166 Cape of Good Hope, 105, in , 119, 193, 194
Âgarbâyjân, I, 2, 4, 11-13, 17, 22, 25-6, 35, Capuchins, 100, 120-1, 176
41, 52, 58, 60-1, 72, 77, 85, 88, 100, 105, caravanserais, 165, 176, 190^1
150, 174, 216, 220, 228, 232 Carmelites, 100, 120, 176
Ägarl, 2, 23, 206, 213 Cartwright, John, 113
Caspian Sea, 96, h i , 196, 202
Bâb al-Abväb, see Darband Caucasus, 1, 12, 22, 64-6, 68, 184
Bäbur, Zahîr al-Dïn, 36, 37, 45, 66, 205 Ceylon, 119, 194
Babylon, Bishop of, 121-2 Chahär Bägh, 96, 156, 166, 168-70, 172,
Babylonians, 216 174
Bädinjln Sultan Rümlü, 52 Chäldirän, 41-7, 58, 65, 78, 106, 129
Badr al-DIn, 9 Chancellor, Richard, in
270 Index
Chardin, Sir John, 33, 54, 103, 119, 151. i 63* Dïv Sultän Rümlü, 51-3, 58
169, 176, 187-8, 197, 200, 226, 239 dtvän-i *adälat, “judicial tribunal”, 231
Charles I, King of England, 118 dïvânbegï, 244
Charles I, King of Spain, 108 Diyäla (river), 90
Charles V, Emperor, see Charles I, King of Diyär Bakr, 17, 25, 35, 41, 45*90
Spain Diyär Rabl*a, 62
Châteauneuf, de, 120 Dominicans, 120, 176
Châyân Sultan, 50-1 Dürmïsh Khän Shämlü, 41, 48, 51
Chihil Sutün, 141, 156, 166-8, 232 Durri Efendi, 247, 248
China, 95, 100, 104, 105, in , 139, i 44_ 5» Dutch, 100, 119-20, 122, 124, 158, 195-6»
194, 200 198, 199-200
Chingiz Khan, 12, 60, 105, 205 Dutch East India Company, 113, 118, 125,
Christianity, 104, 107, no, 115, 174 176, 199
Christians, 100-1, 104, ni-12, 117, 122, 176,
229, 251 East Indies, 118-19, 198
Chronicle of the Carmelites in Persia, A, 59, 229 Egypt, 10, 43, 62, 105
Chübän, Amïr, 10 Egyptians, 216
Chubanids, 11 Elizabeth I, Queen of England, in
Chüha Sultan Takkalü, 52—5, 61 Encyclopaedia of Islam, 214
chüpân-begï (tax on sheep and goats), 85 England, 44, 100, 109-10, 175
Circassia, 17, 18 English, 100, no-11, 113-14, 116-20, 122,
Circassians, 18, 67, 69, 78, 81, 95, 184 124-6, 158, 195-201, 229
Clement VIII, Pope, 107 English East India Company, no, 113—19,
Compagnie Française des Indes, see French 124-6, 147, 176, 195, 197-201
East India Company Erivän, 52, 63, 86, 88, 121-2, 191
Connock, Edward, 113 Erzerüm, 63, 87
Constantinople, 1, 44, 193 Euphrates, 44
Cordoba, 216 Europe, 43, 44, 95, 100-1, 104, 106, no, 115,
Coromandel, 200 140-1, 144, 175-6, 187, 194, 198, 222
Cossacks, 100 Europeans, 100, 109, 145, 163, 175, 179» 191»
Costa, Francisco da, 107 226
Cotton, Sir Dodmore, 118
Crimea, 1 Fabre, Jean-Baptiste, 121—2
Crimean Tatars, 72, 88, 112 Faghânï, 209, 211
Crowther, John, 113 Fahmï (pen-name of Sultan Muhammad
Crusaders, 105 Shäh), 70, 206
Curzon, G. N., 166, 171, 176 Fallüja, 90
Cyprus, 44 FalsafT, Nasr Alläh, 45
Farahäbäd, 96, 100, 118
dada, 39 farmân, “imperial decree’*, 113— 14, 195
Dada Beg Tälish, 38 fart, 2
Dâghistân, 18, 147, 251 Farrukhyasär, 18, 25
Dâmâd Ibrâhîm, 251 Färs, 11, 20, 25, 63, 81-2, 85, 219, 228-9, 247
Damascus, 105 Fath ‘Alï Khän Daghistäm, 125, 247
Där-Büm, 2 Fath ‘All Khän Qäjär, 252-3
Darband, 10, 250 Fath ‘AH Shäh Qäjär, 208
därügha, “governor”, 244 Fätima (daughter of the Prophet), 185
darvish, 35 Fätima (daughter of the 7th ShTTImam), 243
Dasht-i Lüt, 246, 248 Fätima, Bïbï, 6
dalva, “propaganda”, 2, 20, 234 fatvâ, “legal opinion”, 244
dawlat, 177 FayzT, 211
DawlatT, 5 Ferreira, Miguel, 106
Delhi, 45, 204-5 Firdawsï, 130
Dengïz Beg Rümlü, 115 Fîrüzshâh, 2, 4
Despina Khätün, 18 Fitch, Ralph, 194
Dias, Bartolomeu, 105 France, 120, 122, 124—5
dihqän, “small landowner”, 4 Franciscans, 120
Dïn Muhammad Khän, 84 Franks, 113
Index 271

French, 108, 195, 200 Hasan MTrza (son of Shäh ‘Abbäs I), 94-5
French East India Company, 120, 126, 200 Hasan Pasha, 42
Fryer, John, 119, 166, 170, 191, 200 Hasht Bihisht, 169-70
futuvva, 182, 185 Hâtifî, 203
aUHâwï (Liber Continens), 220
Gabristän, 175 Haydar MTrza (son of Tahmäsp I), 68-9
Gama, Vasco da,. 106 Haydar, Sulçân, 18-20, 23, 44, 65, 67
Ganja, 77 HayratT, MTrza, 206
Gardane, Chevalier Ange de, 124. Hazarjanb, 156, 172-4
Genoese, 105, 108, in HazTn, 208
Georgia, 17, 52, 64-5, 72, 77, 88, 155, 245 Henry, King of France, 109
Georgians, 5, 64-9, 78, 81, 88, 92, 170, 184, Henry the Navigator, Prince, 106
243, 246 Herbert, Sir Thomas, 118, 174—5
Gerard of Cremona, 221 HilälT, 203
Germany, 140 Hilla, 90
GhadTr Khumm, 27 Hindus, 175— 6, 216
ghazal, “lyric”, 214 Hindustan, 133
Ghäzän Khan, 10 Hisär-i Shädmän, 36
Ghilzäys, 245 History of Ottoman Poetry, 211
Ghujduvän, 37, 38 History of Shäh ‘Abbas the Great, see Târïkh-i
ghulämän-i khä$$a-yi sharïfa, “slaves of the ‘Äläm-ärä-yi ‘Abbäst
royal household”, 65, 78—82, 87—8, 91—2, Holland, 125, 175
170, 184, 229, 249 Holy Land, the, 105
ghuläms, see ghulamân-i khassa-yi sharïfa Hülegü (Ilkhän), 220
GhurürT, 131 Humäyün (Mogul Emperor), 66-7
Gibson, William, 199 Hurmüz, 10, 106-^7, 112-19, *25, 194-6, 199,
Gflän, i, 4, 6, 11, 21, 22, 25, 37, 52, 141, 196, 229
228, 248, 252 Husayn, 27
Giorgi XI, 241, 243-6 Husayn Bäyqara, Sultän, 128
Goa, 107, 113, 116 Husayn, Shäh Sultän, 122, 125, 168, 191, 198,
Golconda, 204 215, 234, 238-9, 241, 243-53
Gombroon, 148 Husayn ‘AITBeg Bayât, 109-10
Gouveia, Antonio de, 115 Husayn Beg Lala Shämlü, 32, 36-7* 42, 50
Greeks, 104, 216, 221, 224 Husayn Isfahan!, MTrzä Shäh, 38, 47, 48
Gujerat, 195, 200 Husayn Khän Shâmlü, 54— 6, 58, 61
Gulistän, 25, 44 Husayn Kiyä ChulävT, Amïr, 35
Gulnäbäd, 249 Husayn Qui! Khulafa Rümlü, 78
Gurgän, 35
Ibn ‘Arabî, 219
Habib al-Siyar, 129 Ibn Baçtûta, 154
Hafiz, 85, 151, 154, 203, 208 Ibn Bazzâz, 3
Hâfiz Ahmad Pasha, 89, 90 Ibn Khaldün, 216
Haft Aurang, 133 Ibn Rushd, 215
haft-rang, haft-rangï, “polychrome”, 148, 162 Ibn Sînâ, 217-18, 221-2
Hakim al-Dm BitlTsT, 41 Ibn al-Tirmiz, 222
hakïm-bâshï, “chief physician”, 221, 247 Ibrâhîm, Shaykh, 15-16
Hamadan, 14, 35, 55, 121, 202, 253 Ibrâhîm, Sultan, 20, 25
hammättiy “public baths”, 165 Ibrâhîm b. Adham, 3-4
Hamza Mîrzâ, 70-6 Ibrâhîm Pasha, 58
Han, Chapelle de, 183 Ilkhäns/Ilkhanids, 10-11
Hanway, Jonas, 229 Imâm Qulî Khän, 82, 115-17, 119, 229, 231
haram, 57, 64, 68, 73, 94-5, 122, 169, 175, Imäm Qulî MTrza (son of Shäh ‘Abbas I), 95
226, 228, 239, 241, 243 Imäms (Ithnä ‘Asharî), 2-3, 15, 19, 23, 28-9,
haram-khäna, 10 33. 71, 93. 101, 151, 185, 204, 206-7, 2i8,
Harât, 11, 29, 36, 48, 51, 53-4, 57, 60, 68, 71, 243
74“5, 77, 83- 4. 128, 203, 245, 247 India, 45, 66, 100, 106, 112-13, 141, 151, 167,
Härünäbäd, 89 193-4, 201, 205-6, 209, 218, 225
Hasan, Üzün, 17-21, 43-4, 105 Indian genre; Indian style, 204, 207—11
2 7 2 Index
Indian Ocean, ioö, 118-19, I25>J93>200 Jerusalem, 15
Indians, 175, 191, 200, 202 Jesuits, 120, 176, 229
Indies, the, 104, no, 194 Jews, 158, 175, 187, 197, 231, 251
Iran, Iranians, passim Jibrâ’ïl, Amïn al-Dïn, 5
Iraq, 196, 202 jihäd, “holy war”, 65
‘Iräq-i ‘Ajam, 25, 85, 87 jinn, “spirits”, “genies”, 4
‘Iriq-i ‘Arab, 62, 88 jira, “payment in kind”, “rations”, 188— 9
Isfahan, 14, 48, 54, 63, 83—5, 95^6, 100-1, Joseph, Père, 120
103, 107, 109, 113, 116, 120-1, 124-^7, 131, Julfa, 60, 100, 174
136, 139, 141, 144-5, H9, 154-5, 162-3, Julfa (suburb of Isfahän), roo, 120, 174-6, 198
165, 170, 172-3, 175-6, 179, 183, 186, 195, Junayd, Sultän, 16-17, 23, 65, 67
197-8, 201, 209, 211, 217, 231-2, 243-4,
248-53 kadkhuda, 182
Isfaranjân, 4 Kaempfer, 176
Ishaq Ardabïll, Shaykh Safi! al-Dïn kafir, “infidel”, 4
Abul-Fath, see Safi al-DTn, Shaykh Kalah Bar, 194
ishik-äqäsi, 48 kaläntar, “mayor”, 71, 122, 174-5, 182, 189
ishïk-âqâsi-bâshi, “Grand Marshal”, 92 Kalkhvurän, 4
IshräqT; Ishräqiyya, 216, 218—19 Karbalä, 89, 101
Iskandar Beg MunshT, 15, 46, 89, 185, 206-7, Karmiyän, 40
213, 215 Karpivicz, Dolmet, 112
Iskandar Pasha, 63 Käshän, 40, 63, 85, 95, 137, 139, 141, 144,
Islam, 4, 65, 105, 115, 130, 197, 217-19, 225, 206
231, 251 KasravT, Sayyid Ahmad, 2, 13
Ismä‘11 Khän, 247 Kay Khusraw, 243—4, 246
Ismä‘HMTrzä, see Isma‘ïl II, Shäh Käzimayn, 89, 101
Ismä‘Tl MTrzä (son of Shäh ‘Abbäs I), 95 Ketelaar, Joan Josua, 125— 6
Ismâ‘ïl I, Shäh, 10, 20-7, 29-42, 45-52, KhadTja Begum, 17
56— 9, 62, 65, 67, 84, 106—8, 128—
9, 137, khalifa/khalifas, 23, 27, 39
138, 206, 233, 235 KhalTfa-yi Ansär Qaräjadäghlü, 236
Ismä‘TI II, Shäh, 64, 68^70, 78, 82, 92, 235-6 khalifat al-khulaß, 16, 78, 235^7
IsmäH III, Shäh, 254 Khalil Pasha, 88
Ismä‘TlTs, 162 Khalil Sultän, 18, 44
Istakhr, 20 khamsa(h), 133
Istanbul, 42, 62, 121, 136, 196, 202, 251, 252 KhäqänT, 214
Italians, 108, 120 khâssa, “subject to ‘crown’, as opposed to
Ithnä ‘Asharï Shi‘ism, 2, 23—4, 26-30, 40, 66, ‘state’ administration”, 65, 80, 184, 226,
93, 162, 204, 234 234
ïtimàd al-dawla, “trusty support of the state” Khatä’T(pen-name of Shäh Ismä‘11 I), 23, 206
(title of the vazir), 92, 177 Khuräsän, it, 29, 35-6, 38, 46, 53, 57, 59, 68,
i'tiräf “confession” (Süfï ceremony), 237 72-7, 83-5, 94, 101, 128, 138, 150, 153.
Ivan the Terrible, Tsar, m —12 203, 228, 247, 252
‘Ivaz, 4 khutba, “formal address in a mosque”, 29,
36, 65
Jabrids, 106 Khüzistän, 63
Ja'far SâvajT, Amïr, 56 Khväju bridge, 171
JägTrlü, 13 KhvändamTr, Ghiyäth al-DTn, 129
JahängTr (Mogul emperor), 205, 207 al-Khvârazmï, 220
Jahänshäh, 17 Khvuy, 41, 63
Jala’irids, n, 13 King's Book of Kings, 129-30
Jäm, 53-4, 57, 59, 60, 138 Kirkuk, 89
James I, King of England, 110 Kirmän, 11, 25, 35, 141, 147, 187, 228, 241,
JämT, 133, 203, 211 246—8
JänTBeg Sultän, 53— 4 Köpek Sultän Ustäjlü, 51-2
Jarün, see Bandar ‘Abbäs Krusinski, Fr Tadeusz Juda, 140-1, .229, 250
Jäsk, 113-14, 195 Kubachi, 147-8
Jeghäl-oghlü Pasha, 87 Kührang (river), 96, 156
Jenkinson, Anthony, 59, 111-12 Kur (river), 17, 25
Index 273
Kurds, 37, 88, 251 Medina, 105
Kurdistan, 2, 23, 58, 61-3, 77 Mediterranean, 1, 40, 104— 6, 196
Melo, Nicolao de, 109
Lähljän, 21— 2, 25, 39 Meskhia, 88
lala, “guardian”, 39, 48, 56, 66, 68, 94 Mesopotamia, 1, 11, 101, 113
Le Havre, 124 Michel, Pierre Victor, 122, 245
Lenin, 22 mihräb, “prayer-niche”, 163, 165
Levan (Leon), 244 Mildenhall, John, 113
Levant, 105, 193, 196, 202 milk, “private estates”, 9
Levant Company, 108—10, 112, 201 Minorsky, Vladimir, 22, 31, 34, 47, 81, 188
London, 112—13, 137, 189, 199 Mir Dämäd, see Muhammad Bäqir, Mir
Louis XIV, King of France, 120, 122 Mir Vays, 243-5
Ludovic II, King of Hungary, 108 Miranda, Diego de, 107
Luristän, 77 MIrzä Khän, 71— 2
Lutf ‘All Agar Begdïlï, 208 Mithras, 104
Lutf ‘All Khän, 247 Moguls, 45, 66-7, 83, 167, 183, 192, 204-7,
210, 213, 228, 232
madrasas, “theological seminaries”, 95, 148, Mongols, 1, 9-10, 15, 23, 32, 105, 108, 140,
165-6, 176 144, 148, 192, 213, 220, 231
Madrasa-yi Mädar-i Shäh, 168 Monnox, Edward, 117
Madrid, 110 Montesquieu, 122
Mahd-i ‘Ulyâ, 70-4, 218 Morea, the, 40
MahdT, 2, 27, 33, 93, 101, 233 Moscow, 109
Mahmud (Afghan chief), 244-6, 248—50, 252 Mosnier, Père, 121
Mahmüd of Ghazna, Sultän, 208 Mosul, 89— 90
Mahmud, Jänl Beg, 12 mu'arraq, “mosaic”, 148
Mahmüd Shäh, 117 mu'ayyir-bäsht, “controller of assay”, 183
Makrän, 106, 229 Muhammad (the Prophet), 27, 185
Malabar, 194 Muhammad ‘All Beg, 183
Malacca, 119, 194 Muhammad ‘Ämill, Shaykh Bahä al-Dïn, see
Malay Archipelago; Malaya, 194 Shaykh Bahä!
Malcolm, Sir John, 33, 103, 177— 9, 182 Muhammad Bäqir MajlisI, 234, 237—8, 251
mamälik, “‘state’ provinces”, 79— 80, 184, Muhammad Bäqir, Mir, 217—18, 233
226, 234 Muhammad Bäqir MIrzä (also known as Safi
Mamlän b. Vahsüdän (Ravadid), 2 MIrzä; son of Shäh ‘Abbäs I), 94, 228
Mamlüks, 43, 105, 108 Muhammad Beg, 183, 231
Mani, Manichaeism, 104 Muhammad Beg Ustäjlü, see Châyân Sultan
Mans, Père Raphael du, 120 Muhammad Häfiz, 4
al-Mansür (‘Abbasid Caliph), 96 Muhammad, Hâjjï, Shams al-Dïn, 6, 9
Marägha, 11, 220 Muhammad Husayn Khâtünâbâdî, Mir, 251
Marand, 62 Muhammad Husayn mullabâshï, 247
Mar‘ash, 45 Muhammad Khän Qazvlnl, MIrzä, 203— 7
Marseilles, 121 Muhammad Khän Ustäjlü, 41— 2
Marv, 35-6, 84, 128 Muhammad Khudäbanda, see Muhammad
Maryam Begum, 245 Shäh, Sultän
Mashhad, 15, 75, 77, 83, 94, 96, 101, 131, Muhammad MIrzä, see Muhammad Shäh,
141, 144, 147, 243, 245 Sultän
Masjid-i Jum‘a, 162, 232 Muhammad MIrzä (son of Shäh ‘Abbäs I), 95
Masjid-i Shäh, 96, 131, 162—3, 167, 232 Muhammad Pasha, 88
Masjid-i Shaykh Lutf Alläh, 96, 131, 162—3 Muhammad Qäsim, 135
Mas‘üd-i Sa‘d-i Salman, 205 Muhammad Rizä Beg, 122, 124
Ma‘sum Beg Safavl, 68 Muhammad Shäh, Sultän, 56, 66, 70-3, 75-6,
mathnavï, “poem in rhymed couplets”, 214 83, 92, 94, 206, 236, 251
Mathnavî-yi Ma'navï, 214 Muhammad, Shaykh, 133
Maydän-i Naqsh-i Jahän, 96, 155— 6, 158-60, Muhammad Shlbänl Khän, 35— 6
162-3, 165-6, 170, 179, 186 Muhammad, Sultän* 137
Mäzandarän, 35, 71, 73, 85, 96, 190, 228, 252 Muhammad Tähir Yazdl, Mawlänä, 224
Mecca, 15, 205, 244 Muhammad Taql Majlisl, 237
274 Index
Muhammad Zamän Khän, 244 Olearius, Adam, 183, 191
Muhtasham KäshT, Mawlänä, 206-7 Öljeitu, 10
Muhyï al-DTn, 6 Oman, 118
Mu‘în Musavvir, 135 Ori, Israel, 244-5, 247
Mu‘izzî, 214 Osborne, Edward, 112
mujtahids, “eminent doctors of ShTClaw”, Ossetes, 18
93-4, 186, 217, 237-9, 241 Ottomans, passim
Mullä Sadrä ShlräzT, 206, 217— 20 Ouseley, Sir William, 172
mullâbâskï, 234, 247, 251, 253 Oxus, 19, 36, 84
munajjim, “astronomer, astrologer”, 224 özbegs, 29, 35-8, 53, 57-8, 60, 72, 75-6,
Muqän, 2, 4, 25 83-5, 109, 125, 155
Murad (Ottoman prince), 40
Muräd III, Sulçân, 64, 72 pädishäh, “king”, 20, 32
Muräd Pasha, 87 Parï Khän Khänum, 70-1, 206
Murad, Sultän (Äq Quyünlü), 23-6, 29 Paris, 121-3, 154
Muratowicz, Sefer, 139 Parthians, 104
murid, “disciple”, 4, 39, 46, 78, 235 Passarovitz, Treaty of, 251
murshid, “spiritual director”, 14, 46, 235 Persia, 32, 138-9, 145, 178-9, 191, 197, 201,
murshid-i kämil, “perfect spiritual director”, 203-6, 218, 221
3, 16, 27, 32, 39, 48, 6i, 78, 101, 234-3, Persians, passim
236 Persian Gulf, 17, 100, 106-7, 112-13, 116-19,
Murshid Qulï Khän Ustajlü, 74—5, 77, 82, 125, 155, 193-6, 199-202, 229
Pessoa, Balthasar, 107
91 Peter the Great, Tsar, 126, 244-6, 248, 250,
Müsä, Sadr al-Milla va’l-Din, see Sadr al-DTn,
Shaykh 252
Müsä al-Käzim, 3 Petit, Marie, 121— 2
Muscat, 118, 125, 247 Petrus, Khväja, 175
Muscovy Company, 1.11—12, 196 Pharmacopoea Persica, 222
Muslims, 65, 175^-6, 205, 215-16, 224 Philip III, King of Spain, 109-10, 115—16
Muçtafa I, Sultän, 88 pidar-farzandi, 25
mutavalli, “administrator of lands, etc., ptr, “spiritual director”, 235, 238
donated for religious purposes”, 185— 6 pira, 16, 39
Plato, 217
Nädir Khän Afshär, see Nädir Shäh Poland, 196
Nädir Shäh, 100, 126, 215, 252-3 Poland, King of, 109
Nä7n, 148 Pope, A. Upham, 136, 138, 147-9, 163
Najaf, 89, 101 Portugal, 44, 100, 106-7, JI5
Najafabad, 155 Portuguese, 100, 106-7, h i , 113-20, 125,
Nakhchivän, 26, 52, 63, 86, 122 158, 193-6. 229
Nä$ir al-DTn Shäh Qäjär, 166, 222 Prague, 109
NasTr al-DTn TusT, 220 Prester John, 105
Näsir-i Khusraw, 162 Pul-i ST-u-Sih, see AllähverdT Khän bridge
na$$, “designation”, 25 Pythagoras, 217
nâ-süfîgart, “conduct inappropriate to a
Süfï”, 235, 237 qabaq-andäzt, “archery contest”, 160
Nasüh Pasha, 87-8 Qahqaha, 63, 68-9, 236
Nawrüz (New Year’s Day), 159 Qäjärs, 25, 52, 100, 166, 184, 215, 252, 254
nâzir, “superintendent of the royal qalam-kär, 141
workshops”, 183 Qandahar, 45, 66-7, 83, 228, 231-2, 243-7,
Nazîrï, 209 253
Netherlands, 200 al-Qänün fi'l-Tibb (“Canon of Medicine”),
Newberie, John, 112, 195 221
Nihävand, 85 qapi-qullarï, “slaves of the Porte”, 79
Nizâm al-Dïn ‘Abd al-Bâqï, Amïr, 42 Qarä Quyünlü, 11, 13, 15, 17—19, 105, 235
NizämT, 133 Qaräbägh, 72, 74. 77. »7. Hl
North Africa, 105 Qaräjadägh, 77, 236
Norway, in Qarämän, 62
Nür ‘AITKhalTfa, 31, 40-1 Qarchaqäy Beg, 87—8, 92
Index 275
Qârç, 87 Sa'dï, isi, IS3
qa$ïda(h), “ode”, 131, 214 Sâdiqï Beg Afshâr, 131, 133
Qavâm al-Dïn Shïrâzï, Mïr, 218 çadârat (office of $adr), 234
Qayçariyya, 96, 162, 165-6, 186 $adr (head of the religious institution), 30, 33,
Qâzï Khän, 87-8 35, 42, 87, 93, 233-4
qâzîs, “religious judges”, 35 Sadr al-Dïn, Shaykh, 6, 9-13
Qazvïn, 53, 63, 67, 69-75, 84-6, 109, n i, Sadr al-Dïn Shïrâzï, see Mullâ Sadrâ Shïrâzï
155, 189, 228, 245^7, 249-SO, 252 $adr-i azam, “exalted seat of honour” (title
Qipchaq, 12 of the vazir), 92
Qisa$ al-U lama, 238 Safavid, Safavids, passim
Qishm, 116-17, 119 Safavid Order; Safaviyya, 3, 8-9, 11-12,
qizilbâsh, “Turcoman tribal aristocracy”, 15-17, 20-2, 31-2, 36, 38, 40, 48» 234
passim Safï (son of Shäh Sulçân Husayn), 250
qullar-âqâsï, “commander of the ghulâms or Safï Mïrzâ, see Sulaymän, Shah
qullar”, 92 Safï, Shah, 80, 82, 89, 175, 199, 228-9, 231
Qum, 63, 73, 153, 219, 243 Safï al-Dïn, Shaykh, 3, 5-6, 8-11, 14-15, 93
Qur’an, 4, 10, 130, 218 Safvat al-Safi, 3
qürchïs, “qizilbâsh tribal cavalry”, 92 Sâ’ib, 203, 208, 211, 213
qûrchîbâshï, “commander of the qurchis", 34, Salmân, Mïrzâ, 70-2, 74, 76
42, 56, 92, 231, 244 Sam Mïrzâ (son of Shäh Ismâ'ïl I), 48, 54, 56,
59, 63, 208
Rabâç-i Pariyän, 84 Säm Mïrzâ, see Safï, Shah
rähdärs, “road guards”, 191 samà1, “ritual dance practised by Süfïs”, 238
Rahïm Khän hakim-bashi, 247 Samarqand, 36
Rângïn, 4 Sâmarrâ, 89, 101
Ra’s al-Khayma, 116 Sanson, Nicolas, 93
Rashïd, Sailli al-Dïn, 4 santür, “psaltery”, 225
Rashïd al-Dïn, 10 Saracens, 105
Rasht, 37, 95, 141» 234, 248 Sarakhs, 75
Rayy, 61 sardâr-i lashkar, “ commander-in-chief of the
al-Râzï, 220-1 armed forces”, 92
Red Sea, 118, 194 San, 97
Rhazes, see al-Râzï Sârü Pïra Ustäjlü, 42
Richelieu, Cardinal, 120 Sârü Taqï, 228, 231
Rigordi, Père François, 120 Sasanids, Sasanians, 27, 104, 139, 179
rîsh-safid, “greybeard, tribal elder”, 51 Sâva, 141, 148
Rizâ ‘Abbâsî, 131, 133-4, 135— 6, 141 sayyid, “person claiming descent from the
Rizâ, Imam, see ‘Alï al-Rizâ Prophet”, 4, 186
Rizâ Qulî Hidâyat, 205, 208 Scandinavia, 112, 196
Romans, 104, 221 Scotland, King of, 109
Royal Bazaar, see Qayçariyya Selim, Sulçân, 36, 40-3
Royal Mint, 165 Selim II, Sultan, 64
Royal Mosque, see Masjid-i Shäh Seljuqs, 144, 148, 162, 208
Rudolf II, King of Bohemia, 109 Shähjahän (Mogul emperor), 205
Rüm, 14 Shäh Mahmüd, 129
Rumania, 202 shâhï-sevân, “those who love the Shah”, 78,
Rümï, Jaläl al-Dïn, 214 83, 236
Rümlüs, 25, 51, 69 Shâhnâma, 130, 133
Russia, 113» 126, 140, 196, 202, 252 Shahrazür, 89
Russians, 126, 147 Shährukh (Timurid), 15, 128
Rustam (Äq Quyünlü), 20-2 Shâhverdï Khän, 236
Rustam Muhammad Sa‘dlü, 248 Shakkï, 66
Rypka, Jan, 205 Shamakhï, 18
Shamkhäl, 71
Sa‘ädatabäd, 175 Shämlüs, 25, 51, 53-5, 73-5, 77
sabk-i hindi, see Indian genre Shäpür I, 104
Sabür b. Sahl, 222 SharafJahän, Mïrzâ, 206
Sabzavâr, 11 Sharür, 26, 52
276 Index
shaykh, “spiritual director”, 235 Tahmäsp MIrzä, 74
Shaykh Baha’i, 155, 204, 233 Tahmäsp I, Shäh, 10, 41, 48, 51-60, 62-9, 73,
Shaykh Hurr-i Amull, 204 76-8, 89, 91, 93-4, 107, in-12, 129, 131,
shaykh al-isläm, 234 134, 136-7, 156, 185, 204, 206-8, 233
Shaykh Lutf Allah Mosque, see Masjid-i Tahmäsp II, Shäh, 126, 249—53
Shaykh Luff Allah täj (distinctive headgear of the qizilbäsh), 20
Sherley, Sir Anthony, 43, 109—10 Tajiks, 31-3, 37-8, 67, 71-2, 74, 91-2, 133,
Sherley, Sir Robert, 43, 100, 109-10, 118 185-6
Shibll Nu‘mänl, 209—11 Takkalüs, 25, 51, 53, 55, 58, 61-2, 73'
ShTIs, 23, 27, 35, 39- 40, 54, 66 Tälib-i Ämull, 209, 211
Shïr al-Ajam, 209 Tamerlane, see Tîmür
Shiraz, 5— 6, 54, 63, 70, 113, 115, 120, 147, Tärlkh-i ‘Älatn-ärä-yi ‘Abbäsl, 14, 46, 215
154, Ï95, 219, 253 Tatars, 32
Shîrvân, 17-19, 35, 59, 62, 66, 68, 72, 85, Tavernier, Jean Baptiste, 173, 175— 6, 179,
h i , 141, 246, 251 182-3, 187, 190-1,202
ShTrvänshäh, 17—18, 25 tawba, “act of renunciation or repentance”, 6
Sigismund III Vasa, King of Poland, 129 tawliyat, “office of mutavalli”, 185— 6
Silsilat al-Nasab-i Safaviyya, 3— 4, 14 Tagkirat al-Mulûk, 188
Silva y Figueroa, Don Garcia de, 116 Tehran, 122, 222, 247, 252
Sinan Beg, 63 Tekke, 40
sipqhsälär, “ commander-in-chief of the armed Terki, 250
forces”, 92 Thévenot, Jean de, 96, 119, 179, 190-1, 197,
Sîstân, 54, 83, 252 200, 221, 224
SIvas, 41, 87 Tibb-i Shifi’t, 222
Smidt, Jan, 200 Tigris, 89-90
Spain, Spaniards, 44, 100, 107, 109, 115—16, timcha, “shopping arcade”, 165
120 Tîmür, 13-15, 45, 105, 205
Steele, Richard, 113 Timurids, 35, 128, 149-50, 235
Struys, Jean, 176 tiyûl, “land assignment”, 52, 79, 185
Süfîs, 3, 8, 14, 16-17, 20, 22-3, 31, 39-40, 46, Togan, Zeki Velidi, 2
48, 52, 78, 91, 150, 182, 204, 218, 225, Transoxania, 35, 37-9, 60-1, 84, 205, 209
23 4 -7 Trebizond, 18
süßgan, “conduct appropriate to a Süfï”, 235 tufangchi-äqäsl, “commander of the
Sufism, 24, 39, 93, 204 musketeers”, 92
Süfiyän, battle of, 87, 90 tufangchiyän, “musketeers”-, 59, 79
Süfiyän-i Rümlü, 14 Tukfa-i Sâmï, 203
sufracht, “sewer”, 50 tüpchï-bâshï, “commander-in-chief of
Suhravard, 216 artillery”, 59, 92
SuhravardI, Shihäb al-Dïn Yahyä, 216-19 tüpchiyän, “gunners”, 58, 79
Sulaymän Mirza (son of Tahmäsp I), 69 Tuqät, 31
Sulaymän, Shäh, 3, 120, 124, 191, 226, 232, Türän, 36, 60
234, 238-9, 241, 243—5, 250 Turcoman/Turcomans, passim
Süleymän, Sultän, 57, 59, 60-4, 67, 89, 107—8 Turks, 32, 36, 38, 48, 57, 64, 76, 93, 105, 108,
Sulçâniyya, 52, 61 158, 184-5, 193, 211, 225, 241, 252
Sumatra, 200 Turkey, 100, 112, 197, 209, 246, 248, 251-2
Sunnis, 28-9, 252 Turkmans (qizilbäsh tribe), 73
Surat, 200 T ûs,5 3
Survey of Persian Art, 149 Tuscany, Grand Duke of, 109
suyürghäl, “immunities”, 12-13, 186
Syria, 8, 10, 17, 20, 25, 30, 43, 62, 104, 113, ‘Ubayd Alläh Khän, 53— 4» 57, 60
196, 202, 246 Ukraine, 1, 196
Uläma, 61— 2
tabarra iyän, “members of a corps of ShTI ‘ulamä, “theologians”, 29, 30, 33, 185, 216.
militants”, 28 233» 239>244
Tabarsarän, 17—18 ulkä, “tribal district”, 50, 81
Tabriz, 1, 11-12, 21-2, 26-7, 29, 35, 42, 45, ‘Umar, 27
51-2, 54, 61-4, 74-5, 85-7, 105, 128-9, ‘Umar Khayyam, 220
138, 148, 150, 183, 202, 236 ‘Unsuri, 214
Index 2 7 7

‘urf, “customary law”, 182 White Sea, 112, 196


‘Urfî, 203, 2ii White Sheep Turcomans, see Äq Quyünlü
Ustäjlüs, 25, 39-40, 51-3, 69, 73- 5, 82
‘Uthmän, 27 Ya‘qüb, Sultän, 18-20
üymäq, “major qizilbâsh tribe”, 50 Yar-Shater, Ehsan, 205, 210-11
Yazd, 35, 95,-141, 144, 147, 228, 241, 248
vakil, “vicegerent”, 36-8, 47, 50, 56, 71, Yazdigird III, 27
74-5, 78, 82-3, 92 Yemen, 2
vakil-i nafs-i nafis-i humâyûn, 32, 34, 36, 42, yurt, “tribal pasture”, 9
47/82
vakïl-i saltana, 47, 82 Zagros mountains, 155— 6
vakil-i shah, 82 Zahid-i Gïlânï, Shaykh, 3, 6, 8, 9
Vakil Pasha, 85 Zähidiyya, 8—9
valï allah, 24 Zands, 100, 215, 254
Valladolid, no Zanjän, 216
Valle, Pietro della, 97, 100 Zarand, 147
Van (fortress), 62-3, 87-9, 108 Zarda-küh, 156
Van, Lake, 11 Zäyanda-rüd (river), 96, 100, 155-6, 170,
vaqf, “land, property held in mortmain”, 9, 172, 174, 198, 232
14-15, 30, 185-6, 234 Zayn al-‘Abidin, 71
Varâmm, 148 Zaynal Khän Shämlü, 51
Varsäqs, 25 Zeno, Caterino, 43
vazir, 47, 50, 56, 70, 74, 92, 122, 125, 177, Zikr, “remembrance of God by repetition of
179, 218, 228, 231, 239, 241, 247, 249 His name”, 10, 237-8
Venetians, 44, 105-6, 113, 193 gikr-ijali; gikr-i khafi, 238
Venice, 44, 109-10, 193-4, 251 zill allah fil-arzi, “the Shadow of God upon
Venture of Islam, The, 235 earth”, 2
vikâlat, “office of vakil” (q.v.), 38, 47, 78 Zill al-Sultän, 166, 170
Volga (river), 109, 112, 196 Zoroastrianism, 217
Volynsky, Artemii Petrovich, 126, 246, 248 Zoroastrians, 175— 6, 217, 251
Zuhäb, Treaty of, 202
Wakhtang, 246 Zu’l-Qadars, 21, 45, 51, 53, 55
Warsaw, 139

You might also like